Escolar Documentos
Profissional Documentos
Cultura Documentos
IN
PAN JAB.
BY
ALLAHABAD:
PRINTED AT THE TIONEER PRESS.
1890.
PREFACE.
The
districts
Panj'ab
CJiicfs,
written
men
in
the
between the Bias and the Indus, now known as the Lahore and Rawalpindi Divisions. A new edition has been recently prepared by me, in which these histories have been
brought down to date.
The
Divisions,
and includes
to
write
studying
and eschewing minute detail." These instructions I have obeyed at the sacrifice of much interesting matter which came under my hand. The book will not attract the
general reader
;
but
it
will
made
to secure
The
histories
were reviewed
in
in
making
my
acknowledgments
of this
to the friends
who
assisted
in
me
in
the
preparation
work.
It
had been,
the
first
C. H. T. Marshall,
who
collected a large
amount of material
Mr. Longworth
Dames
VI
placed at
Khan
my disposal his manuscript histor}' of Dera Ghazi and Mr. Manuel, Head Clerk of the Dharamsala Dissubmitted excellent notes of the Kangra RajI have further received I have made much use.
F.
trict Office,
puts, of which
W.
R. H. Merk,
G. R.
Drummond,
D. Cunning-ham, E. B. Douie, A. J.
Kensington and Baron Bentinck, as well as from Rai Lachman Das, who helped me to correct the early proofs, and Lalas
Ram
Rup
Singh,
Har
those of
Messrs.
O'Brien,
Thorburn,
Purser,
Ibbetson,
The accounts of
as a book of reference.
1890.
IN
THE PANJAB.
CONTENTS.
Vlll
Dehli Division
DISTRICT
DARBAR LIST:
..
IX
THE JALANDHAR
The Ludhiana
District
DIVISION.
Page.
233 238
241 245 251 257 25S 262
264
of
Mamdot
of Harsahai
Sardar Bahadar Sodhi Man Singh of Butar Bhai Zabarjang Singh of Jhamba Sardar Suchet Mahomed of Dharamsinghwala Sardar A mar Singh of Mansurwal Sardar Khan, Kasuria
The Jalandhar
District
285 2S9
Guru Nao Nahal Singh of Kartarpur Sardar Harnam Singh, Moron Sardar Mit Singh of Dhandowal Sardar Nahal Singh, Kang
Sardar Partab Singh of Alavvalpur Sardar Amar Singh of Naugaja Sardar Sundar Singh, Sarhali Sardar Amar Singh of Makandpur Sardar Basavva Singh of Laroa Sardar Dava Singh of Bahrain Sardar Jaitiial Singh of Thala Sardar Amar Singh of Baloki
294 301
3'
'3
3n
315 318 319 321
")-3 o'> -> -7
The Hushiarpur
The Sodhis
District
The Kangra
District
Raja Raghnath Singh, Goleria Major Jai Chand, Raja of Lambagraon Raja Jai Singh of Siba Raja Amar Chand of Nadaun Raja Ram Pal of Kotlahr Raja Jaswant Singh of Nurpur Rai Dalip Singh of Kulu Raja Niamatula Khan, Rajauri
Page.
Raja Brijrai Singh of Trilokpur Raja Balbir Singh, Mankotia Mian Diiavvar Singh of Tilokpur Chaudhri Malha Singh of Indaura Shankar Singh of Rai Thakar Hari Chand, Wazir, of Lahaul Nono Durji Chotan of Spiti Wazir Karam Singh of Bir Lai Singh of Nagrota Martanja Parohit of Chahri Mian Davi Chand of Bijapur Mian Bararu, Kotwal, of Bir Bhangahal
4H
412 413 414 4<5 417
THE PESHAWAR
The Hazara
District
DIVISION.
420 424 432 434 437 439
441
Navvab Sir Mahomed Akram Khan, K. C. S. L, of Amb Raja Jahandad Khan, Khan Bahadar, Gakhar, of Khanpur Samandar Khan of Garhi Habibula Ali Gohar Khan of Agror Sayad Mahomed Khan, Karal Khan Zaman Khan, Kalabat Kazi Fazal llahi of Sakandarpur Dost Mahomed Khan of Shingri Makadam Ghulam Ahmad of Kot Najibula
443 445 446 454 459 463 469 470 474 476 477 479 480 481 482 484 487 489
Nawab Wazirzada Mahomed Afzal Khan, C. S. /., Sadozai Arbab Mahomed Hasain Khan, Mohmand Kazi Abdul Kadar Khan of Peshawar Arbab Mahomed Abas Khan, Khalil, of Tahkal Bala Mahomed Khan, Sardar Bahadar Khwaja Mahomed Khan of Hoti Mahomed Umar Khan of Shewa Mahomed Akbar Khan of Topi Sardar Bahadar Habib Khan of Khunda
.
Khan Bahadar Ibrahim Khan of Mardan Mahabat Khan of Toru, Mardan Azad Khan of Hund
The Kohat
Nawab
District
CLE.
C. S. I.,
Teri
Muzafar Khan, Tahsildar of Hangu Khan Bahadar Mahomed Usman Khan of Hangu Sher Mahomed Khan, Kiani Sayad Ahmad Shah, Banuri Biland Khan, Khatak, of Khushalgarh Sayad Makhdum Shah, Jilani
. .
of Nilab
533
. . . . . .
. . . . .
. . . . .
XI
THE DERAJAT DIVISION. The Bannu District Khan Abdula, Khan Bahadar, of Isa Khel Malik Yar Mahomed Khan of Kalabagh
Page.
. .
Mian Sultan Ali of Mianvvali Mani Kban, Spirkai Wazir, of Garhi Mani Khan
. .
The Dera
Ismail
Khan
District
55^
Aladad Khan, Sadozai (son of the late Nawab Mahomed Sarfaraz .. Khan) .. .. .. .. .. ,. Nawab Rab Nawaz Khan, Alizai Nawab Hafiz Abdula Khan, Alizai Nawab Ghulam Kasim Khan of Tank Nawab Ata Mahomed Khan, Khagwani Hafiz Samandar Khan, Khwajikzai .. .. Sardar Mahomed Afzal Khan, Gandapur Saidar Ala Wardi Khan of Hazara Diwan Jagan Nath Sarbiland Khan, Ismailzai Ghulam Sarwar Khan, Sadozai
. .
560 565
573 580 584 586
591 592 594 595
District
Note on the Tribes of the District Nawab Sir Irnam Bakhsh Khan, K. C. Nawab Mahomed Khan, Laghari Mian Shah Nawaz Khan of Hajipur Sardar Bahadar Khan, Khosa Sardar Miran Khan, Drishak Sardar Jalab Khan, Gurchani Sardar Ahmad Khan, Sori Lund Sardar Fazal Ali Khan, Kasrani Ala Bakhsh Khan, Sadozai Sardar Mazar Khan, Tibi Lund Mahomed Masu Khan, Nutkani Mian Ala Bakhsh of Taunsa Mahmud Khan, Mirani
..
/. ".,
.
..
..
. .
597
Mazari
,.
..
.
..
.
..
.
.
..
.
..
.
..
.
..
.
..
.
.
,.
.
602 614 6:9 626 633 637 644 64S 652 654 658 662 664 668 669
The Muzafargarh District Mahomed Saifula Khan of Khangarh Mian Mahbub Khan Bahadar, Gurmani.
.
..
.^.
..
. .
RULING CHIEFS
IN
THE PANJAB
IN
THEIR
ORDER OF PRECEDENCE,
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
C/5
<
O O
?nU3A3J
o"
o o G O O o o M N
o o o o \n
vo
vo
CO
*\
in
<
CI
VO OO
uoUBindoj
UOISS3D013 JO J139 \
00
vo oo
oo oo
00
Ov
qiJiq JO jca^
00
00
00
C3
c
If)
S a C
>o
c3 .3
rt
P4 IS
s
o
c^
S
OS
O
e
?5
30U?)p933J'i
J'-'
J?1'.'0
ORDER OF PRECEDENCE.
<:
S "' ^ C o C 3 o
'
ORDER OF PRECEDENCE.
OJ c;
">
6
o)
^ "
<L)
i;
s g a o 2
<U
O
a
.5
c/3 cAi
p
o o
S-S o
o o o
o"
O o
o'
6 VO
o o o
o o o
6 o
o o o
CO
o"
o o o
o"
o o o
O o
o"
in
Ti-
00
o o
o"
O o o o
vO
CO
J3
es
O G C
P3
rt
G to
S
."
O
J?
=5
^
"rt
Pi
rt
rt
.S -^ -S
a
I
|S3
cS
< ^
Is
^-
ci
12;
tn
Pi
< s
(A
ORDER OF PRECEDENCE.
o o
o o
o o
o o
o o
ri
Rai
Nabha and
Jind.
10
Governor-General.
nazarana
is
payable to
the Paramount
Power on succession of collateral descendants. The Maharaja is bound to execute justice and promote the welfare of his subjects; to prevent sati, slavery and female infanticide, and to co-operate with the British Government against outside enemies to furnish supplies in war time, and to grant, free of expense, land required for the construcalso to furnish tion of railroads and imperial lines of road the services of one hundred horsemen annually by way of He is guaranteed full and unreserved possession of tribute. and he is permitted to exercise unrestricted territories, his death. Government has undertaken not life and of powers from any of his subjects, whether maficomplaints receive to
;
;
dars,
jagirdars,
relatives,
dependants,
servants
or
other
classes.
first
in
the precedence
list
of the
and receives
He
is
The
Ruling Power
south of the Satlaj since 1752, when the present capital was founded by Sardar Ala Singh, afterwards Raja. He w^as a
common
yond Phul,
Atari,
Going back besame line, we find the houses of Faridkot, Kaithal, Ghumba, Sidhowal and Arnauli, all springing
in the
Sidhu'
;
all
and
and
Simla
ii
Ahmad Shah
which had
Durani.
He
new Mahomedan
in
common
Ahluwalias
to overthrow
The
decisive battle
was fought
chief town in Patiala, and the Sikhs are said to have left
twenty thousand of their number on the field. Barnala was plundered, and Ala Singh was led captive before Ahmad Shah, who granted him his liberty on payment of a ransom But the Barnala disaster proved of four lakhs of rupees. the making of Ala Singh, for Ahmad Shah had no desire to push matters to extremities, and in proof of his magnanimity presented Ala Singh with a dress of honor, and conferred upon him the title of Raja, installing him as chief in the group of villages around his home. Whatever his feelings may have been, Ala Singh dared not express gratitude, for
fear of exciting the wrath of his brother Sikhs,
who
partly
v/ith
Ahmad Shah
own purposes. No sooner had the King returned to Kabul than the Sikhs again coalesced, and massing themselves around Sarhand, slew the Governor and captured the Ala Singh place after a bloody battle with the royal troops. was foremost in the fight, and received as his reward the looted town of Sarhand and the villages in the neighbourHe made no attempt to rebuild the place, which was hood. regarded as accursed by the Sikhs since the murder there But the inhabitants were "reof the sons of Guru Gobind. quested" to move south and settle on the site where Patiala now stands. Sarhand has been practically in ruins ever since.. Strange to say, when Ahmad Shah returned to India in the year following, he took no notice of Ala Singh's defection, and once more recognized him as Raja.
12
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
The
history of Patiala
In detail.*
here to give a
years ago,
down
to date.
The boundaries
In
1809 over
all
the Cis-
Ochter-
War
of 18 14, Maharaja
Hill States of
with a revenue of Rs. 35,000, under a nazai^ana payment A re-arrangement of territory was effected of Rs. 2,80,000.
on a small scale in 1830, when the present station of Simla was being formed the Maharaja receiving three villages of the British pargana of Baraull, near Sabathu, In lieu of some
;
assistance
Nabha Raja's
the
Nawab,
dis-
of political
and
military
support
In
times of general
danger or
turbance.
And
In addition,
the chiefship of Bhadaur, and the right of escheats and reversion to lapsed estates therein, receiving the
commuImperial
Into the
13
I.,
succeedfor four-
his father
in
1862,
and ruled
eight of which,
while he was a
name by a
Council of Regency.
State measure
Maharaja jMahindar Singh's time was the sanctioning of the Sarhand Canal project for carrying off the Satlaj waters at Rupar, in the north of the Ambala District, and distributing them over an immense area of the southern
adopted
in
and Nabha States, and the British districts of Ludhiana and The canal was formally opened by His ExcelFirozpur. lency the Viceroy in 1882, and is now in full working order. A sum of one crore and twenty-three lakhs of rupees has been contributed by the Maharaja towards the cost of construction, based upon the approximate benefit likely to accrue The British Government undertook to to the Patiala State. provide funds for two-thirds of the work, and the charges for the remaining third share were borne by the States of Patiala, Jind and Nabha in the proportions of nineteen, one and two, respectively. The late Maharaja will long be re-
membered
for his liberality in measures connected with the improvement and general well-being of the country. He made a handsome donation of Rs. 70,000 to the University
College, Lahore
at the disposal of
and in 1873 he placed ten lakhs of rupees Government for the relief of the famine-
stricken people
visit
of Bengal. In 1875 he was honored by a from His Excellency Earl Northbrook, Viceroy and Governor- General and the opportunity was taken of founding the present admirable institution known as the Northbrook
;
He
He
died suddenly
in 1876.
Is
a Prince of
In
much
promise.
14
During his minority, which ceased in i8go, the administration was carried on by a Council composed of three officials,
Dewa
The
Sing-h,
K. C.S.I.
,an old
and
and considerable savings effected, from which have been met the charges in connection with the Sarhand Canal and the broad-guage line of Railway between Rajpura and Patiala. An extension of
finances have been carefully watched,
this line joining the
The
Patiala
State
hundred men of all arms for service beyond the frontier during the Kabul War of 1879. They were employed in keeping open the lines of communication between Thai and the
Paiwar
in the
themselves excellent
soldiers,
whole period of absence from their homes. Their services were recognized by the bestowal upon Sardar Dewa Singh of the Knighthood of the Order of the Star of India. Bakhshi
the troops,
same Order.
Darbar
in recognition of services
by
his State.
Towards the end of 1887 the Council of Regency, on behalf of the minor Maharaja, most loyally offered to place the
at the disposal
of the Imperial
Government North-West
form
later
in the
Frontier.
in
This generous
offer
took a practical
on
by side with British troops, a specially trained corps numbering six hundred cavalry and one thousand infantry, fully equipped
15
at a
moment's
notice.
Similar
the other
reme Government, and acknowledged by His Excellency the Viceroy at a Darbar held at Patiala in November 1888.
of Sardar
Kishan Singh of Patiala was celebrated with great pomp in November, 1888. The festivities were honored with the presence of their Excellencies the Marquess and Marchioness of Dufferin, the Lieutenant-Governor of the Panjab, and a large number of officials and friends of the Maharaja and his
family.
in Patiala.
The Maharaja's
aunt,
The leading officials of the State are Chaudhri Charat Wazir Ram, late member of the Council of Regency Mahomed Hasan Khan, C. I. E. ; his brother Mahomed Hasain Khan, Mir Munshi Sardar Ganda Singh, C.S./., who commanded the State troops in Afghanistan in 1878-79
;
;
late
Sardar
Dewa
Other
officials
of note are
Diwan Gurmak
in
Chief Justice.
i6
Mian Fatah
Nawab Mahomed
Bahawal Khan
II,
I.
Nawab Mahomed
Mubarik Khan.
Mahomed Khan,
Nawab
Sadik
Mahomed Khan.
I
Ilaji
Fatah
Sadat Yai
(known
as
Khan Nawab
Mahomed
1S64.
1862,
The Bahawalpur
Satlaj,
State
is
extreme length
three hundred
the
mean width
about twenty miles, and the total area about twenty thousand
square miles.
The dominant
the Chiefs belong.
of the
The
earliest authentic
Daud Khan,
17
them
into
conflict
with
in
in
They were
worsted
encounter,
and
were
driven across
their
They continued
Muba-
now known
as Bahawalpur.
son of
Daud Khan,
gomery
But
embracing portions of the present Multan and MontDistricts, in addition to his Bahawalpur possessions.
far
from being consolidated, and the country was practically divided amongst independent sections of the clan, each of
which founded a town and dug a canal, which was the basis of the existing system of irrigation. Bahawal Khan, grandson of
the
first
in
1789 from
Timur Shah of Kabul, whose army occupied Bahawalpur for a time, Bahawal Khan gradually consolidated his power
and exercised sovereign rights for many years over portions of Multan and the neighbouring districts, obtaining possession even of Dera Ghazi Khan for a short period from the Khan In his later of Kalat, who had been holding nominal sway.
years, however, his star
dimmed
his
began
Third,
to
the Chiefship in
took the
dence
by securing recognition of his indepenour Government made in 1833, thus saving his country from the fate of Multan and the other Mahomedan estates in the Western Panjab. In 1838 this same Bahawal Khan loyally repaid our protection by services rendered to the army of occupation in Afghanistan
in
a treaty with
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
and he was rewarded with the grant of the districts of Sabzalkot and Bhang Bara. A fresh treaty was made with him in this year, when he again came under the protection of the British Government, which recognised his position as an absolute Ruler. In 1848 he once more rendered valuable assistance in connection with the Multan Rebellion, which commenced the Second Sikh War. His army, co-operating
with the irregular levies under Edwardes, defeated the troops of Mulraj and
hemmed
him
in
These
services secured
rupees.
In
1850
to supersede
To
The
this
the
Government made no
duly succeeded
was
heir-elect
was shortly afterwards ousted by the eldest son, Nawab Fatah Khan, who had a powerful backing amongst the minor Daudputra Chiefs. Sadat Khan
appealed
in
him
His deposed brother was granted an asylum in British Territory, and an allowance of Rs. 19,200 per annum was assigned for his maintenance; he agreeing to relinquish for ever on his own part and that
of his heirs all claims to the Principality of Bahawalpur. But the promise was violated within the same year by the ex-Nawab, who was encouraged in his misconduct by the intriguing Daudputra Sardars. They well remembered the ease with which they had carried out the late revolution, and hoped by constant interference to lessen the authority of the ruling family, and thus increase their own power. On this
occasion, however,
19
in the
Sadat Khan was promptly locked up Lahore Fort, and half his allowances were stopped until such time as he should show himself worthy of enjoying them. He died in 1864, leaving no issue.
In
1863
the
Daudputras
organised an
insurrection
The
was speedily crushed but it broke out again in the autumn of 1865, and also in March of the following year, on
each occasion without success.
this last rising, the
Just after he
died,
had crushed
it
Nawab suddenly
was
Mahomed Khan, the present Nawab, then a minor under his mother's care. There appeared to be no other means of keeping the insubordinate Sardars in check, as they had come to believe their personal interests would be better served by a practical dissolution of
during the minority of Sadik
the dynasty.
Accordingly,
in
July
1866,
the
management
of the
by a regular
Agent, invested,
of the Panjab
powers
of the State.
The
principles
laid
down
guidance were to govern, as far as possible, through the local agency, and to organise affairs on such a basis that when the
might be handed back to him in a form likely to continue efficient in the hands of his own people. The State was in the last stage of exhaustion when Colonel Minchin took over the duties in 1867 and it is said there were but two men of position and influence left in the country. The others had
;
been either
killed off or
had died
in
20
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
were in poverty owing to the confiscation of their estates. There was no executive staff worthy of the name, and no
officials
lity.
all
who could be entrusted with positions of responsibiThe treasury was empty; the salaries of the servants of grades were hopelessly in arrears the army was starving
;
and mutinous the canals neglected and falling into decay; and a considerable portion of the proprietary body had abandoned their holdings, and were cultivating in the adjoining
;
Affairs rapidly Improved under British management. Every department was thoroughly re-organised, and within a few years the State was once more in a flourishing condition. The Nawab attained his majority in November, 1879, ^^^ he was duly invested with full powers in the same year by the Lieutenant-Governor of the Panjab. His Honor took the opportunity of noticing the improvement which good government had effected. The revenue, none of which could be
first
and
Nawab' s
in-
had reached twenty lakhs. Roads, bridges, and public buildings had been constructed, the ancient canals had been enlarged and repaired, and new ones projected and carried out, adding a quarter of a million of acres to the
irrigated area.
The Indus Valley Railway, now a portion of made to run through the
fifty
miles, constructed
Supreme Government.
since his In-
carried
on
the
administration,
assisted
State.
Council of experienced
officials
of his
own
by a Bahawal-
pur took an active share In the preparations for the Second Afghan War, and especially in assisting the Ouetta Column under Lleutenant-General Sir Donald Stewart.
to
the
21
addition to large
numbers of bulall
The Nawab
personally superintended
Five hun-
dred
men
stationed at
useful service
in
loyal offers of
Egypt and and he has joined with the other Ruling Chiefs of the Panjab in organising and equipping a special force, consisting of one hundred and fifty cavalry and four hundred infantry, for employment beyond the limits of his State,
assistance in connection with the operations in
the
Soudan
whenever
their services
may be
required.
in
In precedence the
the Panjab.
He
is
guns,
22
Phul.
Ti'oka.
Rama,
ancestor of the
Patiala
Raghu,
ancestor of the Jiundan family.
Chanu.
Jhandii.
Takhat Mai.
and
family.
Ehadaur
Gurdita, ancestor of the
Sukhchen,
d.
1751.
Nabha
family.
Alam
d.
Singh,
1764.
B:ilaki Singh,
whom
have descended
Mahar Singh,
d.
Bhup Singh,
d.
1771.
18 1
9.
1815.
Ilari Singh,
|
d.
1781.
Raja Fatah
Singh,
d.
Partab Singh,
(/.
Mahtab
Singh,
d. 1816.
1S22.
I
8 16.
1834.
Karam
d.
Singh,
Basawa Singh,
d.
I
182S.
i
1830.
I
Sukha Singh,
d.
Ehagwan Singh,
d.
1S64.
I
1S52.
1852.
Randhir
Singh, d. 1848.
Raja Raghbir
Singh,
d. 1887.
.
Harnam
Singh,
d.
1S56.
1843.
I.
Balbir Singh.
1
Diwan
Singh,
b.
Sher
Singh,
d.
Chatar
Singh,
d. 1861.
1879.
1S41.
1S82.
Har Narain
b.
Singh,
Sher Singh,
b.
1861.
1872.
The Jind
million.
about twelve
between
23
military force
is
men
of
all
arms.
Under an
offer
made
to the British
Government
in
The Raja
The
so
common
ancestor with
whom
many
of the best
houses
in
the
Raja Gajpat Singh, founder of the Jind dynasty, was a greatgrandson of Phul. His daughter, Bibi Raj Kanwar, married Sardar Mahan Singh, Sukarchakia, and became the mother Gajpat Singh took of Maharaja Ranjit Singh of Lahore. part in the Sikh coalition of 1763 against Zin Khan, Afghan
Governor of Sarhand, and received a large
Safaidon.
tract of country
His rebellion was condoned by the Court of and he was appointed revenue farmer of the villages In 1767 his accounts were a lakh and in his possession. a half in arrears, and the local Governor put pressure upon him for settlement by sending him a prisoner to Dehli. He ultimately discharged the demand and was taken into favour, receiving the title of Raja in a Royal Firman under the seal of the Emperor Shah Alam. This was in 1772. From this time Gajpat Singh assumed the style of an independent Prince, and coined money in his own name. His position on
Dehli,
made
;
it
easy
him to invade Gohana and Hissar whenever the Mahratas happened to have their hands full elsewhere and he and
his son
Bhag Singh
24
and held them until the beginning Raja Bhag Singh had shrewdly held aloof from the combination against the English and when Sindia's power was ultimately broken, and that Chief was obliged, under the Treaty of 30th December, 1803, to surrender his possessions west of the Jamna, Lord Lake rewarded Bhag Singh by confirming his title in the Gohana estates. He afterwards accompanied Lord Lake as far as the Bias in his pursuit of Jaswant Rao Holkar, and he was sent as an envoy to his nephew, the Maharaja Ranj it Singh, to dissuade him from assisting the fugitive Prince. The mission was successful. Holkar was compelled to leave the Panjab, and Bhag Singh received as his reward the pargana of Bawana
lessees of the Mahratas,
He had
and
in
his loyal
and active behaviour was of the highest value beyond Dehli. Troublous
Matters, however,
mended
The
direct heirs,
though the
collateral
claimants were
many.
Orders were
Raja, as
more
territory than
was possessed by
his great-grandfather
title.
Gajpat
Singh, through
whom
he derived his
villages,
This consisted
hundred
and
twenty-two
having a revenue of
Rs. 2,36,000.
by the
British
Government
as escheats.
25
was
Raja Sarup Singh's behaviour during- the First Sikh War His contingent served v/ith all that could be desired. the British troops, and every assistance was rendered in the He received in reward matter of carriage and supplies.
To
this
added
in
State transit
In 1847 the Raja received a Sanad, whereunder the dues. British Government engaged never to demand from him
of troops
all
and
to
suppress
sati,
slave-dealing,
and
infanticide
in his
territories.*
the Mutiny.
Raja Sarup Singh's loyafty was again conspicuous during He occupied the cantonment of Karnal with eight hundred men, and held the ferry over the Jamna at Bhagpat,
twenty miles north of Dehli, thus enabling the Mirut force to The Raja was personally engagin the battle
ed
who presented
scaling
him with one of the captured guns. His contingent ultimately took a
prominent part
the
in
and losing many of their number in killed and wounded. He was further active throughout in sending supplies to the besieging force and in keeping open the lines of communication and preserving order in the These splendid services redistricts adjoining his State. ceived a fitting reward in the bestowal upon him of the Dadri territory covering nearly six hundred square miles,
the walls with
British troops,
forfeited for disloyalty
estate
now
was
26
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
the
His salute was raised to eleven guns his capital. and he received a special Sanad, granting to him the power of adoption in case of failure of natural heirs, and legalizing
now has
houses
in the
an
heir.
Raja Sarup Singh died in 1864. Griffin describes him person and presence eminently princely. The stalwart Sikh race could hardly show a taller or a stronger man. Clad in armour, as he loved to be, at the head of his troops,
as
**
in
vernment has never had an ally more true in heart than Sarup Singh, who served it from affection and not from
fear."*
The Raja had been nominated a Knight Grand Commander of the Star of India a few months before his death. He was succeeded by his son Raghbir Singh, who was in Immediately after his inevery way worthy of his father. stallation he was called upon to put down a serious insurrection in the newly-acquired territory of Dadri.
objected to the
The people new revenue assessment which had been English system, though the rates were much
the neighbouring British
those prevailing in
Station of Badrah
was
seized,
thrown up outside some of the villages, while the semi-civilised tribes of Bikanir and Shekhawati were invited to help, on promise of plunder and pay.
in
Raja Raghbir Singh lost no time hurrying to the scene of the disturbance with about two thousand men of all arms. The village of Chakri, where the
* Rajas of the Panjab, p. 374.
27
by
fur-
Afghan War
in the
Kuram
The Raja was a most able and enlightened Ruler and his death, which occurred in 1887, while he was still in his prime, was regarded as a seriHis only son Balbir Singh ous loss for the whole province. died in his father's life-time, leaving a son, Ranbir Singh, During his minority the the present Chief, born in 1879. administration is being carried on by a Council, which has at its head General Ratan Singh, an old and trusted official of The other members are Munshi Harsarup and the State.
Khalifa
Rahim Bakhsh.
The
title
of Raja-i-Rajagan has
in perpetuity.
28
29
the pargana of
Amloh.
He added many
the
Gurdita
in his
own name, and exercised all the powers of an independent ruler for some years before his death, which occurred
in 1783.
when Holkar, the Mahrata Prince, was being driven upwards to Lahore, and in return was assured by Lord Lake that so long as his disposition towards us remained unchanged his possessions would never be curtailed, nor any demand made on him for tribute. He was formally taken
British
under the protection of the British in May 1 809 with the The revenues of Nabha in those days other Malwa Chiefs.
barely reached one and a half lakhs.
The
many
years, between
Raja
Jaswant Singh and the Sardars of Lidhran, has been described in another chapter
;
Raja's
Kanwar
life.
He had
when
for
hie
his
assistance
was of value.
lakhs of rupees
He
furnished supplies
in the
Simla Hills
and
advanced
six
Raja Jaswant Singh was succeeded in 1840 by his son Davindar Singh, a vain, arrogant Prince, who had the misHe was fortune to be Ruler during the First Sikh War. found to have intrigued with the Court of Lahore previous
to the
war he took no measures for the supply of transport and provisions he disregarded the most direct orders to attend the army in person, and he held back until fortune
; ;
30
had unmistakably declared in favour of the English. He was accordingly removed from his State at the end of the war and it passed to his eldest son, Bharpur Singh, then a boy of seven
;
years.
Nearly one-fourth of his possessions were confiscated, made over to the Chiefs of Patiala
and Faridkot in reward of loyal services rendered. Raja died at Lahore in 1865.
Bharpur Singh attained
the outbreak of the Mutiny.
his majority a
The
ex-
He acted
He
;
held charge
the
commencement
of the outbreak
to Dehli,
soldiers from amongst and carriage, arrested mutineers, and performed every work required of him with the utmost loyalty and good-will. His services were rewarded with the grant of the divisions of Bawal and Kanti, assessed
He
further recruited
many
own
danger and disturbance. He was also formally granted the power of life and death over his subjects, the right of adoption, and the promise of non-interference by the British in the internal affairs of his State. The Raja was subsequently allowed
to
in liquidation of
purchase a portion of the Kanaund sub-division of Jhajar, a loan made by him to the Government. He
was a Prince of the highest promise, who devoted all his enerand his early death in gies to the well-being of his people
;
beyond the limits of his own State. The Chiefship devolved upon his brother Bhagwan Singh, who, under the rules in force, was required to pay a succession
1863 was
felt
far
31
He
died in 1871.
relative
therefore
became necessary
of the family
ative
fell
amongst the members by the two remaining Chiefs and by a representThe choice of the British Government acting jointly.
upon Sardar Hira Singh of Badrukhan, a cousin of the Raja of Jind and the appointment was confirmed and recognised by the Viceroy and the Secretary of State for India. Raja Hira Singh was installed on the loth August, 1871, by the Commissioner of Dehli, representing the LieutenantGovernor of the Panjab. He has proved himself an enerThe State had fallen into the utmost getic and able ruler.
;
was only to be had upon payment, and bribery and embezzlement prevailed in almost every department. These stains have long since been wiped out, and Nabha is now
one of the best-ordered and best-governed of the States of
the Panjab.
Province
Raja Hira Singh joined with the other Chiefs of the in providing a contingent of troops for service on His quota the frontier during the Afghan War of 1879-80. consisted of two hundred cavalry, five hundred infantry and
two
field
guns.
They
Kuram
phase of the Campaign. The Nabha State has lately undertaken to train and maintain a special force of one hundred and fifty horse and six hundred infantry for service in the field with British troops on
occasions
of emergency; and in other ways Raja Hira Singh has given repeated proofs of his desire to contriThe Grand bute to the power and prestige of the Empire. Cross of the Star of India was conferred upon him in 1879,
32
and
distinction to thirteen
in 1883.
guns.
As
wan Singh,
the
it becomes necessary to give a short sketch of Badrukhan family, of which he is a member. They ranked next amongst the Phulkians after Bhadaur and Malod;
son of the Raja Gajpat Singh of Jind, as shown ing pedigree table
:
the follow-
17S9.
Bhup Singh.
d.
1S19.
1815.
Karm
d.
Singh,
182S.
Basawa Singh,
d.
1830.
1S64,
(from
whom
is
descended
Sukha Singh,
d. 1852.
Bhagwan Singh,
d.
1852.
Harnam
d.
Singh,
1S56.
1843.
Rapdaman
b.
I
Singh,
1883.
Diwan Singh,
b.
Sher Singh,
d.
Chatar Singh,
d.
1S41.
1SS2.
1861.
Shamsher Singh,
b.
1861.
1872.
Sardar Bhup Singh's estate was separated from that of his brother Bhag Singh in 1789 on the death of Raja Gajpat Singh. But in 1834 Bhup Singh's grandson Sarup Singh
33
were thus
left in
Bhup
Singh.
On Basawa
in
full
Singh's death
equal shares
Singh became
owner of
his father's
When
Nabha
in 1871,
he was obliged
relinquish
his
Badrukhan
lands,
Sirdar
Diwan Singh
now
the
He
lives at
Bad-
rukhan
in
34
Gopal Singh.
I
Dewa
I
Singh.
Gurbaksh Singh.
Karpal Singh.
1
Sadar Singh.
I
Badar Singh,
</.
1723.
1
Lai Singh.
I
Mana
Singh.
Ladha Singh.
I
1783.
Mahar Singh.
1836.
Sardar
Amar
Singh,
d. 1841.
Raja Randhir
a'.
Singh, 1870,
Kanwar Suchet
b.
1887.
I
Singh, 1837I
Makandpur),
d.
1845.
I
Partab Singh,
b.
1871.
1845.
I
Raja Kharak
Singh,
a. 1877.
I
Kanwar Harnam
Singh,
b.
b.
1S61.
1851.
Arjan
Angad
Singh,
b.
Raja Jagat
Jit Singh,
b,
Singh,
b.
Rajeshar Singh,
b.
1879.
1880.
1S83.
b.
1872.
Raghbir
Singh,
b.
1876.
Shamsher
Singh, b. 1879.
Rajindar Singh,
d.
Indarjit
Dalip
b.
Singh,
b.
1882.
1883.
Singh, 1885.
in
left
Makhu Ferry with bank of the Bias to its the Satlaj, and there is an outlying portion, Phagwara, between Jalandhar and Philaur besides the pargana of Bunga,
junction near the
;
a small
islet,
of Hushiarpur.
The
State
is
also
in
35
in
the
Panjab covers six hundred and twenty square miles, and the revenue is slightly over ten lakhs. The population numbers
about a quarter of a million.
Raja's possessions
in
To Oudh and
districts
this
The
latter
consists of the
estate of Bogpur,
Bijnaur
District.
In the
Oudh
of Baraich and
square miles,
his
patrimony in the Panjab. These were acquired time of his grandfather the Raja Randhir Singh,
ly
part-
by purchase and partly in gift from the British Government as a reward for services rendered In the Mutiny. The Raja is entitled to a salute of eleven guns, and he is honored by receiving a return visit from His Excellency the Viceroy. He is addressed by the title of Raja-i-Rajagan, as a special
distinction, originally conferred in the time of his grandfather.
The
title
of Raja was
first
great-grandfather Nahal
Singh, to
whom
it
was given
In
1849 In acknowledgment of his services during the Second Sikh War. The Ahluwalia Chiefs hold their Panjab possessions
with
tion
all
means
In
times of trouble.
is
The commutaat
in
of military' service
fixed
Rs.
1,31,000
per annum.
fifth In
the
precedence
No Sanad
power of
life
and
The Ahluwalia
family
is
ruling
36
This relationship has lately been re-asserted and the present Chief has contracted a marriage with a Rajput lady of Kangra.
But the family has been regarded throughout the last century of Panjab History as of the Kalal branch of Sikhs. Their ancestor Sadhu Singh was an enterprising zamindar who, about three hundred years ago, founded four villages in the vicinity
of Lahore.
These are
still
representative.
One
of them,
He was
intelligence
his day.
He
it
was constantly
Mahomedan Goverwhen
and
came
to fighting in the
open
field.
In 1748 he attacked
Khan, Governor of Amritsar, seizing a large and five years later he extended his conquests to the edge of the Bias, defeating Adina Beg, Governor of the Jalandhar Doab, and taking possession of the Fatehabad pargana which is still held in the family. He next captured Sarhand and Dialpur, south of the Satlaj,
killed Salabat
giving a half-share
in
the
latter
to
and seized the parheld by the Ahluwalia Chiefs until after the Satlaj Campaign. Hushiarpur, Bhairog and Naraingarh fell to his sword in the same year; and Rai Ibrahim, then the Mahomedan Chief of Kapur;
pur
to Firozpur,
ganas of
which were
thala, only
of
Lahore
ula
;
to Jhang,
and
Sardar Inayatalso
much harm.
He
failed-
in
an
37
who
his
loss of his
guns and
baggage.
Sardar Jasa Singh was undoubtedly the foremost amongst the Sikhs north of the Satlaj in the middle of the last cenThis tury, and the equal of any Chief south of that river. position he maintained throughout his life, though his fortunes were constantly changing, and he was more than once
on the verge of losing all he had acquired. Thus he was engaged on one occasion foraging south of the Jamna, when
he was re-called
to the
Ahmad Shah
from Kabul, for the special purpose of administering punishment to the lawless Sikhs. The fight took place near Barnala on the
Satlaj,
brilliant victory.
The
Sikhs were again badly beaten a few months later near Sarhand and Jasa Singh and his brother Chiefs found them;
refuge in
the
Kangra
in
hills.
They,
the capture
and
This was, of
when the Emperor was busy elsewhere. Thence, under the leadership, as usual, of the brave Jasa Singh, they proceeded once more to the old battle-ground of Sarhand, a well-gnawed bone of contention between the Sikhs and the
Khan, the Governor, and almost all his the place thoroughly looted by the victorious soldiers of the Khalsa. Jasa Singh returned to Amritsar when the work was over, and as a thankoffering, made
Musalmans.
Zin
up,
and constructed
to this
day an architectural
ornament
in the
sacred
city.
much
and
abilities,
which were
38
no doubt most marked. Raja A mar Singh of Patiala and other Chiefs of renown were proud to accept the pahal or Sikh baptism from his hand and no matters of religious
;
He,
in short,
to consolidate the
power of the Khalsa and his death was a calamity which might have damaged the new faith for ever had not the gap
been speedily filled by a leader still more able, though not more brave and beloved, the redoubtable Maharaja Ranjit
Of the two men, it may be said that Jasa Singh was a Sikh by honest conviction, while Ranjit Singh supported
Singh.
the
movement because
so.
it
was
politically
advantageous to
do
cousin
little
to Jasa Singh's
second
light calibre.
He
did
improve the fortunes of the family, and died at Ka80 1, after ruling for eighteen years.
in the
purthala
His son
beginning a
fast
;
and equal the Maharaja Ranjit Singh outstripped in the race for power, and
In
Lahore Government. Fatah Singh was at Amrltsar with Ranjit Singh when the Mahrata Chief Jaswant Rao Holkar was driven north of the Satlaj by Lord Lake's pursuing army; and it was on his advice that the Maharaja was dissuaded from giving offence to the British by lending countenance to the fugitive Prince. He and the Maharaja jointly signed the first Treaty, dated
self In the position of a feudatory of the
I
St
January,
1806,
territories of
any plans
39
from holding any friendly connection with our enemies and In this from committing any act of hostility against us. Treaty both Ranjit Singh and Fatah Singh were styled
Sardars.
Fatah Singh was of a weak, yielding nature, and shrank from He thus fell by degrees under asserting his own dignity.
the powerful spell of the Maharaja, as a
who
finally
treated
him
mere
vassal,
commanding
insisting
his services
his
on every military
adventure,
and
upon
constant attendance at
Lahore.
amiable Fatah Singh, and in 1825 he fled across the Satlaj and took refuge at Jagraon, then under British protection, abandoning his estates in both Doabs to the Maharaja. There was no real cause for this foolish step on the part of the Sardar, whose fears were apparently worked upon by the sudden advance of some of Ranjit Singh's regiments towards his border and the IMaharaja was probably surprised and annoyed when he found his old friend had been driven into the arms of the English, whose settlements up against his Satlaj boundary had for some years caused him genuine concern. But the Sardar had been so harried by Ranjit Singh's imperious ways that he felt he must at all hazards secure a guarantee of his possessions Trans-Satlaj, such as had been accorded by the British to the Phulkian Chiefs lower down. This was, however, impossible, without coming to an open rupture with the Maharaja, in whose zone Fatah Singh's lands
;
lay.
between the Chiefs, resulting in the restoration to the fugitive The Cis-Satlaj territory was in of all he had abandoned. any case secured to Fatah Singh under the general agree-
ment of 1809.
Sardar Fatah Singh died
in
1837, and
in
was
time
succeed-
ed by
his
son
Nahal
Singh,
whose
occurred
40
The
rule was disturbed by constant quarrels with his brother Amar Singh, who, for some unexplained reason, considered
Then came a season of him in the outbreak of the war on the Satlaj. Sardar Nahal Singh wavered to the last, withholding assistance from the British when it would have been of the utmost
to
value.
commander Haider
responsible,
His troops actually fought against us under their Ali, both at Aliwal and Budhowal
act the Sardar was not personally inasmuch as the soldiers broke away from the Wazir who attempted his control, and murdered His conduct generally was, however, to restrain them. condemned as weak and vacillating for as a protected Cis-
Satlaj
all his
resources at
this
he
failed.
He,
in fact,
played a
the end
At
an
possession of his
to
the
Jalandhar
Doab, subject
annual
of
up
to his obligations
upon the Sadar. In the Second power to retrieve his name, furnishing carriage and supplies, and proving himself a loyal and active ally and at the close of the campaign he was honored with a visit from the Governor-General, Lord Dalhousie, who created him a Raja in acknowledgment of his valuable services. He died in 1852. Raja Randhir Singh who followed him had the gentle and generous nature of his father, and in addition a vigour and energy of purpose which secured him a high place amongst the many good men who
lesson
The
was not
all in
Sikh
War
he did
his
in 1857.
On
the
first
4X
break of the Mutiny the Raja marched into Jalandhar at the head of his men and helped to hold the Doab, almost denuded
of troops,
until
the
fall
of Dehli.
The
political effect of
this active loyalty on the part of the leading Sikh Chief north
of the Satlaj was of the utmost value; and the Raja's able assistance was promptly acknowledged by the bestowal upon
him of an honorable
of his
quiet,
title,
tribute payment.
Raja Randhir Singh was permitted to lead a contingent of his soldiers to Oudh and take part in the pacificaHe remained in the field tion of the disturbed districts.
for ten
in
six
general actions.
He
is
who fought
for themselves
and sol-
dierly behaviour.
For these great services the Raja was rewarded with Baundi and Bithauli,
tricts,
a"
the
now
Oudh, and behaved throughout the campaign with grea.t was given a portion of the Akauna estate in Baraich, yielding Rs. 45,000 a year. This property was
subsequently taken over by the Raja
tion order of Sir
in 1869,
under an arbitrain
Oudh
Sardar Bikrama
in
The Raja's
is
subject to a
many years by
42
will
Singh and Suchet Singh, regarding the interpretation of a made in their favour by Raja Nahal Singh. It is only
1869 by the Secretary of State for India, and that his
life
It
was
at the
down
children
The last and most highly-prized privilege conferred upon Raja Randhir Singh for his Mutiny services was that of adoption, granted under a Sanad of Lord Canning, Viceroy and Governor-General, dated 31st March, 1862. In 1864 the Raja received the Insignia of Knighthood in the Order of the
Star of India, in public Darbar, at the hands of Lord Lawrence,
who warmly complimented the gallant Chief upon his welldeserved honor. The Raja had for years been desirous of visiting England to receive from Her Majesty's own lips
the thanks that were his due, and to assure her of his devotion to her
He had
arranged to leave
But he had only proceeded as far as Aden when death overHis remains were brought back to India, and took him. cremated at Nasik, on the banks of the Godavri, where a handsome monument marks the resting-place of his ashes.
His son Kharak Singh reigned
ing worthy of record happened
weakness, and
in
for
seven years.
Noth-
his time.
few years
symptoms of mental was deemed advisable to place the management of the State in the hands of a Council composed of the leading officials but the experiment was not successful, and in 1875 ^ British Officer was appointed to carry on as Superintendent. Raja Kharak Singh died in 1877, leaving one son, Jagat Jit Singh, the present Chief, born in 1872.
;
43
educated in English^ Sanskrit and and gives promise of becoming a Ruler of the highest good sense and intelligence. During his minority
is
He
being" carefully
Persian,
the State is being- administered by an Officer of the Panjab Commission, assisted by a Council composed of the principal
officials
of the State.
uncle,
The Raja's
Kanwar Harnam
Singh,
C. I. E.,
During the
cavalr}^ artillery
late
and infantry, for service beyond the British was employed on the Bannu frontier, and did good service under command of Sardar Nabi Bakhsh, Government has recently accepted the offer made on C. I. E. behalf of the minor Chief to maintain a select body of troops
border.
The
force
The
finances are
a flourishing condition
year,
the revenues
increase year
Sardar Bikrama Singh, grand-uncle of the Raja, died in He had lived at Jalandhar 1877, as already mentioned.
many years, and was known as one of the leading gentlemen of the Province kindly in his bearing, of unbounded
for
;
and hospitality, always forward in loyal offers of service to Government. He was an Honorary Magistrate in Jalandhar, and had been exempted from personal attendance in our Civil Courts. The title of Bahadar was conferred upon him in 1858 for Mutiny services, together with a valuable khilat. In 1879 ^^ was appointed an Honorary Assistant Commissioner, and in the same year he received the honor of Companionship in the Order of the Star of India. His advice was constantly sought by officials of the highest
charity
standing
in
44
the country
in
good of
The Sardar's eldest son Partab Singh has been recently recommended for a commission in a cavalry regiment. He and his brother Daljit Singh receive an allowance, fixed by the Secretary of State, of Rs, 36,000 per annum from the
Raja of Kapurthala.
is
also a prominent
member
of
and has
for years
occupied positions
in the
Province
The
leading
officials
Diwan
Ram
Jas,
many
He
the
Diwan
is
or head revenue
C. I. E., Civil
Kapurthala.
in
Judge,
and
a relative of the
Raja. Sardar Nabi Bakhsh, in command of the troops, accompanied the contingent in 1878-79, and his services were acknowledged by the bestowal upon him of the Order of the Indian Empire. Lala Harcharn Das is the Chief Magistrate,
and
cil
his brother
Lala Bhagwan
to the Council.
Members
Mahomed AH
Khan.
45
1623.
I
165S.
1673.
I
Gur Sen,
d.
Dan Chand.
1678.
Sudh Sen,
d.
Manak Chand.
Jipii.
1719.
I
1703.
Shamsher Sen.
I
Dhur
I
Jatia.
Raja Shib
d.
Man
Sen,
Kaleswar.
1779.
Raja
Isii
Sen,
d. 1S26.
Tegha Singh.
Didar Singh.
Bija Singh, d. 1836.
Raghnath Singh.
Bhup Singh,
d.
Kahn
i>.
Singh,
Sher
i>.
Singh,
1846.
1837.
1840.
Ratan Singh,
d.
Kapur Singh,
Bhag Singh.
1S51.
I
1813.
1818.
Raja
d.
Bijai Sen,
1848.
Pardhan Singh.
Man
I
Singh.
Kishan Singh.
under the
Kangra Range, Commissioner of Jalandhar. It is bounded on the west, north and east by Kangra and Kulu, and on the south by Suket and Bilaspur. The area is estimated at twelve hundred square miles, and the population Of the revenue of about at one hundred and fifty thousand.
is
Mandi
46
ment.
The country
It
is
is
by two
which smaller
the Bias
hills
diverge.
watered by
river
through from east to west, and receives the drainage of the whole of the hill slopes. The valleys are fertile and produce all the ordinary grains, including rice, which is grown
in
large
Guma
fifth
quantities. There are important salt mines at and Dirang, yielding a profit which represents one-
of the
is
men
politically.
The Mandi Rajas are of ancient Rajput lineage, being Mandials of the Chandar Bansi branch. Sen is the affix of the Chief's name, and his younger brothers take that of Singh. In the beginning of the thirteenth century the Mandi Chiefs
separated from the present house of Suket, and after wan-
Mandi,
in
on the Bias.
The
existing
capital
was
founded
the
first
1527 by Ajbar Sen, who may be regarded as Raja of Mandi. The history of the State is of
Chiefship
of
Isri
no
Sen,
who
in
1779 succeeded his father Raja Shib Man Sen. He was then only four years of age. During his rule of fortyseven
years,
successive
prey of the
Katoches,
the
for
pendence
splitting
Gurkhas and the Sikhs, and lost her indeever. Raja Sansar Chand commenced by
directly
after
up the State
over
the
Shib
Man
;
Sen's death.
He made
gave and
the
to
Chuhari he
for
Raja
for
Isri
Isri
kept him
State
there a
prisoner
continued to stand in
officials,
Sen
who had
pay an annual
47
vasion
Then came the inby Raja Mahan Singh of Bilaspur. Isri Sen, free once more, was glad to tender his submission to Amar Singh Thapa, the Nipal General, who guaranteed him his territories in return for his neutrality in Finally, the war between the Gurkhas and the Katoches. Maharaja Ranjit Singh appeared on the scene, bidden by the humbled Chief Sansar Chand, whose restless ambition was
lakh to the
Katoch
Incited
Chief.
of the
Gurkhas,
immediate cause of all the harm that was befalling his For five years after the beating back of brother Princes. 18 in the Gurkhas 10, Mandi was made to pay a tribute of
the
was raised
In 1815 the demand Rs. 30,000 to the Lahore Darbar. to a lakh, but fell in the following year to Rs. 50,000, at which figure it remained until the death of Isri
Sen in 1826. The Chiefship then devolved upon his brother Zalam Sen, with whom Isri Singh had been on unfriendly terms for years. Zalam Sen was forced to pay a succession duty of a lakh, and his tribute to Lahore was raised to
Rs. 75,000.
1840 a large Sikh force was sent to Mandi under General Ventura, with the object of bringing this and other portions of the hill country into thorough subjection and preventing the possibility of danger by the
In
retention
of
the
State
strongholds.
Raja
Balbir
Sen,
son
of Isri
and
his forts
were occupied by the Sikh troops. He was released in the following year on the accession of Maharaja Sher Singh, who had always exhibited a kindly feeling towards the petty The Raja's tribute was fixed at rulers of the Kangra Hills.
Rs. 1,35,000, but by means of heavy bribes to the Darbar officials he was enabled to retain his country on far easier
terms, and
assessed.
it
is
doubtful
if
He
had, in
common
first
the
Kangra Rajas,
yoke of Lahore
in
to
throw
;
off the
British protection
the
48
way
the Sikh
Government.
opportunity
The
he
Satlaj
\\^ar,
however,
;
had longed
for
under
of Aliwal, his sympathies were on our side all and he hastened to tender his formal submission early in 1846. He had given proof of his good faith even before Sobraon, the decisive battle of the campaign, by driving Sardar IMangal Singh Ramgarhia out of Mandi, and res-
us on the
through,
cuing
sions.
all
Kamlagarh from
A
was
Balbir
and
defining his
rights
Army with his troops on the breaking out of disturbances, and he was prohibited from lev}ang
quired to join the British
in
and out of
his State.
In
own master
as long
as he carried on his
government on
civilised lines.
Death
made
ward by near
tion.
generahis
being
were
Government and his chances of success by a foolish attempt made by his followers to capture the Palace by force. The young pretender was taken prisoner and confined for a short period in the jail at Simla. He now resides in Kangra, and receives a pension from the Mandi State.
by the
British
finally ruined
The
affairs of the
State
fell
who was
49
age when his father died. There was a struggle for power, in which all the officials took part, including the Wazir Gosaun,
an arch-intriguer, whose double-dealing with the Sikhs and
1846 nearly brought about the ruin of the But he was undoubtedly the most able of the Raja's advisers, and perhaps the most loyal to his individual He w^as appointed as head of the Council of interests.
the English in
IMandi State.
Regency
but
in
1
in
down
for
some years;
effect-
ed by the banishment
one of the
members
Council.
The Raja
his investiture
it
was deemed
desir-
This
measure gave considerable strength to the administration, and the Raja was enabled within a short period to take full charge of his affairs. Early in 1889 the Raja again asked for the assistance of a British official, and ^Nlr. H. J. Maynard, of the Bengal Civil Service, was temporarily deputed to Mandi. The Raja is of an amiable disposition, beloved by He has no his subjects, and liked by all who know him.
legitimate sons.
Considerable progress has been effected in public works during the incumbency of Raja Bijai Sen. A good muleroad over the Babu Pass connects Mandi with Sultanpur in Kulu, and the communications with Kangra and Hushiarpur
are also kept in thorough
repair.
handsome suspensionin
bridge over the Bias, near the town of Mandi, was opened in
is
now
postal
and
tele-
The leading
officials
are
late
50
'CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
The note which follows has been abstracted from a letter of the late Lord Lawrence, written in 1846, when Commissioner of the Jalandhar Doab. It is of interest as giving his views concerning the Kangra Hill States in the
early Panjab days
:
Shortly after the late war broke out, the Hill Chiefs, goaded by a sense of the injuries they had suffered in a long course of years, raised troops and threw off the Sikh yoke ; they attacked, respectively, the forts and territory of which they or their ancestors had been deprived, in many instances with complete success.
These exertions, howevei meritorious, do not appear to me to have had any positive on the results of the campaign. The Sikhs had denuded the hills of troops to strengththeir levies before Ludhiana and Firozpur, so that the hillmen met with little opposition. As it was, all the places of any strength, such as Kamlagarh, Kangra, Kotla and
effect
en
ISUirpur, were still held by the Sikhs when tte treaty was signed then successfully resisted every attempt against them.
and
their garrisons
even
deserving of reward, and, as being so, I trust that Government will deal generously with them ; but I cannot see that it is any way called on, by the nature of their services, to cede to them the greater part of these districts. Indeed, such an act would, in my judgment, be highly impolitic.
efforts that the Hill Chiefs
The
then
made
are no doubt
The Hill Chiefs greatly exaggerate the exertions they have made and the service we have received at their hands. They think that by their own unassisted efforts they have re-conquered the inheritance of their fathers, altogether forgetting that it was on the plains of Firozshahr and in the trenches of Sobraon that the fate of the Hill States and of the Sikh Empire was decided. I do not believe that in all the actions which occurred between the hillmen and the Sikhs, the former lost one hundred men. At Haripur, Vr-here they are said to have suffered most, their killed and wounded were thirty men at Tera they lost one man ; at Kotwalbaha I believe they lost four or five The Siba Chief fought against us ; the Nadaun Raja remained quiescent.
;
Taking, therefore, their exertions and deserts into full consideration, I am of opinion that if Government maintain the Chiefs in the jagirs which they held under the Sikh rule and grant a money compensation to the Rajas ol Tera, Jaswan and Goler, who have plunged themselves into difficulties in raising and paying troops, it will not only do all that is necessary, but will satisfy the Chiefs themselves, who do not in their hearts expect more.
It must not be forgotten that even in maintaining each Chief in possession of his jagfr confer no ordinary boon. They held their tenures under the Sikh Government by the most uncertain perhaps of all tenures the caprice of the favourite who for the day ruled the Darbar. To secure their possessions they had but too offen to sacrifice the honour of their families and their own pride and they had to bribe the Darbar with annual presents and
we
now be
saved.
ed
Mandi and Suket are peculiar. Their country was conquerbut they were allowed by the Sikhs to retain the management, and Government may therefore be inclined to deal more favourably with thein.
cases of the Chiefs of
;
The
little
Chiefs who do not recover possession of their ancient patrimony will, there can be doubt, feel somewhat annoyed if Suket and Mandi are exempted from the general But the case of these Rajas and the other Chiefs is essentially ditterent, and this I have explained to them all.
The
irregular contingent from these It has been stated that we should obtain an excellent countries in the event of our restoring the Chiefs ; but experience would lead me to think that such is a delusion. Contingents are invariably ill-paid, half-armed, unorganised levies for a sudden effort where, acting in their own country, that may be of service ; but it is dangerous to trust them against their own countrymen. In short, to give away a large tract of country for the sake of such assistance would be paying for it at a ruinously high price. I would strongly recommend our retaining possession of these hills. Even in the case of the Rajas of Suket and Mandi I would only grant them the management of their possessions on trial. throughout the country, with the I think we should abolish all customs exception of a moderate duty at the mines on iron and salt, and all transit duties, under severe penalties. In confirming jagirs, the police and customs should be especially excepted. should give the people a low assessment, and develop the resources of the country by making good roads and bridges. And while careful against doing violence to their innocent prejudices, I would, by the introduction of a strong police and careful superintendence, sternly put down all such atrocities as sati, infanticide and slavery, which have hitherto prevailed.
We
51
we thus act, the people will never regret their ancient rulers and hereditary Chiefs, and that ten years hence the face of the country will present a new aspect. Already, with the experience the people have of our moderate assessment and even-handed justice, they have in instances come forward where their lands are in jagir, and requested me to take them out of the hands of their native masters. It may be asserted that while giving the country to its Chiefs we might bind them to do all that we propose ; but this appears to me to be a fallacy. While promising everything they will do nothing ; their efforts simply will be directed to please or to blind the Superintendent placed over them, nevei by legitimate means to carry out the wishes of Government ; and as we shall have given them their fiefs, so shall we be bound to maintain them in possession, and all the mismanagement and oppression which they perpetrate will be attributed to us.
convinced that
if
am
52
Karam
Parkash.
I
Fatah Parkash,
d.
1850.
Raghbir Parkash,
d.
1856.
Surjan Sinph, d. 1 88 1.
I
Ranjor Singh,
b.
I
1874.
Kanwar
b.
Surat Singh,
1S53.
1S42.
Infant, b. 1888.
Tika Surardar
Bir
b.
Bikram
I'Sjo.
Eikram
Singh,
b.
Singh,
1864.
I
Son,
b.
I
Simla is the northernmost of the seven posing the Dehli Division of the Province.
of Ambala, enclosed between
districts
It
comof
consists
tracts
north
the Satlaj and Jamna rivers. These isolated patches are scattered at considerable intervals amongst the independent Rajput States which cover the greater portion of the hill area, having had an existence for more than a thousand years. The portion under British administration
is
numbers only a
under ninety square miles, while the population little over forty thousand souls.
Chiefs appear to have enjoyed almost
The Simla
these
hills.
com-
plete independence
ever
since
their
first
establishment in
Dehli Emperors
53
amongst
Mahomedan neighbours, at whose mercy they were, had annexation been deemed necessary or desirable.
themselves, to avoid giving offence to their all-powerful
At
the time
when
the British
themselves
in a northern parallel line along the outer Himalayas, stopping only when they came in political contact with the Sikhs. Their sudden invasion of the Western
Himalayas was instigated and supported by one of the leading Simla Rajas, who, to strengthen himself against a brother
Chief
in
to his
aid
the
only power he
believed
him.
The
themselves.
was a matter of concern for our officers charged with the and consolidation of our power up to the foot of the hills when other causes brought about the Nipal War of 181 5, it was thought advisable to attack the Simla posts before they were yet strong, and drive their garrisons back across the Jamna. This was done by Ochterlony, who, with the aid of the Rajputs, took possession of the whole mountain country between the Gogra and the Satlaj. Kamaun and Dera Dun were retained as British, and a few patches in the hills were held up for military purposes, or because there were special reasons for excluding the original owners. But the greater part was made over to the Rajput kinglets, who had ruled until Raja Maha Chand of Bilaspur brought the plague of Gurkhas upon this once peaceful land. The Simla Chiefs, almost to a man, co-operated with Ochterlony in driving out the
;
common enemy
since,
it
is
believed,
54
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
had cause, by unjust treatment or by undue Interference with their rights and usages, to regret the step which they then
took.
The revenue
of Simla
is
jurisdiction
of the
Deputy Commissioner
under Rs. 14,000
conare
small.
He
collects a land-tax of
But
his duties in
more
and counin
whom
when
the
trouble
or
with
the
unfettered in
of
them sentences
of death
without
officials.
Their
of the hills
if
in the light of
they
do wrong occasionally, must still be clung to and venerated as a temporary evil from which good will in the end proceed and I doubt if any subjects in all the East are so generally happy as are the hillmen of Simla under their old here;
ditary Chiefs.
Raja Shamsher Parkash of Sirmur is the senior of the Rajput Rulers of the Simla Hills. His ancestors have occupied this country since the end of the eleventh century.
In the the
1803 Sirmur was conquered by the Gurkhas, and Raja was forced to acknowledge the supremacy of
nominal power.
the
Ruling Chief
in
when removed on
1
81
5,
imbecility,
Gurkhas were expelled; but he was the ground of his notorious profligacy and and the Chiefship passed to his eldest son
the
Fatah
Parkash.
Under
September,
55
the British
in
his
heirs
perpetuity
ancient
possessions,
with
certain
exceptions.
fort
the
war
restored on
the Kiarda Dun, which was subsequently payment of a nazaraiia of Rs. 50,000 a tract
;
of
hill
made over
of Jaunsar
to
the
Rana of Keonthal, and the parganas Bawar, in the Dera Dun District, annexed to
the British
and dom-
inions.
The Raja
his State,
all
is
required to consult
all
the Superintendent
ment of
territory.
and
case
of war
to join
the
British
his
troops with
his forces
also to
Sentences of death
The
in 1856.
His
rule has
ments
in
every
department.
He
has
established
civil,
method,
and
sal
founded schools
ed
up-
He
good roads
His extensive
and have become very valuone cavalry and two infantry consisting of His army, able. battalions, and his police, worked on the British system, are He has established under the control of English officers. an iron foundry and workshops at Nahan on an extensive
forests are carefully conserved,
He under the supervision of an English Engineer. has reclaimed a considerable tract of waste land in the Kiarda Dun, and has purchased an extensive tea-garden at Kaulascale
garh
in
Dera Dun.
is
The Raja
1887, in
recognition
rendered during
the
late
56
infantry under
command
Kuram
Valley.
The Raja
married
the
The
married into the house of a Rajput jagirdar of Aligarh. Both Kaur Bir Princes are well educated and of high promise.
Lieutenant
Simla.
Bikrama Singh has been lately given a Commission as a The Raja has in the 2nd Gurkha Regiment. Recently again married in the house of the Thakar of Kunhar,
His
first
sister of the
is
The Raja's capital is at Nahan, at the head of the Kiarda Dun, west of the Jamna, before it enters the plains, about
twelve miles from the
best in these
hills,
Ambala
border.
It is
The
having British Telegraph and Post Offices. area of the State is about 1,000 square miles, and the
population 112,000.
lakhs, of
The income
is
The
comes
"
Singh " of the members of this family beParkash" in the case of the Ruling Chief; Parkash
affix "
signifying in Sanskrit
"come
to light."
57
RAJA
BIJE
58
as
a reward for his good offices in having invited them to conquer and hold the hill country. Raja Maha Chand, being
thus an ally of the Gurkhas,
refused to co-operate with
;
the
accordingly
moved against
But
sion
at its near
which were favourably received by the British Agent and as it was considered desirable to afford an example of British clemency to the other Hill Chiefs, he was confirmed
in all his hereditary
possessions on the
left
bank
of
the
Satlaj,
new power.
in
He was
in
granted
Sanad
1815,
in his territories,
under
case of
through his State. Raja his son Kharak Chand, succeeded by Maha Chand was character and dissolute of bad habits. Chief He died a
childless in 1836,
a
to
fair
lapse to the
and the State might have been considered Government had it been deemed desirable
incorporate it with the remainder of our hill territory. But as a portion of the lands were situated Trans- Satlaj, and their appropriation would have brought us into immediate contact with Lahore, a proceeding at that time much deprecated,
it
was
be found
among
to
common
ancestor in
the
Chand
still
in
question of succession
was
in
abeyance,
one of his
widows, the
sister
of Fatah
herself pregnant,
The
lady's
state-
59
ment being' considered doubtful, an enquiry was instituted by Sir G. R. Clerk, which resulted in the child being declared supposititious and the claims made in his behalf to
;
disallowed.
insurrection,
Subsequently, the
Sirmur
Rani organised an
able
portion
having
for
its
object the
drive out the reigning Chief and get possession of the capital,
directed to live at
Matters soon
became
and in the beginning of 1 849 she was deported to Nahan and placed in charge of the Raja, who was made responsible for her good behaviour.
intolerable,
who,
Raja Jagat Chand had a son named Narpat Chand, in consequence of his dissolute and intemperate life, fell
He
1847,
on
bank
the Sikhs
tribute.
The
Government excused the tribute payment, but required the Raja to abolish transit duties.
The
son, Bije
late
Raja
belonged to
1889.
He had
the
one
Bije
a student
in
Aitchison
6o
CHIEFS
His aunt
is
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
College.
bagraon,
Kangra
and two of
married to the Raja Jai Chand of Lamhis sisters have married the
Singh of Punch.
He
himself has
situated on the
left
bank of
of
the
Satlaj,
is
The area
computed
the State
lation
hundred square
miles,
The revenue
at
6i
Singh.
Udar Singh.
I
1S50.
I
Faiah Singh,
it
1876.
1839.
I
1868
The Bashahr
son of the deity,
to
is
ruling
family claims
descent
from
the
celebrated Srikishan of
Hindu mythology.
Parduman, grandBrindaban
said to
Rampur, and there married the daughter of the ruler Bavasa Deo, whom he presently slew, keeping the kingdom for himself. Raja Shamsher Singh, now at the head of the State, can trace his ancestry back for one hundred and twenty
generations.
Early
in
the
present
century
Bashahr was
swept by the Gurkhas with the other mountainous tracts between the Ghagra and the Satlaj. In the war with Nipal which followed, the British Government deemed
to
it
expedient
expel
the
territories
Gurkhas
started
upon
their
career
who was
desirous
encroachments of
Sansar Chand, the famous Katoch Chief of Kangra, and of Raja Ram Saran, the no less celebrated ruler of Hindur.
As
small,
of Ochterlony
was
extension
of our
own
the
territory as the
it
reason-
able limits,
was determined
Chiefs
the
co-operation
restoration,
of
subjugated
by
offering
them
and
62
guaranteeing'their future independence in the event of their taking our part in the quarrel. This the Simla Rajas did, with the one honorable exception of Bilaspur, who rightly consi-
dered himself bound to adhere to the fortunes of his old allies. At the end of the war, a Sanad was granted to the minor Raja Mahindar Singh, father of the present Ruler of Bashahr,
confirming him
in all his ancient
possessions, except
to
Rawin,
it
to the
Raja of Keonthal,
whom
had originally belonged, and Kotguru, which was kept up as There was no hardship involved in a British possession.
our retention of Kotguru so
far
as
the
some reason Gurkha invasion the Rana of Kot Khai, to whom Kotguru belonged, made over this portion of his State for management to the Raja of Kulu, as Khai Proper, and the people it was far removed from Kot had got out of his control. The Kulu Chief gladly accepted
concerned
;
perhaps
to complain.
the charge
but
after
he
Kot-
guru with his own lands on the other side of the Satlaj. Kotguru thus remained for ten years under the rule of the
Raja of Kulu.
District,
was, however, never recognised by whose border touched the Kotguru and who wished to secure it for himself It was
title
all
His
the pleasantest of
of
hills
the
hill tracts,
sloping
down
bend in the Satlaj, with and some good military posts, including
to a strategical
for
miles
around.
keep
it
Kulu who attempted to and the dead Raja's body was only given
all
up
to his relatives
claim
to
Bashahr was in possession only a very few months before the coming of the Gurkhas, and had therefore no real
Kotguru.
63
when
Nipalese War.
tribute
The State was handed over subject to a payment of Rs. 15,000 per annum. This sum was
Rs.
3,945,
in
eventually reduced to
compensation
for
the
The
his father in to
1850.
His
some doubt.
He
his
our
rule.
travelling through
territories
march upon Simla if only five hundred men would follow Lord William Hay, Deputy Commissioner, applied to have a force despatched to Rampur but there were no troops to spare, and the crisis passed off without action on either side. It was proposed after the rebellion to set the Raja aside and place the State in charge of the Superintendent of
to
him.
Simla
deem
this
measure ad-
visable,
and
all
that
any Raghnath Singh having attained his majority, to place him in administrative charge of the State. Raja Shamsher Singh married into the Katoch house of Kangra, and with the Simla houses of Koti and Kamharsen. The latter lady is the mother of the Regent Raghnath Singh.
satisfactory in
respect,
was not
The Bashahr
the Simla States
;
territories are
of
all
but the
people
the
population
ward
in
every sense.
With an area
64
five
CHIEFS
hundred square
'
AND FAMILIES OF
Rampur,
and
is
NOTE.
is
miles, the
population
is
under sixty-five
little
thousand.
The
capital,
a picturesque
for its
town
origi-
Satlaj,
famous
of
wool trade.
The
nally
well
commerce were
imitations
of Ludhiana,
article
out
The Bashahr
ment,
in
forests
were leased
to the
British
Governestimated
1S77,
foi"
The income
of the State
is
65
RAJA
NALAGARH.
Singh.
Saran Singh.
Raja
Ram
L_
' I
^ Raja
.
Bije Singh,
d. 1857.
Fatah Singh,
(f.
1872.
I i
1S76.
Kesri Singh,
"'
L
i
1^75I
Raja
IsRi
Singh,
1836.
Jogindar Singh,
b.
Bhagvvan Singh,
l>.
b.
1870.
1S60.
I
Gobardhan Singh,
b.
1885.
The common
Chanderi.
The
fort at
Chandel Rajput, who came from Garh Ramshahr, which commands a splenHushiarpur, as
snowy peaks of Chamba, is said to have been erected as a capital when the families were still united. It has been largely added to, and repaired by Rajas Agar Singh
and
Raja
father
He
was expelled
for
short
HushiarIn
He
his
conquests
to Matiana,
and eastwards
his,
as far as
Dharma
at
Negi.
his
The Gurkhas,
power of
though
rison
it
the
invitation
the
hills
in 1803,
Ram
Saran and
all
the
Hill
Chiefs.
The
fort
;
of
and
was provided with large tanks and granaries, the garcapitulate after a struggle which lasted
66
three
Then
in
and
his forces.
battle
1814 came Sir David Ochterlony was fought at the Pass of Ramshahr,
and another
In the latter, at Lohar Ghati near Malaun. Bhagta Thapa, the Gurkha Commander, was slain and the campaign practically came to an end.
;
Ram
Besides his natural dislike for the Gurkhas, he had to take his revenge upon the Bilaspur Chief who had caused all the
To the British he betrouble by calling in the foreigners. haved with consistent loyalty, and on the conclusion of the campaign was rewarded by being reinstated in his ancesTo his credit be it recorded that he absolutely tral estates. refused to take over the districts he himself had recently
conquered and annexed. He perhaps felt, when too late, that by his own ambition he had goaded the Bilaspuris to measures which they could only have adopted in their last extremity.
In 181 5 the hilly district of Barauli, which devolved on
the
Government
was
as an escheat offered to
ing family,
Raja
Ram
Saran as a reward
it
war
but he refused
on the grounds
distance from
its
to
add
to his dominions.
The
was accordingly transferred to another Chief for the sum of Rs, 8,500, which amount was accounted for to Ram
Saran.
now forms
and includes the cantonment of Sabathu. Three Barauli villages were made over to the Maharaja of Patiala in 1830, in exchange for four villages no\y incorporated with the
township of Simla, which was
in that
by contributions
Raja
and Keonthal.
Ram
67
to
the
Raja
of
Bilaspur,
from
in
whom
in
he had
taken them.
This
sum
fort
he
expended
improving and
the plains,
Satlaj.
in 1857,
strengthening the
of Palasi lower
down
now one
of the strongest
On
the
Ram
Saran's other
The
question was
left
pending
for
three years,
at
the end of which period Agar Singh, brother of Bije Singh, was appointed ruler. He was the most intelligent of Ram Saran's sons, having acted as Wazir and virtual manager of
the State during his father's later years.
He
had, moreover,
behaved loyally during the Mutiny. His elder brother Fatah Singh was passed over as being of unsound mind.
The
present Raja
difficulties
Isri
Singh succeeded
He
has had
who
He
is
Kangra and
is
Kather, Simla.
of Mandi.
reading in
He is married
to a cousin of the
Raja
fifty
thousand
souls.
about Rs.
five
pays a tribute of
The Raja 90,000 per annum. thousand rupees to the British Governhis
bound by
Sanad,
granted
in 18 15, to assist
is
His administration
unfettered,
Commissioner of Dehli.
The Raja
lives at
His
are
south and
west
63
Sain.
Raghnath Sain.
I
1862.
I
1882.
\
Raja Balkir
Sain,
^.
Hira
Singh,
/'.
Stirat
Shib
Singh,
iJ-.
Randhir
Singh,
/'.
Mohan
Singh, /'. 1866,
Singh,
l>.
1857.
1862.
1863.
1S64.
1854.
..
Agar Singh,
/;.
1878.
The Keonthal
ships.
It
State ranks
fifth
and a population a little over thirty thousand Subordinate revenue is forty thousand rupees.
are the five petty States of Theog, Koti,
The
to
the Raja
many
The State has been held by the present ruling family for many generations. They suffered by the Gurkha invasion early in the present century in common with the other Hill
Chiefs.
born
until
in
Suket,
where
his father
in 18 14.
had taken
refuQ^e
As
the Keonthal
General Ochterlony
men
or supplies,
were taken
Rana was
at
the
made over
to him.
6g
of portions of
Keonthal and
at Rs. 937,
exchange
for
the
ed as likely to be of use
Rana Sansar Sain behaved loyally in the Mutiny, giving and hospitality to many Europeans who lied from Simla, when it was feared that the Gurkha regiment stationed The title of Raja was conferred there had become tainted.
shelter
upon him
ruler
is
in
acknowledgment of these
in
services.
He
was
1862,
The
the
present
Dhami
married
Rana's house.
He
himself has
married
into
family of
His two
sisters are
Raja of Sirmur.
is
He
whose smiling
was a
is
familiar sight
on
On
is
careful in matters
the
There
always a
fair
His
forests are
very valuable,
especially
70
NaWAB
Nawab Jamal Khan.
I
SlIER ]Mahomed.
Nawab Bhikan
Khan.
I
Nawab
Bahadar Khan.
I
Umar Khan.
i
Asadula
Nawab
(/
Ataula
Khan,
Hasain Khan.
d.
Khan,
i8og.
1782.
Nawab
Wazir Khan.
I
Fatah Khan.
Sultan
Torabaz.
Ka hmat
Ali Khan, 1852.
Fazal
Ali.
A mam
Ali.
Khan.
Khan.
Nawab Amir
Khan.
Nawab Sube
Khan.
Hiniat
Ualail
Khan.
Khan.
I
Mahomed
Ali.
Nawab
Sakandar Ali Khan,
d.
Ghulani
Mahomed Khan,
d.
1S77.
1871.
I
_J
i
Me homed
Ali
Sadat
Ali.
Ahsan
I
Bakar
Ali.
Mahomed
Ali.
Zulfakar
Ali.
Yusaf Dalawar
Ali.
Ghaus Mahomed.
Roshan
Ali.
Ali
Khan.
Khan,
d. i86r.
Mahomed
Muhsan
I
Ali
(/.
Khan,
18S8.
Nawab Mahomed
Ibrahim Ali
Mahomed
Inayat Ali
Faizula.
Faiz Talab.
I
Khan.
I
Khan.
Rustam
Ali.
Mahomed
Faiz Ali.
Yakiib
Ali.
Abdula Khan,
d.
18S9.
Ahmed
<^.
Mahomed
Khan.
Ali
The Nawab
table of precedence.
He
The
all
State
is
where
it
skirts
the
Ludhiana
miles,
District.
The
area
and a quarter
lakhs.
7'
family are
came from Kabul in 1467 as officials of the Dehli Emperors. Their ancestor Shekh Sadarudin received a gift of sixtyeight villages near Ludhiana, when he married the daughter
of the MoQ^hal Sultan Bahlol Lodhi.
conferred, in
The
title
of
Nawab was
upon Bazid Khan, five generations after Sadarudin, by Shah Alamgir, in whose reign the existing town of Maler Kotla was founded. The family acquired
1657,
independence
of the Satlaj.
in
Jamal
Khan was
He
in
joined
with
on Sarhand in 1761, and was ultimately slain in an attempt to recover Rupar, which had been wrested from the Duranis by the Sikhs
Shah,
repelling their attack
Ahmad
were
the
split
Patiala. Jamal Khan's possessions up when he died, amongst his five sons, though
eldest.
It
Phulkian Sikhs of
their possessions,
Many
ther of Bahadar,
with
Khan,
fifth
the seizure of
some
Patiala villages
at
the
instigation
Nanu
wards
He
failed to
make much
against
the incursions
of the celebrated
who sacked
the
Patiala Chief Maler Koda next suffered hands of Maharaja Ranjit Singh, who levied an indemnity of one and a half lakhs. This was in 1809. A portion of the money was guaranteed by the Cis-Sadaj Chiefs,
72
who
for the
accommodation,
Jamalpura and other villages as security Rahmat Ali, son of Ataula Khan,
assisted Sir
ing the
Gurkha War
irregulars
David Ochterlony with carriage and supplies durHis brother Fazal in the Simla Hills.
locally
body of
raised.
in
British
foot, which was commanded by his son Dilawar Ali Khan, father of the present Nawab. Their services were rewarded with the gift of the villages of Maherna, Fatahpur and Rasulpur, now a portion of the Maler Kotla State.
On
the
death of Ataula
Khan
in
This was
accordance
with
custom
British
in the family
under which
laid
ferential
to
sons.
Government
down
that
the ordinary
rules
of
succession
future.
Thus, the Chiefship remained in the family of Wazir Khan, whose father was, in fact, the eldest son of Jamal Khan. The last of his line was Sakandar Ali, who died in 1871,
leaving no surviving sons.
him
in i86[,
under which he
war
1am
Ali, as heir.
Mahomed Khan,
the
Bahato
son of Jamal
Khan.
the
But Government
confirmed
testament,
and
Nawabship passed
Ibrahim
Ali, the
present Chief
The
to entrust to the
Nawab
all
been shared by
The head of each branch had been exercising semi-independent power in his own holding, even within the town of Kotla itself, to the manithe cousins.
73
The
and referring their pettiest disputes to the Ambala Commissioner, whose time was frittered away in deciding matters which could have been more conveniently
petually quarrelling
Under
the
new procedure
the Nawab alone was permitted to exercise judicial and police powers within his territories, and the interference of his brother Inayat Ali Khan, and of the six cousins, was confined to
the control of revenue matters affecting their own jagirs. Ghulam Mahomed Khan was, however, allowed to continue to
exercise for his lifetime the judicial functions he had enjoyed
durins: the rule of the late
Nawab.
In the year following Ibrahim Khan's accession the town of Maler Kotla was attacked by a band of Sikh fanatics known as Kukas, who proclaimed a campaign against the
Mahomedan and
Christian
kine-killing
races,
much
in the
lines of Bedi Sahib Singh's agitation in the last century. After murdering several innocent persons they fell back on
much
the
were executed without trial to Deputy Commissioner of Ludhiana, who acted under the impression that an immediate and terror-striking example was
It is
not
the
the
was of grave
political
importance.
Ram
mad
Singh, leader
attempt of his
more zealous disciples, and he actually warned the police of what was about to happen. Their plans were, in fact, too But crude and ill-arranged to give grounds for anxiety. however questionable the punishment, the movement collapsed in consequence as suddenly as it had sprung into life and the misguided fanatics were nearly annihilated before
m
;
its
sympathies for or
74
CHIEFS
them.
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
against
deport
It was nevertheless deemed advisable to Singh to Rangoon in spite of his protest of innoThe cence, and he died there in exile several years later. Kuka doctrines are now no longer in vogue, and the sect is
Ram
was
felt
played by the
Maler Kotla
officials
on the occasion of
this
outbreak, as well as on other grounds, to place the administration of the State in the
cial
offi-
The
appoint-
ment of Superintendent was accordingly made and conferred upon an officer of the Panjab Commission, who held it for some years. The Nawab has lately exhibited symptoms of insanity, and his affairs are again managed by a local Council, under the supervision of the Commissioner of Dehli.
Inayat Ali Khan, brother of the Nawab, was attached to
the staff of General John
Watson
as
Aide-de-Camp during
of his relative
living.
The Nawab Ibrahim Ali Khan is married to a daughter Ghulam Mahomed Khan, and has two sons
His
cousin,
Ahsan
Ali
Khan,
is
a Viceregal Darbari
75
Bhalan,
d. 1643.
Lala.
I
Kapura,
d.
1708.
I
Sukha,
'/.
Saja,
d. 1 7 10.
Makhu.
1731I
Jodh Singh,
d.
Hamir
d.
1767.
I
Singh, 17S2.
Bir Singh.
Tegh Singh,
d. 1806.
Amrik Singh,
d.
1767.
Dal Singh,
d. 1804.
Mohar Singh,
d. 1798.
I
Jagat Singh,
d. 1S25.
Karam Singh
(descendants
living.)
Charat Singh,
d.
Bhupa,
1S04.
Gulab Singh,
d.
Sahib Singh,
d. 1S31.
Mahtab Singh.
1826.
I
1849.
Atar Singh,
d. 1827.
I I
Dip Singh,
d. 1845.
Anokh
d.
Singh.
1875.
1845.
1842.
Kanwar Gajindar
/'.
Singh,
1879.
The
territory of Farldkot
is
the Firozpur District, and touches upon the northern border of The State has an area of six hundred square miles, Patiala.
of rupees.
are
under
arrangements
by the
76
British
Government,
for
in
case of need.
The Raja
and
to a
precedof
He
is
entitled
to a
salute
The
The domain
male lawfully begotten. under a Viceregal Sanad, granted The right of adoption was dated nth March, 1862 and the title of Raja was conferred upon Sardar Pahar Singh, grandfather of the present Chief
belongs to the Raja and
his
heirs
;
in 1846.
The
tor in
the
same stock
as the Kaithal
Barar,
celebrated Phul.
They
are
now known
in
as Barar Jat
Sikhs,
Jasal,
Chaudhri
Ka-
Kot Kapura,
added
which
is
Kapura,
became independent
own.
He
built
Faridkot and
made
it
his capital,
and kept
best
up an armed
his ability.
force,
to to
the
of
improve the
was deposed by Sardar Charat Charat Singh's fate was still worse he was attacked and slain by his uncle Dal Singh, who, in his turn, was assassinated by a cousin Fauja
Singh.
He
Singh, a minor, to
whom
the
Things were beginnnig to settle down, assassinations having for the moment ceased, when
11
by Diwan
Singh,
in
Mohkam
the
cold
Chand,
weather
General of Maharaja
of 1806-7.
Ranjit
fort
But a good resistance was made, and the inner was not finally captured until Ranjit Singh himself advanced against it two years later with his whole army, and
maintenance of Gulab Singh and his brothers. Faridkot Proper was made over to Mohkam Chand, who had long co-
But the spoliait, upon payment of a \\q-3m^ nazarana. was regarded with disfavour by the British Government, and the Maharaja was forced to relinquish this prey
veted
tion
reinstated,
He
;
left
an
infant
son
as ruler
but the
child soon followed his father, dying under circumstances which were regarded as suspicious, though no proof was This was in 1827. forthcoming of foul play.
He
was an
the
who devoted
;
himself to
improvement of
his possessions
When the war with Lahore broke out 1846 he wisely took sides with the British, and helped to his utmost by collecting carriage and supplies for the army.
within twenty years.
in
He obtained in reward a grant of half the territory taken from the Raja of Nabha under circumstances already narrated.
The
ancestral
estate of
also restored
to him,
title
Raja Pahar Singh was followed Wazir Singh, then twenty-one years of
loyal during the
age.
He
remained
78
Firozpur, and assisted in guarding the Satlaj ferries against the passage of the rebel troops.
to
Sirsa,
He also sent a detachment and with a body of horse and two guns he personally attacked a notorious rebel Sham Das, and destroyed his The Raja's reward took the form of an increase stronghold.
in his salute,
The
During
the Second
Afghan
fifty
;
hundred and
the
title
he furnished a contingent of two horse and foot, which was employed on the
War
Kohat Frontier
and
received
of Farzand-i-Sadat nashan,
Hazavati Kaisar-i-Hind.
has married a lady of the
Mayo
College,
Ajmir.
He
Manimajra
family.
79
1735-
Raja
Umed
d.
I
Singh, 1764.
Sher Singh,
1794.
I
Raja
d.
Jit
Singh, 1808.
Raja Charat
Singh,
d.
Mian Zorawar
Singh.
I
1846.
d.
Parakam Singh,
1888.
Raja
d.
Sri
Singh,
1870,
Mian Suchet
Singh, b. 1841.
Sohan Singh,
d.
Dhayan Singh,
b.
1888.
1869.
Kartar Singh,
b.
Amar
b.
Singh,
1885.
1866.
1869.
1882.
Chamba
having
Districts of
is
for its
on the
east.
On
and
tile,
glaciers.
this latter side is a region of snowy peaks Towards the west the country becomes fer-
and good crops are obtained of rice, wheat and barley. Within its limits flow two of the five rivers of the Panjab, the Ravi and the Chandra- Bhaga or Chanab. The forests at Pangi on the Chanab and at Barmaur on the Ravi, are
important sources of timber-supply
Panjab.
for
the
railways
of the
The
is
thousand
square miles,
chiefly
and of
Gov-
in tribute.
8o
some time or other with all the Chiefs of the Simla and Kangra Hills. They are said to have originally come from Marwara in Rajputana. Owing to its isolated position,
extent
of the
the
rapacity
of
portion
Chamba
State
was made over by inadvertence to Maharaja Gulab Singh of Kashmir in 1846, but was recovered from him in
the 'following
year,
He
to
An
Colonel
Blair
puted, in 1863, to assist him as was succeeded in 1870 by his brother Gopal Singh. His accession was opposed by Suchet Singh, a younger
brother,
who urged
his
own
superior
rights
as
being of
;
the
same mother
India,
as the
deceased
but
his claims
for
were ultimately rejected by the Secretary of State and he is now wandering in France, a voluntary
having refused
all
offers
years of
age.
The
administration
was
on by an
officer of the
as Superintendent.
his
is
The Raja attained his majority in 1884, own affairs. He has been married
connected with the houses of Jaswal,
and
Singh
lives
near
Chamba.
The Chamba
I
in
8i
The
in
the absence
control
of direct heirs.
The
State
is
political
whom
The Chief
Panjab
Precedence
does
List.
He
is
entitled
to a salute of eleven
visit
guns, but
not
receive
a return
82
Raja
83
Mandi
in
He
restrictions,
Jalandhar Doab.
An
additional
in
1862.
He
government.
reputable person
He had come under the influence of a whom he made his Diwan, and by whose
dis-
bad
cesses,
The
Raja's
conduct led
to
general
insurrection of his
was only quieted when the administration was forcibly assumed by the Commissioner of the Division, supported by the neighbouring Chiefs of Bilaspur, Mandi and Nadaun. The Raja was then removed to Lahore, and the management of the State put into the hands of a Council. His
people, which
Mian Ari Mardan Sen was a youth of such poor promise that Government hesitated before placing him in
eldest son
power.
The
difficulty
Mardan almost immediately after his father's deposition when the Chiefship duly passed to a younger son Dusht Nakandan Sen, the present ruler, then about thirteen years
of age.
He
full
powers
in the
in 1884,
the affairs
by expewas Munshi Har Dayal Singh, a Kaith Bania, whose family had been settled for centuries in Kangra, and who is now holding
interval
managed
Panjab
of
whom
high
office at
Jodhpur.
The
area of Suket
is
estimated at
thousand
souls.
CHIEFS
in
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
The revenues
to the British
made
Government.
and he ranks
Panjab.
The Raja
fifteenth
is
receives a salute of
His State
subject to the
Commissioner of Jalandhar.
died in November, 1886,
85
1817.
I
Hari
Singh,
d. 1816.
Karam
Singh.
Man
Singh.
Dewa
Umrao
Singh,
d. 1837.
1869.
Singh,
<-^-
1844.
</.
1883.
Sardar Ranjit
Singh,
b.
1
88 1.
the
State
derives
its
name,
is
Manjha
in
village
in the
still
Kasur Tahsil of the Lahore District, own a small share, though they have
Satlaj.
been
many
The
of
member of the Karora companion of the celebrated Rejoined in the general Chalaundi.
a
Districts in 1760,
having previously crossed the Bias, and wrested Banbeli in His Hushiarpur from Dina Beg, the Mahomedan Governor.
son
Jodh
Singh
to
managed
Chachrauli and
Charak
to
besides
many
Jodh Singh's possessions in the height have yielded him over five lakhs anhimself the
equal
of the
He
considered
leading
86
latter State
was happy
his
of a
second son
neighbour.
In 1807, Sardar Jodh Singh joined with the Maharaja Ranjit Singh in an attack on Naraingarh near Ambala, and was rewarded with the estates of Badala Kheri and Shamchapal. He died at Multan, where he had been
left
in
command
818.
His
guardianship of his
relative the
fifty
Patiala.
He
He
and
his
who were
ferries
at
sent to Oudh. He also helped to guard some on the Jamna above Dehli and he held a police post Dadupur, and provided men for patrolling the main roads
;
between
Ambala and Firozpur. His son Sardar died in 1869, was followed in the Chiefwho Lahna ship by Sardar Bishan Singh, who was a minor at the time
Kalka,
Singh,
of his accession.
to a
daughter of
the present
ruler,
is
boy of
1886.
He
who
managed by
a Council
whom
Munshi Lai Bahadar, a Kaith of Sitapur, Oudh, acting under the supervision of the Commissioner of Dehli, who
has
political
The
family
is
connected
sides of the
The
the
full
administrative powers
with
87
The estate is worth about one lakh and ninety thousand rupees a year, extending over an area of hundred and fifty square miles, with a population
of sixty-seven
the
thousand
souls.
Sardar Jodh
in
Singh
under which the Cis-Satlaj Chiefs were taken under British proaccepted
general
1808,
tection.
arrangements made
in
order to be entirely
from
Government.
in
He gave ready
Wars, and
loyalty
to
the
Sovereign
Power.
payment
of Rs. 2,851.
in
1862,
88
Alaf Khan,
(/.
17S4.
1862.
I
Inait
Hasan Khan.
Sadik Khan.
I
Jafar Ali
Khan.
Nawab Mahomed
Naki Ah Khan,
d.
1862.
i
Mahomed
Hasan Khan.
Ahmad
Hasan
Khan.
Muazam
Khan.
Ali
Wasiat Ali
Nawab Mahomed
Miikhtar
Ali
a.
Khan.
Hasain Khan,
1878.
I
1874.
Pataudi
is
south-
Commis;
sioner of Dehli.
The
area covers
fifty
square miles
the
revenue
for
and
Rohtak.
The
Lord Lake
in 1806.
The
Nawab was
an Af-
ghan named Shekh Pir Mat, who came to India in the time of Akbar. Alaf Khan, seven generations later, was a companion-in-arms of Murtza Khan, whose son Najabat Ali after-
Nawab of Jhajar. He served for some years Nawab Shujaudaula of Oudh, and afterwards received a high military command from Shah Alam of Dehli. He was a soldier of distinction, and behaved well in many engagements. Murtza Khan gave his daughter in marriage to Alaf Khan's son Faiz Talab, who in his time eclipsed his
wards became under the
father in gallant deeds,
exist-
89
He
;
the
struggle
last
century
of his
;
useful services,
pargana of Rohtak
doubtful
if
took possession
When the
were ultimately crushed on the battle-field of Hindan in 1803, Faiz Talab transferred his allegiance to Shah Alam, Emperor
of Dehli,
in public
Darbar
to
by
the
whom
Chambal Ghats
in all as
in several actions,
including Makandra,
ed himself
Rampura and Bhanpura, and distinguisha brave and loyal soldier. At Bhanpura
taken prisoner
for
by Maharaja Holkar, who kept him then sent him back laden with presents
of his
bravery.
in
General
Lake, in
Pataudi Ilaka
powers.
dence.
perpetual jagir,
1806, granted
The
since maintained
in
its
indepen-
expeditions against
Tank and
calfe,
and he helped
to
He
died
He
year following.
Ali,
Mahomed Akbar
ship until 1862.
He
behaved
and
of
He
sent a small
body
civil officer
of the district,
and he gave shelter to some Englishmen whose lives were in danger at Gurgaon. He also took an active part in the
90
of
were present on the side of order at the action outside Jaurasi, which lasted for two days, and in which over one hundred rebel Jats, Ahirs and Brahmins
Riwari
;
and
his troops
were
slain.
rebellion
was
a mutineer, entered
name
King
as a contribu-
restored
Government
as
Nothing remained and this he did, killing fifty of the rebels. But Mahomed Sher Khan sent for reinforcements and defeated the Nawab, forcing him to flee to Narnaul. Pataudi was then given up to loot.
Nawab
but to fight
father
of the
The
Comyears.
He
some
had
He
Khan
Nawab
Najabat Ali
Nawab, born
The
State
is
now
Nawab's
family.
He
acts
in
Govern-
further
sum
Nawab
Dowager Begum.
The
Nawab is
and industry.
91
Mahomed
Khan.
Ali
Ahmad Bakhsh
Khan,
d. 1827.
Ali
Bakhsh Khan.
Ilahi
Bakhsh Khan.
I.
Shamsudin
Aniinudin
Ahmad Khan,
d. 1835.
Ahmad Khan,
d. 1869.
Alaudin
Ahmad
Khan,
d. 1884.
I
Najamudin Khan,
d. 1884.
Amirudin
Nasirudin
Azizudin
Bashirudin
Zamirudin
Ahmad
Khan,
Ahmad
Khan,
.9.1861.
Ahmad
Khan,
d.
Ahmad
Khan,
d.
Ahmad
Khan,
d.
Nawab of
Loharu,
d.
1862.
1863.
18S5.
i860.
Muazudin
Akbar
Mirza,
d.
Azizudin, d. 1885.
II
Izazudin, d. 1887.
Rukanudin, d. 1888.
1885.
Hisamd.
Samsamd.
Muzafarb.
Shamsi>.
udin, 1882.
udin, 1885.
udin, 1886.
udin, 1888.
Muazudin,
d.
1884.
I.
Shahabudin Khan,
d.
Saidudin
Ahmad Khan,
^.
1869.
1853.
Shujaudin
Bahaudin
Sarajudin
Mumtazudin
Ahmad Khan,
d.
Ahmad Khan,
d.
Ahmad Khan,
b,
Ahmad Khan,
b.
i860.
1862.
1864.
1866.
Loharu
is
south-
92
Dehli Commissioner.
The Nawabs
in
granted by
Lord
exhi-
Lake
to
in
1806, subject to
demand and an
vernment.
They
exercise
The
area
of
two hundred and eighty square miles, mostly of sandy desert, dependent for a single yearly crop upon a preBut some wheat and a carious rainfall in July and August.
is
Loharu
in small
which have
water-level.
Loharu
live
itself is
straggling village
of
mud.
The The
cultivators
in
scattered
for
existence.
Jats,
is
mostly of
nearly
one lakh. A small military force is maintained. The Nawab's territories are bounded by the Bikanir and Jaipur States on one side and by portions of Patiala, Jind and
the Hissar District on the other.
is
The
Bhawani,
on the Riwari-Firozpur
line.
Mirza Araf Jan Beg, a Bokhara Moghal, came to India last century and took service under
He
Mirza Mahomed Beg, Governor of Attock, and is said to have succeeded him in the post. His son Nawab Ahmad Bakhsh Khan was virtually the founder of the family. After serving some years under the Mahratas he transferred his allegiance to the Raja of Alwar, who employed him as Agent He accompanied the Commander-in-Chief to Lord Lake. on most of his campaigns, and in recognition of his good
93
in
more
particularly
the matter of
the treaty negotiated with the Raja of Alwar, was awarded a perpetual jagir in
six
namely,
and Loharu. This grant, yielding a revenue of about three lakhs per annum, was duly confirmed by the Government of India, and the Mirza further received the title of Fakhar-
u-Daula Dilawar-ul-Mulk Rustam Jang. He died and was buried close to the Kutab near Dehli.
succeeded by his
eldest
in 1827,
He
was
son
who acquired an unhappy notoriety in connection with the murder of Mr. William Fraser, the Dehli Resident. For was executed in 1835, his complicity in this crime he
the
Loharu
the
Proper,
given originally to
Raja of
family,
in possession of the
and passed over to the second and third sons, Aminudin Ahmad Khan and Ziaudin Ahmad Khan. Dissensions
shortly
after
arose
between
the
State,
the
brothers.
Ziaudin
was
ordered
to
leave
receiving a
maintenance of
He made
management, but Government on each occasion refused to allow the claim. The title of Nawab was conferred upon him
in
was well read in Arabic and Persian, and was regarded as one of the leading Mahomedans in Dehli. His eldest son Mirza Shahabudin Khan, who died in
attainments.
1869, was for
He
some time
a City Magistrate.
is
Mirza Saidudin
the head of this
Ahmad Khan,
should receive
1888.
Viceregal Darbari,
now
at
from the
94
Nawab's
family.
He
has
been
served
as
Panjab
from 1879 to 1887, retiring shortly after his father's death. Of the sons of Shahabudin, one of them, Bahaudin, is
an
official
in
an
Inspector of
The Nawabship of Loharu remains in the family of Aminudin Ahmad Khan who died in 1869. He was succeeded by his son Alaudin Ahmad Khan, a gentleman of
high literary attainments,
In his favour the
title
fairly
well
educated
in
English.
of
Nawab was
liked
brook
in 1874.
He
was much
by
all
who had
the
easy of access,
and simple in all his tastes and ideas. Sir Charles Aitchison describes him as " a loyal and true friend of the British Government, a gentleman and a scholar."
His
financial
affairs
had
voluntarily
agreed to live
Dehli
on a fixed allowance,
the
leaving the
management of
present
showing himself a worthy successor of his father. He was born in i860. He has received a thorough education in Persian and Arabic, and in English his acquirements are
above those of most persons of
his
rank
in
life.
95
1826.
1
96
power
early in the
present century.
this portion
By
the
treaty
of
Anjanon,
signed
in 1803,
Em-
pire passed
to the
British with
It
Sindia's
other possessions
was no part of Lord Lake's policy stretch out his hand too far, and he accordingof
formed
series
independent
British border
us
good
service.
The houses
absorbed,
owed
still
The
Nawabs
with
the South-
when
Buner,
accom-
Malik
abode
in the
new
settlement.
They subsisted as military servants of the Dehli Emperors, and they appear to have generally thriven, though none of them rose above the ordinary level until the time of Abdul Samad Khan, first Nawab of Dujana. His father had held
a small cavalry
command
at Dehli,
in four
home.
in 1764,
He
command in the Mahrata army, which assisted Lord Lake in his campaign against Sindia and he ulti;
dis-
Commandant
97
Satlaj
in
1806.
He
received as re-
the country-
George Thomas, formerly agent of the Begum Samru of Sardhana, and towards the end of last century, one of the most important military
held in Hissar by the celebrated
The title of Nawab was bestowed upon him, and the fortunes of Abdul Samad appeared to be assured. But the grant was saddled with the condition that he should administer his country without assistance from
leaders in this part of India.
Nawab
to
The
villagers
refused
acknowledge
killing
authority,
and
the
his son
and son-inenforce
to
Nawab's
rights.
Things came
to
and
title
of
Nawab.
These
State of Dujana.
in
Chiefship for
Mahomed Amir
Khan
tually
compromised on being awarded a pension of Rs. 3,000 per annum. Nawab Hasan Ali Khan was Chief during the
Rebellion of 1857.
butes
que.
attri-
Hasan
Ali's
gigantic
physi-
He
describes
him
as "
enormous
in
in height,
fat."
He
owing to his fatness and bodily disease." He, however, took no part against us, and his State thus
His successor,
that
all
Sadat
Ali,
it is
so
much awe
98
the
pressed."
and rebels and miscreants remained supConsequently the State was tranquil during his
Nawab Mumtaz
his father
Ali, the
when
for
died
in
1879, and
were managed
Ali.
Mahomed
Najabat
He
has so
;
he
is
but had no opportunity of rendering conspicuous service said to be a vigorous young Prince, and his State is
well-ordered.
Two
of
the
Nawab's granduncles
receive
99
1840.
Raja Kishan
Sinj^li,
<f,
Jai Singh,
d. 1873.
Bijai Singh.
I.
1876.
I
Ram
d.
Singh,
1872,
Raja Moti
Singh,
d.
1877-
Sher Singh,
d.
Ranjor Singh,
l>.
1865.
1867.
Raja
Kapur Singh,
d.
Man
A.
Singh,
Hira Singh,
3.
Udham
d.
Singh,
Dhian
Singh,
6.
i860.
1854.
1856.
i860.
Narindar Singh,
d.
1858.
1S42.
Durga Singh,
d.
18S0.
Basant Singh,
d.
Partab Singh,
i>.
1882.
1885.
The
in 1877.
first cousin Moti Singh Moti Singh was a minor, and had been ruler only
a few months
when he
died.
Rana when
He
provided a contingent
of footmen to assist in watching the roads leading from Jalandhar, whence an attack upon Simla by the mutineers of the
3rd, 33rd
and he
command
title
by receiving the
and
Madhan.
Two
of his
Amar Chand
of Bilaspur.
Gurkhas
to
indepen-
100
Government
in
The
in case of war.
The
unfet-
sentences of death
is
an enlightened
ruler,
popular with
The
hundred
Arki
The revenues
are estimated
Rs. 60,000.
is
loi
Pal.
Pal.
Rana Raghnath
Rana Mahindar
Singh,
d.
Rana
d.
Bije
Rana Umed
Singh,
d.
III
Dhiraj Singh.
Jit
Singh,
1830.
Sobha Singh,
b.
Singh,
1849.
d.
1832.
1S39.
1861.
Amar
b.
1S59.
Singh, i860.
Hira Singh.
Ratan Singh.
west of Simla,
to
The
State
square
The revenues
The
many centuries
ago, having
Gurkha
in
Deccan, and During the twelve the Rana Mahindar Singh of Bhagat
the
remained
undisturbed
possession
Raja,
of his patrimony, as he
was an
ally of the
Bilaspur
Gurkhas extended
their conquests
He
when Ochterlony drove back the Nipalese and five of his parganas were consequently made over to the Maharaja of Patiala. The remaining three (Bisal, Bachauli and Basal) lapsed to the British Government in
stuck to his old friends
;
Mahindar Singh,
Singh, a
first
sonless.
But on the
representation of
Umed
Rana, Lord
escheated
Ellenborough
1849 on
conferred
State
It
upon
Bije
was again
Bije
Singh's
death.
Then Umed
Singh
to
up a claim on his own account. He sent a vakil England, and employed Mr. Isaac Butt, the eminent
set
Court of Directors,
102
of
Umed
it
was recognised
his death-bed,
the following
year.
But
Umed
Singh was on
and he survived
the good news only a few hours, after thirteen years of waiting.
installed as
His son Dalip Singh, then only two years of age, was Rana, and he has held the State ever since.
Kasauli
pargana,
The
on which stands
the
existing
in
1842
payment of Rs. 5,000 and an annual charge This latter rental was not revived when the State of Rs. 500. was restored to the Rana in 1861. In 1863 the lands under the present cantonment of Solon were acquired on an annual payment of Rs. 500, and at the same time the Rana's tribute was reduced from Rs. 2,000 to Rs. 603 per annum. General Innes, an officer of the Indian Service, had purchased
proprietary
rights in a considerable area of the State during
the
time
it
of Simla.
had been incorporated with the British District These rights were recovered by the Rana later
for a
sum
of Rs. 35,000.
The Rana's
ruler
is
The
;
present
administration
said to
spirited
and
his
His
first wife,
daughter of the
1888,
Dhami Rana,
has
dead.
He
married again, in
two
Mangal, near
Bilaspur.
He
is
no
sons.
His
only
legitimate brother
Amar Singh
also childless.
103
Paras Chand.
I
1840.
I
1S77.
Ghambir Chand,
b.
1862.
I
1864.
I
Three
infant sons.
Two
infant sons.
The
Jubal
Rana
The
his
tradition
is
that the
one of
wives as a religious
the
Brahmin of
local
renown.
In
Brahmin's house
were born of
ships one's
day.
at a
who founded the Hill Chiefof Jubal, Rawin and Sairi. The custom of giving wife to a Brahmin is not uncommon even in the present But the woman is usually bought back by the husband
this lady three sons,
high
figure.
If
she remain
in
The
18 1 5
Gurkha War it was made independent, and in Rana Puran Chand was granted a Sanad by Lord Moira.
;
He
his State
fell
into disorder,
and he
was compelled
to be restored
maintenance
in
He
afterwards applied
was sanctioned
1840
passed
his favor.
Rana
1854.
His
rule
His son Karam Chand was appointed was harsh and unpopular. The
present Chief has been at the head of the State since 1878.
104
The Rampur
Bashahr.
The
country
area
fifty
The
is
is
well covered
and law-abiding.
105
1858.
I
1874.
Indar Singh,
/'.
1851.
1872.
The Kamharsen
Satlaj,
territory lies
on the
left
bank of the
The
The Rana
Kamharsen was formerly a tributary of the Bashahr but after the Gurkha War a Sanad of independence was granted to the Rana Kahar Singh, with the condition attached of rendering feudal service to the Paramount Power,
State
;
The Thakarais
time
feudatories
Ochterlony
in 1815.
Rana Kahar Singh's only son died in Consequently, when Kahar Singh died They lapsed to the British Government.
title
revived, in favor of a
Rana.
in
the
First
Sikh War,
men and
Kulu
of
fort of Srigarb.
intellect.
weak
His
has
managed by
a Council of three
officials.
He
no children.
Bilaspur.
Two
His aunt
of Bashahr.
io6
BHAJI.
Rana Rudar
Pal.
1875.
Rana Durga
Singh,
h.
Mian Parmatam
Singh,
b.
Mian
b.
Bije
Singh,
1850.
1842.
1844.
The Rana
father
by the
Government
in
181
5.
He
enjoys
powers of administration similar to those of other Simla Hill Chiefs, and he holds subject to a tribute payment of Rs. 1,440
per annum.
Rudar
Ran Bahadar, and became a recluse at Hardwar. Rana Durga Singh came to power in 1875, on his father's death. No sons have been born to him although he has married five wives. His territory lies on the left bank of the Satlaj, due north of Simla. The area is ninety-four square miles, and The revenue is comthe population over twelve thousand. puted at Rs. 23,000. Opium, celebrated for its purity, is an
fourteen years before his death to his son
article of
The
chief town,
Suni,
is
famous
107
IMAILOG.
Khushal Chand.
I
1849.
Ganesh Singh,
i>.
1880.
I
1841.
Thakar Raghnath
Chand,
3.
1866.
for
The Mailog Thakars have been many years. Sansar Chand was
settled in the
Simla Hills
Ram
was himself hard pressed by the common enemy. He was reinstated with the other Chiefs in 181 5. His tribute was fixed at Rs. 1,440 and he had to subscribe to the usual con;
when
The
territory,
present
described
settling
as
his
He
Raghnath
1880.
Chand succeeded
is
He
The
State
lies
The
area
is
about
fifty
10,000,
thousand
souls.
The
Nalagarh border.
io8
Dharam
I
Singh.
R^na
Sahib Singh.
Sansar Singh,
d. 1878.
Davi Singh,
d.
1872.
I
Parem Singh,
I
Kahan
^-
Singh.
Ratan Singh,
l>.
^-
1834.
1840-
1884.
81 8.
Gobardhan Singh,
(/.
Natha Singh,
^.
1870.
1852.
Atar Singh,
d.
1861.
iS6i'.
The
try
Balsan State
lies
The
coun-
The
after
of five thousand
The revenue
under
Rs.
6,000
The
powers of administration, limited only by the usual control over death sentences, exercised by the Commissioner of Dehli.
Rana
Sir Herbert Edwardes, writing in 1862, described the family as " thoroughly loyal united in themselves and kind to
;
their people."
Rana
He
died
age of eighty-seven.
Edwardes humora
Wellington
This
conspicuous loyalty in
He gave shelter and hospitality to several Englishmen who left Simla when the station was threatened by the Gurkha regiment at Jatog. Jograj was created a Rana
the Mutiny.
in
acknowledgment of
his
services,
109
public Darbar.
his
ed
in
the Chiefship
by
Bhup
Singh died
in
1884.
* Edwardes, who was Commissioner of Ambala after the Mutiny, has left the follow"Bhup Singh is the Tika, a fat, ing amusing note of an interview in 1S62 with this Chief heavy, but apparently well-disposed man, who speaks very slowly and with some impediment. Bhup Singh recounts all the Sahibs who have ruled in these hills Ross, Kennedy, Tapp, Erskine,-W. Edwards and Hay; and says they were all good. But and had bad Sharistadars who brought them into disrepute. Says that his soul fainted when sepoys mutinied in 1857, and thought there would be an end to the peace enjoyed in these hills under us."
:
no
CHIEFS
1813.
Rana Gobardhan
Singh,
d.
Bishan
Singh,
d.
Gayan
Singh,
d.
1867.
!
1864.
1837.
1
Zalim
.
Singh,
1886.
I
1853.
I
d.
Kapur Singh,
I
Hira Singh,
b.
Jawala Singh,
/'.
b.
1S59.
1878.
1884.
The Dhami
miles from Jatog.
State
It
lies
to the
and
reve-
The
at
land
The
Rana's ancestor
Dhami, when
Gobardhan Singh was twelve years old when and he wore arms at that Concerning him age and fought on the side of the British. " Lawrence gives him a Herbert Edwardes, in 1862, wrote good character for the excellent management of his country. He seems a man of more character than most." The Rana's loyal services in the Mutiny were acknowledged by a remis-
Rana
tribute
of Rs.
720
to the
Chiefship in 1867,
tribute.
is
public spirited
He
is
said to be
iii
RANA
JAI
CHAND OF KOTHAR.
Samar Chand.
I
Gopal Chand.
I
1858.
Rana
b.
Isn Singh,
b.
1844.
Son,
b.
1887.
The Kothar
ries
family
Simla Hills many centuThey were tributaries of Gurkha invasion. The State is a small
came
to the
in
Jamu.
of Rs,
1,000 per
annum.
The
present
Rana succeeded
manages
his father in
1858.
He
is
is
He
con-
112
113
RANA
JIT
SINGH OF MANGAL.
Rana
Pirthi Singh.
I
Rana
b.
Jit Singh,
1830,
i
Nahal Singh,
b.
Khazan Singh,
b.
1859.
1862.
1869.
The Mangal
Bilaspur,
to
State
it
lies
Satlaj,
near
which
was once
in
declared
independent
18 15,
Gurkhas.
He
the
only Rs.
tribute
by the
Jit
Government.
is
Rana
Singh
related
to
the
ruling
families
of
Bilaspur, Mailog,
Dhami and
Baghat.
114
BEJA.
Chand.
I
Man
d.
Chand.
I
Partab Chand,
1S41.
Thakar Udai
Chand,
b.
1831.
"5
Jathu
I
Ram.
Ram,
Rana
d.
Sis
1854.
1
1856.
Nahar Singh,
d.
Sita
d.
Ram,
1S8S.
1SS3.
1876.
Lachman,
/>.
Ilari Singh,
l>.
Ram,
1841.
1845.
1S48.
"
b.
1852.
Zalim Slnghj
Rana Ram
Saran Singh,
b.
Hanwant Singh,
b,
Hari Ram,
b.
b,
1857.
1851.
1854.
1849.
I
Son,
b.
1888.
Darkoti
is
excused
tribute,
being small.
The
State
in-
come
is
Rs. 600 per annum, and the area four square miles.
are unfettered except as
is
The
His family
in 1884.
an ancient one,
Ram
to
power
ii6
Jhobu.
Siam Singh.
.1.
Kahar Singh,
d.
II
d.
I
d.
I
1877.
Sidia,
Tikam Singh,
i>.
Dhian
Singh,
d.
Sis
Ram,
1856.
Rai Singh
d. 1887.
Rinkhu.
Mathra,
^.
1866.
1S67.
1845.
1861.
1880,
1866.
I
Sural Singh,
Partab Singh,
l>.
1887.
1888.
Taroch formerly constituted a part of the SIrmur State, gift on Kishan Singh, ancestor of the
When
the
British,
Karam
his
great age and infirmities his brother Jhobu held the executive
On
the death of
Karam
Singh,
In 1838,
however,
his
set
up
his claims
and
his
own
favor.
lengthy corre-
Jhobu was ultimately compelled to abdiSiam Singh. But the arrangement did not long continue owing to the intrigues set on foot by Jhobu and Ranjit Singh, who now coalesced. The claims of Ranjit Singh were finally acknowledged in 1843, ^^^ ^ Sanad was granted, conferring the State on him and his heirs in percate in favor of his son
The Taroch
but this
title
of
Rana
ceased
when
the
117
Singh succeeded
infant,
grandfather
in
1877.
He
and
his State
a Council.
ried
He
two
ladies
was placed under the management of his powers in 1883. He has marof the Bashahr family.
received
Taroch has an area of seventy-five square miles and a revenue of Rs. 6,000, of which Rs. 288 are taken in tribute by the British Government. The State lies on the bank of
the Tons,
to the
forests of deodar.
ii8
Paritam Singh.
I I
Singh.
Thakar Singh,
d.
|
Eikiama Sirgh,
(/.
Khushal Singh.
I I
Jfigat
a^i'as
1816.
I
1852.
Raja
Ajit Singh,
Bhawani Singh.
I
I
d,
d
1
1870.
d.
1841.
Ranbir Singh,
d,
Sansar Singh,
d.
I
1862,
1842.
1S51.
1849.
!_
I
Lai Singh,
^.
Keshri Singh,
d.
1
1872.
888"
Sangri
is
situated
Kotguru,
Kulu
until
State, and, as
bank of the Satlaj, above It was a portion of the such, was under the Lahore Government,
on the
left
the
of the Jalandhar
Doab
at the close of
In the
Raja Jit Singh was seized and ill-treated by the Sikhs. was rescued, and his captors massacred to the number of Ajit Singh took refuge in Sangri, on the three thousand. British side of the river, and died there shortly afterwards. His uncle Jagat Singh was the next heir, but was supersed-
He
weak intellect, by his son Ranbir Singh, who died at Mandi on his way to Lahore to receive investiture at The Sikhs then selected the hands of Maharaja Sher Singh. him Waziri Rupi in jagir. gave and Raja as Singh Thakar Government. Jagat British by the recognised His status was Singh, the imbecile, was appointed Thakar of Sangri, which
ed, being of
was separated from Kulu and incorporated with the Simla At that time his younger children, Hira Singh Hill States. Hira Singh afterwards and Sansar Singh, were not born,
claimed the Kulu jagir, but failed to succeed, as
it
was held
to
iig
He
title
per
annum
The
as
of Rai
in
1887
a hereditary
distinction.
He
exercises administrative
No
tribute
is
levied,
income
is
only Rs.
t,ooo.
The
120
BASHAHR TRIBUTARIES.
I. THAKAR
Puran Chand.
Bhagirat
Alam.
Chand.
Zalam Singh,
/>.
i860.
1864.
Kanaiti
is
situated
between
He
was
the
habit
of taking
who were anxious to put an end to this antiquated method of payment, an appeal was made to the Deputy Commissioner to fix cash rates. The case was settled to the satisfaction of the parties in 1886 and the Thakar now receives
;
of
to
whom
he
is
subject.
The
is
The
is
the neighbouring
BASHAHR TRIBUTARIES.
II,-THAKAR NARINDAR SINGH OF DALTHI,
Paritam Singh.
I
121
Padam
Singh.
Sansar Singh,
ci.
Barekam Singh,
d.
Nahal Singh,
d. 1878.
1S83.
1880.
I
Naraina,
1869.
Thakar Narindar
Singh,
i.
Gopal
Singh,
Kanhya,
i>.
187 1.
1854.
k
I
1867.
Deo
Singh,
i>.
Ragnath
Singh, i>. 1886.
1872.
is
tributary of
Bashahr,
paying
supremacy.
annum to the Raja in acknowledgment of his The Wazir of Bashahr is also entitled to receive
an allowance of Rs. 30 from the Thakar of Dalthi, whose gross income is only Rs. 600 per annum. The present Chief, Narindar Singh, has married a daughter of the late Thakar Saran
Chand
of Kanaiti.
family
is
The
is
I2Z
KEONTHAL TRIBUTARIES.
I. RANA
1873.
I
1836.
I
1840.
Tika Raghbir
Singh,
i>.
Gopal Singh,
l>.
Nahal Singh,
d.
1S70.
1873.
1865.
Bishan Chand
is
whom
title
of
Rana
for
services
rendered
He
assisted in guarding
when ordered
the suspicion
to
to proceed
to the plains,
;
of disloyalty
from Simla
moment
of panic.
The
Rana's
State
is
small
one,
having an
6,000,
area
ex-
He enjoys the adminisand rents. trative powers conferred upon all the Simla Hill Chiefs under the Sanads granted them after the Nipalese War. Rana
Bishan Chand has married a daughter of the Rana of Kathar,
KEONTHAL TRIBUTARIES.
II. THAKAR
123
1S66.
Hari Chand,
^-
Nand
i>.
Singh,
Nitu Singh,
d.
1840-
1855.
i860.
Shamsher Chand,
^.
Madan
d.
Singh,
Gobardhan
d.
1864.
mo. This family came from Bilaspur some centuries ago and settled at Theog, north-east of Simla, becoming feudatories
d.
i860.
Singh. 1870.
Karam
Singh,
who
levy from
them a
tribute of
The income of the Theog Thakar is Rs. 3,500 per annum, and the area of his possessions about ten square miles,
having a population of three thousand
souls.
The Keonthal
as the
long
Thakar
full
;
The
latter
exercises
require the
confirmation
of the
Com-
missioner of Dehli.
The
late
in
1856 for
Chand appointed
later.
in his stead.
A grant
is
of Rs.
to the father,
who
whom
he
He
Theog.
124
CHIEFS
Bhim
Chand.
Dhilju.
Riwardu,
d. 1823.
I
Chil Singh,
d.
1857.
Sanwal Das.
1868.
I.
Thakar
BiSHAN Chand,
b.
Ram
Saran,
b.
Gopal Singh,
b.
Raghnath
Singh,
b.
Davi
Singh,
b.
1831.
1842.
1844.
1847.
1855.
Kharak Chand,
b.
Randhir Singh,
b.
named,
1879.
1S87.
1889.
The Thakar of Madhan rules over one thousand subjects who occupy half-a-dozen small villages between Phagu and
Matiana
to the north of the road
is
The
is
Keonthal.
Hill States.
The
Chand
is
seriously in debt,
for horses.
KEONTHAL TRIBUTARIES.
IV. THAKAR KISHAN SINGH OF
125
GHUND.
Ram
d.
I
Das,
1866.
Bhajnu,
d.
i860.
I
Kishan Singh,
d.
1858.'
I
Two
named.
a tribute
full
of Rs.
250
to the
He
enjoys
administrative
powers
His
territories
is
His subjects number about a thousand. He pays a tribute of Rs. 250 per annum to the Raja of Keonthal.
T26
DARBARIS,
DEHLI, JALANDHAR,
PESHAWAR AND
DERAJAT DIVISIONS.
128
Order of Precedence.
o
.x;
Name.*
Father's name.
Remarks.
Dh
<
129
concld.
I30
Order of
131
132
Kama I
District.
Order of Precedence.
Name.
Father's name.
Remarks.
^
3A
4
5
36A
43
V.
V. V. V,
Nawab
Khan,
Arnauli.
of
Nawab
Ali
Mahomed
II
Related
No. 67.
to
5.
Khan.
55
Bhai Jasmer
Related to No.
44
45
53
Related to No. 4.
Nawab
Khan,
Karnal.
Azmat
Mandal,
Ali of
Nawab Ahmad
Khan.
Ali
45
Related
Nos.
106,
107,
to
108
8, 32, 105,
and 139.
8
47
V.
Kutabudin Khan...
42
Related to No. 6.
32
217
P.
V. V.
...
Wazir
Sardar
Ali
Khan,
Singh,
48
30
Ditto.
34 46
67
219
242 504
Ujal Singh, of
Dewa
Dhanaura.
Ram
Singh,
Ditto
46
Shamgarh.
V.
Mahomed
Khan.
Hasain
39 45
Related
II e a
to
69
Fazal
Ahmad Khan,
Fanipat.
of
Nawab
Khan.
Amanula
105
P,
Kamarudin
Karnal.
Khan,
of
Ghulam S h
Khan.
Ditto
55
Related to No.
Ditto. Ditto.
Ditto.
6.
106
107
P.
P.
P.
Akbar Khan,
nal.
of Kar-
49
...
Karam
Ilahi
Khan, of
Raham
Ali
Khan
r
46
58
Karnal.
108
in
139
634
P.
P.
Ghulam S ha Khan.
Sardar Singh.
Ka
p a
32
753C
Mahar
Ilahi
Khan,
28
Ditto.
AMBALA
DISTRICT DARBARIS.
^^3
134
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
concld.
135
Name.
Father's name.
<
10
II
10 iS
19
20
20A
21
32 50
51
54
55
56
57 58
59
60
136
concld.
Order of
J37
138
Ordi
'^Z'^
concld.
140
Order of
141
142
concld.
Order of
143
144
concld.
Order of
145
146
contd.
Order of
147
concld.
148
Order of Precedence.
<a
a o
c o
Name.
Father's name.
Remarks,
to
"ft
<
IS
V.
Savdar
Sultan
Jan,
48
Related
10, II,
to
Nos.
13
12 and (Provincial
List).
67
Related
17. 34,
to
Nos. 52 and
97
(Divisional
Series).
"3
V.
Fakir
Mahomed Khan,
Ma-
Ghulam Mahomed
Khan.
Is also
Sagri Pathan, of
khad, Rawalpindi.
123
V.
m Nawab
of
Bahadar
46
Related
to
Nos.
Sher Khan.
51 and 94.
15
132
V,
Muzafar Khan,
gash,
Banof
Mahomed
Khan.
Azam
68
Tehsildar,
Hangu.
l6
133
V.
Ghulam
Khan.
Haidar
46
Same
No.
family as
15.
17
134
V,
Khan Bahadar
Khan.
Jafir
Related to No.
2,
18
135
V.
40
30A
237
V,
Sardar Nur
Mahomed
Hasan Khan,
dhiana.
of
Lu-
Khan.
32
268
V.
Sultan
Mahomed
Haidar
31
Related by marriage
to
Khan.
No.
of
4,
33
269
V.
Sher
Mahomed Khan,
Ghulam
Kiani, of Shahpur.
Khan
55
Brother
90.
No.
34
270
V.
Khan Bahadar Nawab- Nawab Sir Khawaja 46 zada Mahomed Zafar Mahomed Khan,
Khan,
of Teri.
Son
of
No.
2.
K.C.S.I.
35
271
V.
Khan
Usman,
Khan
Khan,
Mahomed
Khan.
Amin
48
Same
No.
family as
15.
6.
Bahadar, Bangash.
51
287
V.
Related to No.
149
concld.
I50
CHIEFS
23
82
83
347
348 349
84
151
Baniiu District
concld.
152
Order of
153
Khan
District
contd.
Father's name.
Remarks,
25
154
Khan
District
concld.
Order of
155
Khan
District.
156
CHIEFS
concld.
157
159
DEHLI DISTRICT.
MIRZA SULIMAN SHIKOH.
MiRZA Bachu.
I
d. 1878,
Suraya Jah,
b.
Ikbal Shah,
b.
1848.
1853.
1855.
the
his
brothers
They have
Mirza
Ilahi
in
1857 was of
House
of Dehli through
and they are connected with the Royal Begum Umdat-ul-Zamani, daughter
Mirza
Ilahi
Bakhsh had considerable him by the Begum Zinat Mahal, favourite wife of Bahadar Shah, A daughter of the Mirza's had been last King of Dehli.
of Alamgir the Second.
influence in the Palace through the friendship borne
who
Ilahi
Mutiny.
Mirza
Bakhsh remained
rebels,
and
was able
of the
the
movements
and
to
assist
He
Christians
who were
cruelly
massacred,
ostensibly
with
the
King's
assist-
side.
Later on he brought about the peaceful surrender of the King, and helped Hodson in effecting the capture of the
Princes Khizar Sultan
and Abul
Bakar,
thus
dealing
the
of their
i6o
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
The
NOTE.
enquired
hereditary leaders.
into
at
and suitably rewarded. Hereditary pensions, aggregating Rs. 22,830 per annum, with effect from ist May, 1857, were granted to the Mirza and his
the close
of the Rebellion
To
him
of
Sampla and Asaoda in ment of India granted to the Mirza solely a perpetual jagir of the value of Rs. 5,000 per annum, and in 1866 released to him and his family the revenues of certain villages in the
Dehli and Mirut dstricts, yielding Rs. 2,226 annually. He was awarded Rs. 35,000 as compensation for loss of property incurred during the Siege. In 1872 he was allowed to borrow Rs. 35,000 from government. More than one-half of
this
assignment enjoyed by Mutiny from the villages the Rohtak district, the Govern-
of the
An
addition of Rs.
on the occasion of the assumpMirza Ilahi tion by Her Majesty of the title of Empress. Bakhsh died in 1878. His three sons now enjoy the hereditary
to his pension in 1877,
made
eldest,
is
an
M. Ikbal Shah
is
member
of the
i6i
GURGAON
DISTRICT,
1829.
Rasaldar
Midad
Kasain Khan,
Mufti Nur-ul-Hak.
I
Mahomed
Zafar
d.
Sina-ui-Hak,
d,
Mohib-ul"
Ali
1S31.
Hak.
Khan,
1849.
Muhih
d.
tfasain
Khan,
1870.
1828.
Ghulam
Mahomed
Khan,
d.
1833.
Raham
Ali
Khan,
Walait Ali
Khan.
1868.
Mahomed Sakajudin
Haiuar Khan,
b.
Shahabudin
Haidar.
1848.
Mahomed Alahudia
Haidar Khan,
b.
Mahomed
b.
Nasirudin, 1870,
Mahomed
b.
Safarudin,
1874.
1866.
with
Sultan
to
Dehli
and were appointed Muftis of the present town of Riwari. This honorable office remained with the family for some
generations.
Aman-ul-Hak,
in the
time of Akbar
Sani of
His grandson Hasain Khan served him for many years. was given the Subadarship of Bhandara in Nagpur and when the British annexed the State in 1853 ^"^ the death of the Third Raghoji v/ithout issue, he was appointed an Extra
;
Provinces.
He
died
63
in 1870.
some years
a Rasaldar in the
Nagpur Mounted
Police.
Mahomed
Nagpur
His
death in
Zafar Ali
Khan
Subadar
in
1849.
One
of them,
Hayat
Khan,
in
vi^as
for
at Riwari,
the Gur-
He
is in
receipt
of a pension
Abdul
was a Rasaldar
in the
of
for some years Judge of NagGhulam Haidar Khan, grandfather the present head of the family, took service with the Nizam Hyderabad, and commanded a small contingent under
Wellington
ed with
at the Battle of
title
Assaye
in 1803.
He was
rewardmafi
the
of
Khan
Bahadar, and
received a
Tahsil.
the Riwari
He
who was poisoned by his nephew Apa Sahib in 18 16. Ghulam Haidar Khan opposed Apa Sahib's attempt against
pur,
for
twelve years
command
of the
Nagpur
was driven
His three sons were also employed in the army. The eldest, Ghulam Mahomed Khan, succeeded him in the military
out.
Hasain, son of
of the local
Ghulam Macorps
at
cavalry
news of the Dehli Mutiny his exertions was in a measure due the reached that city. failure of the attempt made by his regiment to stir up a rebelHe was rewarded with a commislion in this part of India. sion as Rasaldar in the Mounted Police, and the bestowal of
1857, the
May To
the
dari
title
In i860 he was granted biswaof Sardar Bahadar. and jagir rights in Farakhnagar and Riwari in the
district,
Gurgaon
yielding
Rs.
6,000 annually,
subject to
163
1,500.
The
tinued in
head of the family. He is an Honorary Magistrate and Civil Judge and Sub-Registrar of Farakhnagar and he
the
;
President
tastes
of the
local
Municipal
Committee.
His extravagant
difficulties,
him
into
monetary
in the
hands
of the District
is
Court of Wards.
Mahomed
Nasirudin
College, Lahore.
i64
THE KARNAL
The
interesting sketch
is
DISTRICT.
follows,
which
of the
modern
history of Karnal,
Towards the end of the seventeenth century the Dehli Empire was fast and the Sikhs rising to power. In 1709 Banda, some time the chosen disciple of Guru Govind Bairagi, raised his standard in these parts, and collecting an army of Sikhs, occupied the whole of the country west
falling to decay,
of the Jamna.
inhabitants.
He laid the whole neighbourhood waste, and especially the neighbourhood of the Karnal, where he killed thcFaujdar and massacred the
In 1738 Nadir Shah, enraged at not being recognised by the Dehli Court, invaded India. On 8th January, 1739, he reached Sarhand, where he learned that Mahomed Shah with an enormous army occupied a strongly fortified camp at Karnal. He marched on to Taraori, on which he had to turn Here he learned from his guns before it would open its gates to him. some prisoners that the approach to Karnal from the direction of Taraori was through dense jungle and exceedingly difficult ; and that Mahomed Shah had no room to move in, being encamped in a small plain which was hardly sufficient for his camp, and surrounded on three He accordingly resolved to take the enemy in flank sides by thick woods. from the south-east. On the isth January he left Taraori, and, marching round by the banks of the Jamna to the back of the city, advanced to a Meanwhile he sent Prince Nasarula Mirposition close to the Dehli camp. za with a considerable force to a spot north of the canal and close to Karnal. All tills time Mahomed Shah was not even aware that Nadir Shah was in the neighbourhood. Just at this time a detachment which had been sent to oppose Sadat Khan, Vicero}'' of Oudh, who was marching from Panipat with Nadir Shah and Prince reinforcements, came to close quarters v^'ith him. Nasarula at once marched to the support of their detachment, which was The engagethe first intimation the Imperial arni}^ had of their presence. ment which followed was not decisive. But the army of Mahomed Shah, which had already been encamped for three months at Karnal and had suffered greatly from want of supplies, was now cut oft from the open country in the rear, and food became so scarce that a seer of flour could not be bought Thus Mahomed Shah was starved into submission, and on for four rupees.
the 13th of Februarjr yielded to the invader, who led him in his train to Dehli. In 1748 Ahmed Shah was met at Panipat by the royal paraphernalia and the news of the death of Mahomed Shah, and there and then formally assumed the royal titles.
followed, which
Rule, a time of horror vividly remembered by the people, and was fittingly ushered in by the- greatest of all the battles of Panipat. In the rainy season of 1760, Sndasheo, tlie Mahrata Bhao, marched upon Kunjpura, an Afghan town close to Karnal, which was then strongly fortified, and at which 20,000 Afghan troops were then encamped. He put the whole of them to the
is still
From
sword, and
pilla/red the
country round.
Ahmad
165
to cross the Jamna in time to prevent this disaster but at length he forded the river near Bagpat and advanced against the enemy, who There the Mahratas strongly fortified themselves. retreated to Panipat. The Uuranis encamped close in front of them, and for five months the two armies, numbering more than 400,000 souls, remained engaged in fruitless The Durani army had free access to negotiation and constant skirmishes. their camp on all sides, while they gradually confined the Mahratas more and more to their entrenchments. The latter had long ago consumed all the at length supplies wholly failed ; and on provisions obtainable at Panipat The Mahratas were the 6th January, 1761, the Bhao advanced to action. were driven into the town of Panipat, and of them routed, many utterly whence next morning the conqueror brought them out, distributed the women and children, and massacred the men in cold blood. The fugitives were It followed all over the country, and killed wherever they were overtaken. is said that 200,000 Mahratas were slain in this battle.
;
No sooner had the Mahratas temporarily disappeared than the Sikhs appeared on the scene. In 1763 they defeated Zin Khan, the Durani Governor of Sarhand, and took possession of the whole of Sarhand as far south Raja Gopal Singh on this occasion seized Jind, Safidon, as Panipat. Panipat and Karnal, though he was not yeX. strong enough to hold them ; but in 1772 he was confirmed in his possessions up to within a few miles north of Panipat and- west of Karnal, as a tributary of the Dehli Emperor. At the same time Raja Gurdit Singh seized Ladwa and Shamgarh up to within a few miles north of Karnal.
Recalled by these events, Ahmad Shah once more appeared for the time in Hindustan in 1767, and, conquering the Sikhs in several battles, marched as far as Panipat ; but as soon as he disappeared the Sikhs again resumed their hold of the country. In 1774 Rahimdad Khan, Governor of Hansi, attacked Jind but was defeated with heavy loss, while Gajpat Singh In 1777 Najaf Khan, the Imperial Wazir, marched again seized Karnal. in person to restore his authority. The Sikhs invited the aid of Zabita Khan, a Rohila Chief, who had rebelled ; and, joining their force with him, encountered the Imperial army at Panipat, and fought a battle said to have been only less terrible than that of 1761. No marked advantage remained with either side ; and by a treaty then concluded between the Rajas and the Emperor, the Sikhs relinquished their conquests in Karnal and its neighbourhood, excepting seven villages which Gajpat Singh w^as allowed to keep. But the treaty was not observed ; and in 1779 a last attempt was made by the Dehli Court to recover its lost territory. In November of that j'ear Prince Farkhunda Bakht and Nawab Majid-udaula marched out at the head of a large army, 20,000 strong, and met some of the minor Sikhs at Karnal. He made terms with these chieftains, who were jealous of the growing power of Patiala ; and the combined forces marched upon that State. While negotiations were in progress, reinforcements advanced from Lahore, the Karnal conlast
;
tingent deserted, bribery was resorted to, and the Imperialists retired precipitately to Panipat. About this time Dharm Rao held the greater part of the tract on the part of the Mahratas, and was temporarily on good terms with the petty Sikh Chiefs north of Karnal. In 1785 he marched, at the invitation of the Phulkian Chiefs, against Kaithal and Ambala ; and after some successes, and after exacting the stipulated tribute, withdrew to his head-quarters at Karnal, In 1789 Sindia marched from Dehli to Thanesar and thence to Patiala, restored order more or less in the country west of the Jamna, and brought the Patiala Diwan back with him as far as Karnal as a hostage. In
166
1794 a large Mahrata force under Anta Rao crossed the Jamna. Jind and Kaithal tendered their homage ; but the Patiala troops surprised the army in In 1795 the Mahratas once a night attack, and Anta Rao retired to Karnal. again marched north, and defeating Raja Bhag Singh at Karnal, finally wrested that city from him and made it over to George Thomas, who took part in the fight. He had, however, obtained thejagir of Jhajar, and making himself master of Hissar, harried the neighbouring Sikh territories ; meanwhile Raja Gurdit Singh, of Ladwa, obtained possession of Karnal. In 1798 Begum Samru was stationed with her forces at Panipat to protect the western fronIn 1799 Sindia sent General Perron, tier during the struggle with Jaipur. to whom the />(7r^aa of Panipat had been granted, to bring the Sikhs to order. He recruited at Karnal, where the Nawab of Kunjpura joined him ; but matters were settled amicably. In 180T Thomas made a foray through Karnal and Panipat, and then retreated to Hansi. The Sikhs asked the Mahratas for help against him ; and Sindia, on the Sikhs promising to become his subsidiaries and pay him five lakhs of rupees, sent General Perron In the battle that followed Thomas lost all his conquests, reagainst him. Safidon and Dhatrat tired to British territory', and shortly afterwards died. were then made over again to Jind by the Mahratas.
the itth September, 1803, Lord Lake defeated the Mahratas at the and on the 30th December, Daulat Rao Sindia, by the ; Anjangam, ceded his territories in the north of India to the allies ; while the Partition Treaty of Poona, dated five months later, gave the provinces about Dehli, from that time known as the conquered provinces, Immediately after the battle ot Dehli, Begum Samru made to the English. her submission to General Lake ; and the Rajas of Jind and Kaithal were hardly less prompt. Their advances were favourably received ; and in January 1805 they joined their forces with ours. The other Sikh Chiefs, including Ladwa and Thanesar, had actually fought against us at Dehli, and
battle of Dehli treaty of Sirji
On
whole year they constantly displayed active hostility, till they were by Colonel Burn at the end of 1804. In March 1805, an amnesty was proclaimed to all the Sikhs on condition of peaceable behaviour; but Raja Gurdit Singh of Ladwa was expressly excluded from this amnesty, and in April of the same year the English forces marched upon his fort of Karnal and captured it. Meanwhile Lord Wellesley had returned to England, and Lord Cornfor a
finally routed
The leading feature the withdrawal from all the recently-acquired territory west of the Jamna. And as that territory had to be disposed of, it was natural that the petty chieftains who had done us service in the late struggle even, if only by abstaining from or relinquishing opposition to us, should be rewarded. The whole tract was therefore parcelled out between
wallis had been sent out expressly to reverse his policy.
of the
them and
others.
The sovereign powers of the Rajas of Jind, Kaithal, Ladwa, Thanesar and Shamgarh, and of the Nawab of Kunjpura, were confirmed and they were continued in the lands held by them under treaty from the Mahratas, except that Ladwa was deprived of Karnal as already mentioned. The Jind Raja was granted the pargana of Gohana, and he and the Raja of Kaithal had the pargana Barsat-Faridpur made over to them jointly. The Mandals, Eight villages were made over to the Nawab of Kunjpura. who held large jagirs in Muzafarnagar, were induced to exchange them for so much of pargana Karnal as was left unallotted.
;
167
some
villages
Sardhana ; and considerable grants were made to people who had done good service, and notably to Mirza Ashraf Beg and Mir Rustam Ali. The policy which bade us abstain from interference west of the Jamna In 1806 Ranjit Singh crossed did not long stand the test of actual practice. and it soon became the Satlaj with his army and marched to Thanesar must be master in the tract. or we The events apparent that either he and negotiations that followed, how the Sikh army marched about within twenty miles of our lines at Karnal, and how we were compelled to insist upon Ranjit Singh's withdrawal beyond the Satlaj, are told in most interesting The Treaty of Lahore, detail by Sir Lepel Griffin in his Panjab Rajas. dated 25th April, 1809, and the Proclamation of the 3rd of May following, finally included the country to the west of the Jamna in our Indian Empire ; and with this event ended the political history proper of the Tract.
;
be useful to note the dates of a few events subsequent to the About iSiothe jagir grants which had been made in 1805-6 were declared grants for life only, and were taken under our police superBhai Lai vision. They were gradually resumed on the death of the holders. Singh died in 1816, and Raja Bhag Singh in 1819 ; and these two, with the of the Tract. portion greater Pargana Karnal was conthe held Mandals, In 1834 tinued to the Mandals in perpetuity on a fixed quit-rent in 1806. part of Jind and in 1843 the whole of Kaithal, lapsed to us on the failure of In the latter year parts of Safidon and Asandh were acthe reigning line. quired from Jind by exchange. In 1845 we confiscated the Ladwa estates And in bordering on the tract as a punishment for treasonin the Sikh War. the same year the Sardars of Thanesar, Kunjpura and Shamgarh were deprived of sovereign power, and reduced to the position of simple jegirdars. In 1850 the whole of Thanesar lapsed on the death of the widow of Fatah Singh, the last Chief of Thanesar.
It
will
treaty of 1809.
i68
O oo M
-
s a
J3
rC CO
goo CO
"
<
169
The Kunjpurlas
homedan
known
of the
MaThe head
of Nawab, and their jurisdiction was only lost to them under the operation of Lord Hardinge's order, dated 17th November,
as semi-independent Chiefs
1846, affecting
all
They
any existing tribe on the Peshawar Frontier has long since been lost. They marry amongst themselves, and all their social observances assimilate with those of their Pathan neighbours,
classed generally as " Hindustanis.
"
Yet
it
may be men-
nection at
of
the
Kunjpurias to
zais, that
be esteemed as genuine Eusafeven to the present day they are visited at uncer-
tain intervals
whom
as
by men of the clan from Attock and Peshawar, they receive with honor as " cousins," and who, no
as of
The Kunjpurias
are
credited in
having
come
from
intended
for
in
this
case
the
the
large
village
of Gurgushti,
the
Rawalpindi
the
district, is
Chach
and the Pathans of Gurgushti are especially given to claiming kinship with the Kunjpura Thus, in 1886, on the death of the late Nawab Chiefs. Mahomed AH Khan, a Gurgushti deputation duly appeared at Karnal to offer condolences, and to take back with
them the presents such attention was bound to secure. But here the connection always ends, and there are no modern instances of Kunjpurias having secured Gurgushtian
ladies as brides.
The
170
CHIEFS
lower
Nothing certain
Gurgushtis
in India.
is
known regarding the settling of the They were classed as Rohila Pathans,
and received employment about the Dehli Court in the early days of the Mahomedan conquests. But they were of small Najabat Khan, founded account until one of their number,
the fortunes of the family by his
own
He
for
land along
an
Jamna
as
it
then flowed
in a
channel
arm of known as
district.
He
in
the Bidauli
pargana
Jamna
marshes a strong tower which he named Kunjpura, or the His sons re-named it Najabat Nagar in his Heron's Nest. their but children have ever since been known as honor
;
Kunjpurias.
The
old
ed to Izat Khan, the Chakladar of Saharanpur, who advanced against the freebooter with such forces as he had at his
command
agent.
but Najabat held his own and slew the Imperial This was more than even the effete Mahomedan
;
Government
of that
Mulraj,
Governor of
Panipat, was ordered to seize the person of the rebel and produce him before the Emperor at Dehli. But he was
released in a few years, after the
promise of paying a
fine,
Najabat
Dehli
Khan
sided with
Nadar Shah
conquest of
and was recognised by the new power as rightful owner of the Kunjpura lands. Kunjpura itself was regarded as a post of strategical importance, covering the Begi
in 1739,
171
sarai at Gharaunda, in the direction of Panipat. It was the scene of many a struggle between the Imperialists and the Mahratas in the middle of the eighteenth century. In one of these castles, in 1760, Najabat Khan met with his
made by
who
put
the garrison
to the
most of the
his
the
neighbourhood.
in
Khan succeeded
revenge
in
the
following year by taking part in the battle of Panipat, the Mahratas suffered a crushinof defeat at the hands
when
of the
Duranis.
Ahmad
services
"
and those of
and confirming
fifty
Government,
him
in the rule
abad.
The
grant extended
lages in the
modern
divisions
Thanesar,
Shahabad and
active
Badauli.
assistance in times
Imperial
ser-
The mahals
in lieu
of Karnal
bestowed
of certain other
resumed.
Upon
the
this period
But he
lost
much
of his pro-
Khan was unable to resist this forward movement, and gradually lost what remained of the family But the fortunes of the Kunjestates west of the Jamna.
successor Gulsher
purias revived
1787,
172
CHIEFS
the growing
years later
we
find
Gulsher
had begun to Mahratas for the safety of their north-western border. Thus, Rahmat Khan, who succeeded his father Gulsher as Nawab in iSoi, was a personage of
Chiefs,
Ladwa
whose
successful adventures
awaken the
fears
of the
when
gathering strength
early
in
the
century to
crush Holkar
and the combination of Sikh States headed by the Ladwa Chief. His son Bahadar Jang was awarded a jagir on lifetenure in seven villages of the Karnal pargana, under a Farman signed by Lord Lake in 1806, afterwards confirmed by a Sanad of Lord Minto, Governor-General. We find by a
return prepared in 1809, that the Kunjpura Chief Rahmat Khan, with his brother Ghulam Mahayudin and their uncle Karam Sher Khan, were then possessed of one hundred and
twenty villages
yielding
in
Their holdings
a
were subject
the condition
six
of furnishing
foot.
contingent
hundred
Rahmat Khan's
annum, were, under the Governor-General's Proclamation, dated 22nd August, 181 1, confirmed to him as an independent and protected Chief. His son's jagir was situated in the Dehli territory, and was valued at Rs. 2,900 per annum. The Saharanpur lands were held on zamindari tenure. By an Italanama issued in 1809, the Kunjpura Chiefs were estopped from levying tolls and customs duties upon goods crossing the Jamna in the neighbourhood of their estates. This curtailment of their privileges appears to have been the subject of a remonstrance on the part of the Nawabs, for various sums were paid to them from year to year after 1813 by way of compensation for loss of revenue and they continued to
;
173
estate
Sir
civil,
criminal and
fiscal jurisdictions,
Government
power and influence which this by the unhappy relations of different members who have quarrelled with each other, and especially with the head of the house for
of the legitimate
Much
their
own
individual objects.
As far back as 1806 the differences between Rahmat Khan and his brother Ghulam Mahayudin, regarding the succession to the patrimony, terminated
to blows,
of cannon were used by the combatants within hearing of the cantonment of Karnal. The Kunjpura people were described
and beyond any other race in India, given to habits of aggression, violence and contempt of all order and authority." The aim of the younger brother Ghulam Mahayudin was to dismember the inheritance on the strength of an alleged custom, under which the sons of the Chief by his first wife were said to have right to share the patrimony
in
official
an
report
of
those
days as
" turbulent
unruly
CHIEFS AND FAMILIES OF NOTE.
Being unable
in
174
between them.
of a
to
prove
this allegation,
he
re-
number of
little
villages, equal
maintenance.
the
not a
bloodshed,
parties
referred
quarrel to
and formally agreed to abide by the finding in presence of Mr. Metcalfe, Agent, and his Assistant Mr. W. Fraser. Hereunder, certain villages were assigned to
arbitration,
Ghulam Mahayudin
for the
a proper maintenance, and not with the object of giving a separate share or splitting up his
father's
him
property.
The
grantee was
in
liability to
contribute to-
became
in
Had
as
to
of
Ghulam
Mahayudin
he must,
I
provision than
he obtained.
matter settled
But that was not the question, nor was the on any ground of right. The adjustment was
the
parties,
both yielding to
was more in the character of a rival than of a younger brother. His pretensions arose out of circumstances antecedent to our Rule. We had strictly refrained from interference in the The two brothers affairs of the petty States on our frontier. were at war, and if the scene of action had not been within a
one of our cantonments, and would probably have destroyed each other, or would have fallen under the The arrangement condomination of some superior State.
few miles, or perhaps within
they would have been
sight, of
it
left to fight
out,
me more
as
a treaty
THE KARNAL
DISTRICT.
175
his son
On
Govern-
male issue by
next
brother
He was succeedGhulam AH
remarked
to
"
Governor-General's Agent
to be regardlost in subjecting
if it
If the
be deemed be
in respectability
and authority,
left
for his
brother
should
in
Nawab's discretion." Sir Charles Metcalfe in reply (dated 12th December, 1836), laid down on the authority of the Lieutenant-Governor, North- Western Provinces, that " Kunjpura must be regarded as a principality, and the younger branches must depend upon the older for
support
;
the
amount of
this
On
the death of
in 1841, his
assigned
with the
Ali
Khan,
of
Nawab had
an
loyalty
by furnishing
a party of fifty
sowars to
assist in supin
another
176
Bhai
Sir
Ude Singh. The men remained at the Henry Lawrence for two months, and their
services were
duly acknowledged in a letter of thanks to the Nawab. was again forward in assisting during the First Sikh with carriage and supplies.
He War
Nawab Ghulam Ali Khan died in 1849, and was succeedMahomed Ali. His latter years had been embittered by violent family quarrels, instigated by Ghulam Mahayudin's son Mahomed Yar Khan of Biana. These undissensions,
fortunate
and paralyzed
of 1849,
crisis
when
have
for
in
the esteem
Ali
of the
Paramount
years
Nawab Mahomed
when
his father
Khan was
only twenty
died.
He
from the commencement, due to underhand intrigues of his uncles Shahbaz Khan and Janbaz,
of
amongst
the cousins.
They
poi-
soned
own
succession.
founded.
But the charge was declared after investigation to be unHis next trouble was concerning the succession to
cousin Tafazal Hasain,
who
died
in 1851,
and whose father Karam Sher Khan had been assigned lands for his maintenance in Ghir and portions of Kunjpura Proper. These duly passed to Tafazal Hasain, and his widow now set
up Barkat
Ali, the
The decision of Government was in favour Karam Sher Khan, excluding illegitimate
regard to the Nawab,
it
With
was held
were only
177
Karam
Sher's immediate
idle.
Mahomed
demand
reducing the
whole estate but this was finally rejected, in 1 85 1, by the Commissioner of Ambala. A fight next took place over the Nawab's reversionary rights in Mahomed Yar's Biana holdings, which dragged through the courts for m any
years.
The
Financial
Commissioner
ruled,
in
1857,
that
merely a
Ghulam
a separate
Nawab Mahomed Ali Khan responded to the Commissioner and placed the whole of his horse and footmen at the disposal of Government. They were stationed at Thanesar, and assisted in preserving order and The Nawab's service in supporting the executive authority. commutation payment was remitted for one year, and the demand was permanently reduced by one-half. The family quarrels, which had been allowed to pend during the Mutiny,
In 1857
call
of the
in
1859.
Amongst
other
enormities,
the
to the ground.
He
was
with
into,
the
Wahabis of
result
The
and the
communicated
ing of record
the Commissioner, in
:
inform the
requests you will Government, so far from the accusations made by informers having brought any discredit on him, the enquiries made have resulted highly to his honor as tending to show that, although efforts were made to implicate him by sending the messenger of the
"
Nawab
The Lieutenant-Governor
that in the opinion of the
Nawab
178
fanatics to
Nawab Mahomed
in
was spent
It
list
to the
last
attacks
made by
his
numerous
to those
offices.
relatives.
will
serve no
of the disputes
fuller
would be of no value
records of the public
disputes,
who have
But
in
access to the
the course
of these
by interference of the
The
sons
of Sher Ali
Nawab,
per
annum by
Nawab,
voluntarily
the
suggestion
Next, Faiz
Mahomed Khan,
who
died in
Ghulam
Rasul,
The
1884,
trator.
when
Mahomed
refused
compliance with the conditions as to service and obedience to the Nawab, which are usual in the family on the part of
those
who
receive maintenance,
as
to the
had been granted to others in the same degree of relationship, and that Rs. 293-7 ^ year was a proper
same amount
sum
for his
maintenance.
after
A
Khan
the death of
his
on the application of
son
and
in
Kunjpura.
to
He
gained his
so far as he
was permitted
retain
possession
of the
so-
ed to the Nawab.
In addition, the Nawab's estate has been charged with a life-provision of Rs. 1,200 per annum for
179
Ahmad
Hasan.
Finally,
Nazar
in
Mahomed, son
tenance
Khan, put
allowance of
Rs.
1,200
per annum.
dated
his
The
dein
cision of the
letter
1
to
in
888,
which
to
His
Honor recorded
is
opinion
that,
according
precedents,
"the allowance
reducible
special
granted
to
the
dies,
son of
unless
Nawab
is
of Kunjpura
when he
or
there
some
agreement
the
order
of
a
Government
ticular
or of the Courts to
case."
The
claimant
was
tax,
accordingly awarded
life-allowance
of Rs. 900
of commutation and
income
no
as
and
to
acquiescence
as follows
:
in
may be summarized
suit against
the
Nawab, nor
and that he
the
his allowances,
strictly limited
for
period
own
the estate.
Nawab Mahomed
stood third on the
Division.
Civil
list
Ali
of
Khan
died in
1886.
in
His name
the Dehli
Imperial
Darbaris
He
The
son
present
of
Ali
is
Khan,
eldest
surviving
property has
come under
management
He
The
late
Nawab
had arranged
younger sons by
death.
These
The Kunjpura
and revenue-pay-
i8o
as
of numerous
houses
in
named
place the
Navv?b
is
The
as
derived
from thirty-eight
revenue
is
In some of these villages the shared with Sikh jagirdars. In Taraori, for instance,
the Sardar of
Shamgarh
The
23,130
proprietary holdings comprise twelve entire villages and portions of forty-six villages.
These
form
Further mention
represented by
may be made
now
Ghu-
1am Nabi. A portion of the Ghir lands had been held by The remainder was so badly Jamiat Singh of Thanesar. managed by Ghulam Nabi Khan that in 1837, on the complaint of the cultivators, his judicial powers were cancelled, and in i860, in lieu of jagir rights, his nephews were awarded a cash allowance of Rs. 4,000 per annum. This is still
paid from the district
of
treasury, although
the
representatives
Ghulam Nabi
The
set-
existing arrangement
distinctly to
their
benefit,
inasmuch
are per-
tlement
is
they
the
mitted to enjoy.
cial
Ahmad
Khan's name
on
Provin-
Darbar
List.
Kunjpura Nawabs are so nunumbers so scattered that it becomes a matter of difficulty to trace up every individual. Many of Najabat Khan's descendants have disappeared for years past from the parent home, and have permanently severed their
family branches of the
their
The
merous and
THE KARNAL
DISTRICT.
i8i
Ghulam Mahomed
Khan, son of Game Khan, quarrelled with the Chief, after the manner of his kinsmen, and settled at Panipat. His children have married there and acquired lands. The line
of
Ikhtiar Khan claims a distinguished representative in Ghulam Ahmad Khan of Gwalior, Member of the Council of Regency, and author of many Urdu works of great literary
merit.
at
the Aligarh
College.
Two
mat
still
Ali,
of Sher Ali Khan's sons, nephews of Nawab Rahhave served Government. Ali Ahmad retired on
1889, and his brother
a Tahsildar's pension in
Asghar Ali
Ambala
district.
No
other
member
of the
family
The system
of splitting up the
above the
They
preferring sloth
to per-
which secures
sons less favoured by birth the larger share of the loaves and
life.
l82
Gurbakhsh Singh,
d.
I'/
66.
Budha
Singh.
Dhana
Singh.
Gurdas
Singh.
Desu Singh,
d.
Takhat Singh.
I
Sukha
Singh.
I
17S1.
Dal Singh.
I
Kaiam
Singh.
Charat
Singh.
Bhal
Singh.
Lai Singh.
Curd it
Singh.
Rasawa
Singh,
li.
1823.
Partab
b.
Ude
d.
Singh,
1843.
Singh. 1824.
Bahadar
Singh.
Panjab
Singh.
Gulab
Singh,
d. 1845.
Kahan
Singh.
Sangat Singh,
d.
1849.
I
Anokh
b.
Singh,
1834-
Nao Nahal
Singh.
The
history
is
that of Patiala
work of minor chiefships which were spread out between the Jamna and the Satlaj when Lord Lake first estabhshed himself at Dehli.
They
are of the
same
original
stock
as
the
whose
the
appearance
is
Dhar, son of Sidhu, was immediate ancestor of the Kaithal family, as well as of houses of Sadhwal, Jhumba and Arnauli. He settled at tinda about the middle of the fourteenth century and his
of a respectable Malwai Jat.
;
the
Bason
Manak Chand founded the existing village of Bhuler and Manak's grandson acquired many others around Batinda.
Bhagtu was a
a
title still
disciple of
c^Wq^l Bhai,
used by the family, which has had a semi-religious The next man of note status ever since the days of Bhagtu.
183
was Gurbakhsh Singh, who flourished in the time of the Patiala Raja Ala Singh and was his fast friend. He was a
very little of the saintly Bhai about him. and Ala Singh joined forces and went on many expeditions together, annexing villages on all sides and sharing the spoils. On the death of Gurbakhsh Singh in 1760, his posfine soldier, with
He
Budha Singh,
fort
the eld-
became a greater
Thanesar at Kahod,
Kaithal
from
Bakhsh and Niamat Khan, and he stripped the Sayads of The brothers were afterwards attacked their Pondri lands. by the celebrated Thanesar Sardar Bhanga Singh, the fiercest and most feared of all the Cis-Satlaj Chiefs of his time. Bhanga Singh made a sudden descent upon Thanesar, in which were two forts, held respectively by Budha Singh and by The latter surrendered a Rajput Chief named Nathae Khan. after a weak attempt at resistance; but the Bhais held out, and their stronghold was only won by a stratagem some years The Sadhwal Sardars were finally driven out of the later. Thanesar district in the time of Desu Singh's son Lai Singh. This latter Chief had been for some years on bad terms with his father, who had placed him in confinement, being anxious that the estates should pass to the younger brother Bahal But Lai Singh managed to get free, and after killSingh, ing Bahal Singh secured the whole patrimony for himself. He proved the greatest of all the Sadhwal Chiefs, and was regarded as the most powerful of the Cis-Satlaj Sardars, after the Raja of Patiala, at the time of the British advance northwards in 1809. He is described as having been a very able man, though utterly untrustworthy, and so violent and unscrupulous that the English authorities had the greatpreserve order in est difficulty in persuading him to his territories. He acquired immense tracts of country by
84
CHIEFS
sides
and he succeeded
in
for
many
enemy
and
Bhanga Singh.
having offered
treated,
He
liberally
and was allowed to retain the Ilakas of Chausatha and Gohana, under condition of furnishing five hundred sowars, He for whose support eight additional villages were set apart. joined the British in the pursuit of Jaswant Rao Holkar up to the Satlaj border, and received a Sanad acknowledging his services in connection with the treatv made on that occasion with Maharaja Ranjit Singh. In 1819, he was allowed to succeed to the share of the family estate held by a childless widow
of his cousin
Singh, which under the rules was justly Government. He had been a firm ally all his life of the Raja Bhag Singh of Jind, and on more than one occasion had come to his assistance in repelling the attacks of Georee Thomas, the celebrated Hansi adventurer.
Karam
an escheat
to the
Ude
Singh,
was of very
differ-
weak-minded youth, without ambition, and without the energy^ to keep what his father had acquired. During his Chiefship the disorder and affrays on the Kaithal frontier became so serious, stopping all trade and disturbing
was
a
He
the peace of the whole country, that a strong remonstrance was addressed to him and the neighbouring Sardars, who were in a measure jointly responsible for the good government of the district. Things were in this state when Bhai Ude
in 1843.
The
Chiefship, with
territory
the
acquisitions of
Gurbaksh Singh, the original founder of the family, was conferred upon Bhais Gulab Singh and Sangat Singh of Arnauli,
collaterals of the
deceased
in the
third generation.
The
re-
members of
annum,
fell
THE KARNAL
as an escheat to
DISTRICT,
185
the
British
Government.
They were
dominions had not been guaranteed to The Rajas the event of failure of heirs.
special
agents to
Greathead,
left to
had with them the sympathies of the Sikh Chiefs, and Instigated probably by secret intrigue, the people of Kaithal broke
out into insurrection while the
was
still
had
to
be captured at
The present
They behaved
the
in
Rebellion
of
1857.
Anokh Singh, son of Sangat Singh. both the Sikh Wars and again in Bhai Anokh Singh in this latter
crisis
of his own raising, and helped to patrol the road between Ambala and Dehli. Jasmir Singh's services were also valuable. They were rewarded with the remission of one
year's commutation charge, Rs. 3,577, on their estates; and the demand was reduced by one-half during the lifetime of
the Sardars.
Bhai Jasmir Singh lives at ArnauH, and Bhai Anokh Singh at Sadhowal. They exercise civil and criminal judicial powers within the limits of their estates, and they take
the lead on the
trict.
list
Rs.
14,600 annually,
i86
NAWAB AZMAT
Jalal
Khan.
Ghulam Muhaiudin
Khan,
I
Mahomed
Khan.
Atar
Ghairat A!i
Khan
Didar Bakhsh.
Sherudin
Mahomed Khan
(Branch No.
I.)
Rahim
Bakhsh.
Ishak
II.)
Ghulam
Sharaf,
d.
Basharat
AH
1849.
Khan,
d. 1789.
Khan,
(/.
1855.
Mahomed
(Branch No.
Amir AH.
I
Sultan Din,
(/.
1833.
|
Nasar AH.
|
Wazir AH.
I
Ghamdin Khan,
d.
1866.
Mahomed
AH,
d.
Shamsher AH,
b.
Ghulam
Kasul, d. 1880.
1
Raham AH.
1839.
1879.
Azam AH Khan,
b.
1862.
Nawab
x-Mimad
AH
Khan,
d. 1867.
187
titular Navvab of Karnal, is the head of Mandals which was found by Lord Lake in 1804, established on the eastern bank of the Jamna in certain tracts included in the modern districts of Mirut and
Muzafarnagar.
The Mandals
in official
of the
Jamna Doab
day
are described
in
the
documents
said,
to the present
but
Mr.
Ibbetson,
They
came,
it is
in Patiala,
;
living
and the
the
service.
members
still
hold
Patiala Chiefs,
under
whom
Samana was
and
its
have asserted
their inde-
pendence of the Lodi Kings, and even to have held the southern country up to the walls of Panipat.
The
to the
The remains
to
Thanesar.
From
appear to have
1805
for
we
find
them
Saharanpur
district,
having
neighbour Raja
con-
Bhanga Singh
tinued
to
;
of Thanesar.
In 1804 the
confederacy head-
ed by the Rajas of
was finally broken and in March 1805 a conditional amnesty was proclaimed for all but the Ladwa Chief, followed by steps for transplanting to the right or western bank of the Jamna those troublesome bands whose presence in the Dehli provinces was
oppose the
deemed
undesirable
on
political
grounds.
The Mandals
i88
were included
tion of
Lord Lake, who, in April 1806, reported that they had agreed to give up thoAv jaidad \?Lnds in the Jamna Doab in exchange for the pargana of Karnal, which would be held by the present heads of the family in jagir, and by their descendants on istamrari tenure. 1^\\^ jaidad or military fief referred to was claimed under a grant which Sherudin Khan, Mandal, obtained in 1779, from Farkhunda Bakht of Dehli,
when that Prince vainly attempted to arouse the patriotism of Mahomedan Chiefs of the Jamna provinces in opposing the advancing Mahrata hordes. The Sanad under which they
the
hold
is
Nawab
at the
but
the
title
was regarded
it
correspondence there appears to have been a desire to ignore and hand over the Karnal pargana, on the expulsion of the
Ladwa
force,
to
Raja
Bhag Singh
of Jind.
The Mandals
his brother
Mahomed Khan by
taining a
When
in possession
were estimated
annum
and
to accept the to
readily,
hold
been given
further
allowed to retain
It been assigned to him personally for services rendered. was on the express application of the Mandals that Government accorded the additional privilege, by order dated 9th
April,
1806,
of allowing
the heirs
of the three
Chiefs
to
189
subject
"to pay-
ment
Violent quarrels broke out amongst the three assignees put in possession of the grant
and this led in 1807 to a partition of the villages, under a deed attested by the Resident of Dehli, according to the
following: estimated annual value
:
Rs.
Mahomed Khan
Ghairat Ali Ishak Khan
,.
. .
..
.
. .
..
.
.
The
still
city of
held joint.
The Karnal
under
fort was taken from the Mandals in 1809 a compensation payment of Lord Lake's orders
;
made
It
was used
for military
it
abandoned, and
Education
for the
accom-
now occupied
as a Tahsil.
Provinces marched
through what
and the
cultivators, that
a settlement, which
was completed
and sanctioned
arrears
At the end of this term heavy had accumulated, and Mr. J. G. Ross was appointed His final proposals were ready to revise the assessments.
in 1856,
the
became Mr. Ross's assessment was thus a portion of the Panjab. The Government of the Panjab not sanctioned until i860.
I90
and their
except
management
number,
of the land,
in
twenty-four in
The
who were
border.
to
may have
proved
the Paramount
Power,
it
has
evidently
way
the
successors:
"The
in
no
constant and
bitter disputes which have been rife among Mandals ever since their first settlement in Karnal, have had the eftect which might have been expected upon Other causes, too, have contritheir position as a family. buted to their decay. As each generation increased the num-
all
of
the father, not only were relieved from the necessity of earn-
g their livelihood, but also felt it incumbent upon them to keep as far as possible the style which was traditional in the family on a reduced income which was quite insufficient for the purpose. Being almost without exception uneducated, they fell wholly into the hands of unscrupulous band of rapacious stewards, who found their interest in introducing them
i]
The
Sir
deca-
early.
In
1817
Charles
They have
;
suffered
much
established
Karnal
their transfer
from
the
Doab
their prosperity.
THE KARNAL
Their respectability,
years.
in
all
DISTRICT.
appearances, has
last
191
external
been
ten
is
my
to
may
be said
in
own
mismanagement
that
as
however,
be
admitted
something
;
other-
wise
why
did
not
I
Doab, where
ped
in a style of
considerable
is
pomp and
;
splendour.
Their
me,
present appearance
very different
and
their tone to
Of
by Mr. Fraser, very different under Native and British rule and this difference would have been felt even if the Mandals had remained in the Doab. In point of mere income, they have considerably benefited, the present revenue of the pargana being Rs. 65,265, as against Rs. 25,000 (after deducting nazarana), when the estates were made over to the family
in 1806.
The late head of the Mandal house, Nawab Ahmad Ali Khan, rendered loyal services in 1857, and these were duly acknowledged in a letter from Lord Canning to the Chief Commissioner of the Panjab in the following terms: "His Lordship is of opinion that the liberality of Government in the acknowledgment of the Nawab's services should be as
The Nawab's
by
services
testified
all officers,
From an opportunity of forming a judgment on the subject. the first, the Nawab openly and fearlessly espoused the cause
of the British Government, and his
out in
acts
He
neither spared
192
establishments and
as
this
all
his for
is
Conduct such
quit-rent
calls
marked
pleased
recognition.
to
The
Governor-General, therefore,
of
Rs.
direct
that the
5,000
now
paid
by him be
remitted to
the
Nawab and
and that a khilat of Rs. 10,000 be conferred upon him in as public and honorable a manner as possible. His Lordship also requests that you will deliver to the Nawab the accompanying Sanad, acknowledging the conspicuous loyalty of his conduct and the value of the service performed by him in placing his resources at the disposal of the British Government." In i860 Nawab Ahmad AH Khan was appointed an Honorary Assistant Commissioner in the Karnal district, and he exercised revenue and magisterial powers up to the He died in 1867, and was succeeded time of his decease. by his son Nawab Azmat Ali Khan, the present head of the Besides the present Nawab, there are two sons, family. Rustam Ali Khan and Umar Daraz Ali Khan, by a lady known as Lali Begum, who, in 1872, claimed a share for her children and herself in the property and emoluments of the It was then held in the Chief Court that there late Nawab. existed a custom excluding widows from inheritance, but that there was none excluding younger sons from inheritance, or reducing their share below that of their elder brothers. It was further held that sons of concubines legitimatised by acknowledgment, although the marriage of their mothers might not be proved, were entitled to inherit under the grants of 1806 and of 1858. Under orders of the Chief Court, a manager was appointed for receiving the share decreed to the halfin perpetuity,
Ahmad
Shah, a Sayad of
brothers have been fairly educated, and they are ing their own estates.
THE KARNAL
DISTRICT.
193
and private property of the Nawab in the were divided by a quasi-official proceeding in 1884. The same partition deah with the property held by him in proprietary right in the districts of Muzafarnagar and Mirut, as well as sundry rights in lands and houses
The
jagir
Karnal
district
in Dehli.
The income
Ali
is
understood to
Nawab Azmat
Jagir in Karnal
Khan
..
..
Rs.
,,
t>
..
,,
i7>59o
4)37
..
>
Rustam
Ali
Ali
12,128 per annum.
Jagir in Karnal
Rs.
6,174
35,132
8,629
,,
..
Nawab Azmat
sixth
Ali
Khan
is
List.
The
representative of
in
Mahomed
Ishak
is
Shamsher Ali
His jagir holdings under the recent assessments yield Rs. 6,307 per annum, and are spread over He is also owner of thirteen villages of the Karnal Tahsil.
Khan, born
1839.
two
entire villages
others.
He
;
Chairman was nominated President of the Municipal Committee in 1884. To the latter office he was re-elected in 1889. He has on different occasions received official acknowledgment of serelected
vices
was and
such as
a khilat
in general recognition of his services at a Darbar held by His Honor the Lieutenant-Governor of the Panjab at
CHIEFS
194
Dehli in 1888.
baries.
His name
on the
list
of Provincial Dar-
Fatah
Mahomed Khan,
son of
Mahar
Ilahi
Khan,
also
is
is
a Provincial Darbari.
in tv^^elve villages
in
He is
understood to be
which
lent
burdened
that
of Fatah
His uncle Karm Ilahi Khan is He holds a jagir of value equivaMahomed Khan, and, like him, is
it.
Azam AH Khan
villages.
in
He
is
reported to have no
left
holdings.
Azam
Ali
Khan
contested his
since 1881,
a decision
plaintiff's
Khan
is
now studying
in
has
now been
I.
definitely settled
is
essentially a jagir,
and that
special
assignment and the condition of a fixed amount, by way of fee or quit-rent, payable to the State by the assignee.
H.
That
preceding holder
in
195
each
fresh
sharer
takes
from
the
Crown and
in the jagir.
III.
That
the
power of sharers
to
deal with
their
depends strictly on the terms of the Sanads of 1806, and not on those of any regulations which
in force in
year in question.
is
IV.
That
not competent to
encumber
Khan and
jagir
great-
grandson of Ghairat
or youngest
AH Khan,
of the
is
at the
branch
family.
His
income
is
He holds seven entire villages and Rs. 5,485 per annum. shares in three others, all in the Karnal Tahsil, subject to
a commutation payment of Rs. 1,250 per annum.
He
also
owns
The
attached and sold some years back in execution proceedings, with the sanction of the Chief Court.
partly by a certain banker of the
by the
late
Nawab Mahomed
All's
Ali
Khan
of Kunjpura. a
feudal
tract,
Sadat
Samana
regard
in
suit in
to
this
brought
in
the
Patiala
Courts
1864
late
Kutabudin.
He
sued to
by have
on the
ground of injury
to
his,
plaintiff's,
co-parcenary interests.
The
decision
was adverse
to
196
complying
in
Ten
Khan
He
also
served as a judi-
He
later
on
for a Tahsildarship,
but he ap-
to pass
he has not therefore re-entered the public service up to the He has made his abode at Dehli, and rarely visits present.
his
home
in Karnal.
Sadat
Ali's
name
is
The remaining grandsons of Ghairat Ali Khan are Najabat Ali Khan, Kamarudin Khan, and Akbar Khan, all They are resident at Karnal, and all Provincial Darbaris. reported to be hopelessly involved in debt, and to have sunk Their shares in the family jagir into comparative obscurity.
are Rs. 4,815, Rs. 3,233 and Rs. 3,898 respectively.
197
Dharam
1
Singh.
1846.
Sarilar
Natha Singh,
d. 1869.
Lakha Singh.
Rai Singh,
d.
1S39.
I
Sardar
d.
Amar
1887.
Singh,
Sardar
198
head-quarters at Dhanaura. He was succeeded by his nephew Sahib Singh. On his death in 1846 there was a dispute amongst his three sons regarding the succession and the estate was divided equally under Government orders
his
;
passed
in
1848.
The
in
Sikh
the Mutiny.
Amar Singh
the
Deputy Commissioner, with a body of horse of their own raising, and in reward one-half of their commutation charge
was remitted
for ever.
Dava
Singh's death, in
1878, his
Singh,
who
claimed
the whole
based upon an
fought
were only
out
in
all
entitled to maintenance.
nounced
in
the Courts, and a decision was ultimately profavour of the younger brothers.
title
His name
attendance
He
ed as a candidate
Naib-Tahsildarship.
at
The
late
Sardar
Amar
an embar-
Amar
Man
Singh, whose
estate has
been taken under the management of the District Court of Wards. Sodhi Gajindar Singh of Anandpur, a relaon the female
side,
is
tive
a Viceregal Darbari.
The Dhanaura
199
Sardar
Chabil Singh
and Ranjit Singh, each one-third. The joint family estate and two-thirds of Dhanaura. The remaining one-third of Dhanaura, with Labkari and two
consists of five entire villages
Amar
Singh,
is
Rs.
For services rendered in 1857 the Sardar 2,985 per annum. and his uncle Natha Singh were awarded the remission of their commutation tax at Rs. 925 for one year, and the charge was permanently reduced by one-half.
2oa
d. 1830.
Jai Singh.
Fatah Singh.
I
Sham
Singh,
Kiipa Singh,
d. 1869.
II
d.
Kahan Singh,
1866.
1834.
Bhag Singh,
d.
Giubakhsh Singh,
d.
II
d.
I
d. 1884.
|
Sampuran Singh.
Jasa Singh, d. 1884.
Gurdit Singh,
1857.
1870.
1S69.
'
Gurbakhsh Singh,
^.
Gursaran Singh,
d.
1877.
1882.
The
came
from the neighbourhood of Batinda in 1770, and received the village of Shamgarh from Sahib Singh, Sardar of Ladwa,
his sister.
He joined
Sahib Singh
in
most
was taken. His daughter Bhag Bhari married Kanwar Partab Singh of Jind, who gave her the village of Asand Taiwan in Karpal Singh was on the occasion presented with dowry.
five
He
Singh.
The
and
his
Saga.
The
rest of the
Ram
and
two-fifths of
mauza
Taraori,
yielding an
income of Rs. 3,450, subject to a commutation charge of Rs. 426 in lieu of service. He is a Viceregal Darbari. He and his brother Kahan Singh did good service in the Mutiny,
20
one year.
Ram
Singh,
is
a candidate for
employment
is
as a Naib-Tahsildar.
connected
by marriage with
the
in the
Ambala
district.
He
in
is
member
all
The
village of Bhaini
Khurd
held by Sardar
Kahan
202
CHIEFS
Nawab
Shamsudaula Khan.
LiUfula.
Sarafraz.
Khaa.
Inayat Khan.
I
Mahomed
Fakar Khan.
Shakar Khan.
Hidayatula
Mahomed
^l'abiiudil;.
Jamihidin.
Mahomed
Ibrahim.
Khan.
Hidayatula
Khan.
Nasir Aii
AH
Kaza
Khan.
Khan
(descendants living
at Patna).
,\.Ii
Nawab
afar Ali
Khan.
1^37.
'
Nawab
llabhu
(i'alna).
Mehdi
I
Ali
Latfula
Shakarula
Ahsanula
Nawab
Amanr.la Khan,
d.
Khan.
Tofazal Hasain.
Khan
II.
Khan.
Khan
I
1SS9.
Ibrahim Khan
(Fatna).
Wall Ahmad
Ali
Nasir
Ahmad
Khan
(at Patna).
Ahmad
Khan.
alienated
Khan.
Nazir
Ahmad
Khan.
Have
1S44.
their ancestral
share.
Nasir
Ahmad
Fakir
Ahmad
Khan.
Khan.
The Nawab
his father
Fazal
Ahmad Khan
in
of Panipat succeeded
latter
Amanula Khan
in
1889.
This
gentleman,
who
He
and
had acted
for
many
Honorary
Committee.
Magistrate
member
all
He
was forward on
occasions in offers of
was
actively loyal,
town and
in furnishing supplies
THE KARNAL
for the troops before Dehli.
DISTRICT,
203
He
children,
from Khwaja Abdula Pir of Hirat, one of whose Khwaja Malak Ali, in the reign of Sultan Alaudin
Musud, grandson of Shamshudin Altamash, migrated to Dehli, his abode at Panipat. The family is undoubtedly of great respectability, being one of the very few in the Province able to prove beyond dispute that the highest offices in
the old
several generations.
Nasir,
whom
and with her he secured a portion of the Panipat lands ever since owned by the family. Twelve generations after Khwaja Nasir we find Abdul Razak One holding a high military command under Shah Alamgir.
intermarry
;
some years
Governor of Lahore
and a
to
at
the time of
Dlwan
to
Mahomed Shah
appointed him
title
of Shamsudaula,
and he bethe
Kabul.
of his
He
embellishment
building the
existence.
still in
Malwa during
it
salary
of Rs.
84,000
as
per
in
annum.
His
son Izat
Khan drew
the
same pay
204
charge of the elephant establishments, and ultimately retired from public life in order to look after his jagir estates in
later
on by
Khan who,
in
however,
released
one
Izat
hundred
Bahar Province.
years
after
Khan
died at Patna
1802,
thirty-seven
the
his third
who
home
the
first
He
was followed
whom
1837 by the late Nawab Amanula Khan, of mention has already been made.
in
The
Ahmad Khan,
many
has been
past,
favourably
known
to
years
having acted
illness,
was personally unable to occupy the position his rank and reputation had secured him. The Nawab is President of the Panipat Municipal Committee and member of the Local and District Boards. He also actively interests himself in
several
local
charities,
is
including the
with which he
unofificially
associated.
He owns
all
a large
zamindari property at
revenue-free, in
enjoys estates,
in
Bakhtiarpur,
in
the
Patna
district.
He
lands in
Many
of the family
their holdings
under
the
Mahomedan
and
the
disputes
to a
common
THE KARNAL
level of genteel poverty,
DISTRICT.
205
threatening a serious
future.
struggle for
settled
at
in
existence in
the
near
The
Ansarls
them have accepted employment under the British Government. Tafazal Hasain of Patna was for some years a Munsif in Bengal. Nasir Ahmad
though some of
in
the
Fazal
title
Ahmad Khan
will
no doubt succeed
list
to his father's
and
to his position
on the
of Imperial
Darbaris
in
the Province.
or
The family intermarry only with the Pirzadas Makhdumzadas of Panipat and the Sayads of Barsat and
Sonepat.
2o6
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
SIKRI.
d.
1807.
Bhup
Singh.
Mahtab Singh.
d.
1837.
Lahna Singh,
d. 1S69.
Charat Singh.
Jawala Singh,
d.
1882.
1867.
I
Bahvant Singh,
/'.
1884.
It
and dominated the country between was this Dhara Rao who sold
his services to the celebrated Diwan Nanu Mai of Patiala, and who, in concert with Raja Gajpat Singh of Jind, was the means of restoring the exiled Diwan, and with him his young master, the Raja Sahib Singh, to power in Patiala, Dhara Rao rewarded Bhag Singh's services with the grant of
Bhanga Singh
of Thanesar.
Bhag Singh
at
afterwards acted
Chiefs
Agra.
He
rendered
officials in
in the
ed him on a
life-tenure
in
On
annum
was sanctioned for this son Mahtab Singh. Sardar Lahna Singh was at the head of the family during the Mutiny. He behaved loyally, and his services were recognized at the time. The present Sardar Tilok Singh is heavily in debt, and the
matter of placing his estates
of
in the
consideration.
is
207
Singh.
I I I
Bhag Singh.
Ratan Singh.
Nirbhan Singh.
I.
Charan Singh,
Ishar Singh.
I
C.hatar Singh,
d.
1884.
I
Indar Singh,
b-
1875.
The ancestors of the Barthal Sardar were Sekhon Jats, who came independently with the Dalawalias from the Panjab
towards the end of the eighteenth century and
afterwards under the supremacy of the
fell
shortly
Ladwa
Chiefs.
Sardar Chatar Singh was the first of the family to whom was accorded the honor of a seat in provincial Darbars. He
in an embarrassed condition. His only son Indar Singh has been taken under the protection of the Court of Wards, and an economical scheme of
The Sardar
nue-free.
To
this
may be added
little
The
house property
fort
is
of
decayed
and keep
2o8
pared the
Ambala
The first essential feature to be grasped is that by its geographical position the present Ambala district was long destined to feel the effects of Hemmed in on one side by ever}' important campaign in Northern India. the hills and on the other by the great jungle tracts bordering on the Rajputana desert, Ambala was the central spot through or near which every
of invaders was bound to pass on the way to the battle-ground of India at Panipat, with Dehli as its ultimate goal. This main fact is still rePlaced in the direct track flected in the character of the village population. of successive invasions, they appear to have been ground down till they lost all power of resistance to difficulty, and the inherited attitude of submission to the inevitable has left effects which can be still traced even under the alIt is necessary to realise this to understand tered conditions of British rule. how the district fell, almost without a blow, into the hands of the Cis-Satlaj
horde
Sikhs in 1763.
The first direct experience of the Sikhs was in the time of Guru Tegh Bahadar, who roamed the country from Hansi to the Satlaj, and subsisted by Under his successor Guru Gobind Singh a plunder from 1664 to 1673. chain of forts was established at Anandpur in the Hushiarpur district, a few Chamkor in the Rupar Tahsil, and at Nahan in Satlaj, at the north of miles For the first the hills, commanding the whole eastern portion of Ambala. half of the eighteenth century there was no recognised leader of the Sikhs, who were, however, engaged in frequent struggles with the Dehli Empire, and were The storm burst at last in rapidly forming into great confederacies or misls. 1763. The Sikhs of the Manjha country of Lahore, Amritsar and Firozpur combined their forces at Sarhand, routed and killed the Afghan Governor Zain Khan, and pouring across the Satlaj, occupied the whole country to the Jamna without further opposition. " Tradition still describes how the Sikhs dispersed as soon as the battle was won, and how, riding day and night, each horseman would throw his belt and scabbard, his articles of dress and accoutrement, until he was almost naked, into successive villages, to mark them as his."* It is unnecessary to enter into a detail of the partition of the Doab among the different confederacies. It is enough to say that, with few exceptions, the leading families of to-day are the direct descendants of the conquerors of 1763, an aristocracy with no tradition but that of plunder, with no claims to respect as the scions of an ancient line, aliens and foreigners still, and with no sympathy for the people whose revenues are now guaranteed to them in perpetuity.
The history of the next forty years is made up of the endless petty warfare of these independent Sikh Chiefs among themselves, except when a
? Cunningham's History cf the Sik/ts.
209
to resist the encroachments of the more powerand Manimajra on the north, and Ladvva, Kaithal and Thanesar on the south. Each separate famil}^, and each group of feudatories strong enough to stand alone, built itself a strong fort as a centre from which it could harry the whole neighbourhood. Many of these are still in a marked feature of the district, recalling the extraordinary existence and lawlessness of a period when literally every man's hand was turned against No attention was paid to the country by the British Governhis brother. ment which had fixed the Jamna as the furthest limit for political enterprise, and it is believed that the profoundest ignorance prevailed both as to the constitution, the rights and the political strength of the supposed rulers. From 1806 to 1808 the position rapidly changed. On the one hand, the CisSatlaj Chiefs themselves were panic-struck at the sudden danger threatened In the to them by the rise of Ranjit Singh's power from beyond the Satlaj. three successive years 1806 to 1811 raids were made by Ranjit Singh in perIt w^as openly announced son to Ludhiana, to Naraingarh and to Ambala. by him that he intended swallowing up the whole country to the Jamna, and only could prevent his immediate it was realised that one Power and one On the other hand, the British Government feared a new danger success. from the north by a combined invasion of the French, the Turks and the Persians, and it was hastily decided to give up the Jamna as the boundarj'-, and to trust to the new principle of alliance with a strong buffer State at Lahore. At the same time it was recognised that Ranjit Singh was himself a source of danger not to be despised, and, with the Government in this mood in 1808, an impulse was easily given to the policy of active interference by the arrival at Dehli of a deputation represented by Jind, Patiala and Kaithal, to invoke assistance for the Cis-Satlaj States. Some help had been given to the British by Jind, Kaithal and Thanesar in the struggle with the Mahratas five years before. It was apparently assumed that the whole territory to the Satlaj was parcelled out among a few leading States of the same character through whom the country could be strongl}' governed, and the efforts of the authorities were aimed at the two-fold object of, on the one hand, securing an effective alliance with Ranjit Singh, and on the other, extending British protection to these lesser States ranging from the Jamna to
the Satlaj.
The overtures were eventually successful, and a definite treaty was made with Ranjit Singh en the 25th April, 1809, by which he surrendered his new acquisitions south of the Satlaj, and bound himself to abstain from The treaty was followfurther encroachments on the left bank of that river.
ed up in May, 1809, by the celebrated proclamation of Colonel Ochterlony, on behalf of the British Government, to the Cis-Satlaj Chiefs. This proclamation, beginning with the quaint wording that it was " clearer than the sun and better proved than the existence of yesterday " that the British action was prompted by the Chiefs themselves, is given in full in Citiiuiiighmn's History, It may be referred to by any one interested in studying the main charter by which the leading families of Ambala still hold their rights. It includes seven short articles onl^', of which Nos. i to 5 are important; Nos. i to 3 limit Ranjit Singh's power and declare the Cis-Satlaj Chiefs sole owners of their possessions free of money tribute to the British ; while Nos. 4 and 5 require them in return on their side to furnish supplies for the army, and to assist the British by arms against enemies from any quarter as occasion might hereafter arise. The whole document is, however, so short and so full of interest as the foundation of future difficulties that it will well repay perusal by
210
any one wishing to understand what, read in the light of subsequent events, appears to have been ahiiost unaccountable bhndness in the agents of the
were made to enforce good at Ambala among the endless semirecords of the time bear witness to the hopeless nature of the undertaking. They teem with references to the difficult enquiries necessitated by the frequent disputes among the principalities, by their preposterous attempts to evade control, and by acts of extortion and Year by year Government violent crime in their dealings with the villages. was driven in self-defence to tighten the reins, and every opportunity v.'as taken to strengthen its hold on the country by enforcing its claims to lapse by escheat on the death without lineal heirs of the possessors of 1809 or It was thus that the British district of Ambala gradually their descendants. grew up, each successive lapse being made the occasion for regular settlements of the village revenues and the introduction of direct British rule.
to
From 1809
1847,
persistent
efforts
Political
Agency
The
1843 the Government had done its best to carry out strictly the till then little necessity had arisen for testing the gratitude of the States, and seeing how far they were prepared carry out their promises to furnish supplies for troops and on their part to military assistance when called on. In 1844 and 1845, the conditions again changed with the disastrous campaign in Afghanistan and the increasing In the words of Sir signs of restlessness among the Sikhs of the Panjab. Lepel Griffin " The Cis-Satlaj Chiefs had abundant leisure to observe the
to
Up
* Cunningha)!!,
THE AMBALA
signs
DISTRICT.
211
of the
times.
money
and supplies were required for the English armies, they began to think that they were necessary to the existence of the British power, not that All fear of the Lahore monarchy was now over it was essential to their own. there was no longer a strong and sagacious ruler like Ranjit Singh, who made British protection sound pleasantly in the ears of neighbouring Princes and this protection now seemed little more than a restraint, without which each Chief fancied that he himself might play the part which, under similar circumstances, the Raja of Lahore had played with so much brilliancy and success." * The result was, that when called on to help in the First Sikh War the States were for the most part passively obstructive, even where they did "Their prosperity had been so great, not venture to show open hostility. the benefits which British protection had conferred on them were so undeniable, and ingratitude for benefits conferred is so certain, that it is no matter
;
for surprise
when
power which had befriended them, and openly or secretly joined the ranks of The more serious oftenders were visited with signal punishits enemies." ment. Their possessions were confiscated to Government, and in some cases they were themselves removed as prisoners from the Province. One hundred and seventeen villages were in this way added to the British district in Pipli by confiscation from the Raja of Ladwa one hundred and six in Rupar and Kharar from the Sardar of Rupar seventy-two in the same Tahsils from the Sodhis of Anandpur; and eighty-nine in Naraingarh from the Raja of Kapurthala. As regards minor Chiefs, less severe measures were considered sufficient, though the majority "had not shown their loyalty in 1845 in any more conspicuous way than in not joining the enemy. Gratitude they did not understand, and to show them any special consideration at the close of the campaign was unnecessary. Several most important measures were then adopted by the Government. The first was the abolition of all police jurisdiction in most of the States for the existing system was so favorable to crime that, in
;
the midst of half a hundred conflicting authorities, the capture of a criminal was well nigh impossible. The second measure was the abolition of transit and custom duties, which were as injurious to trade as the police system was fatal to justice and the last was to accept a commutation for the personal service of the Chief and his contingent."
;
These changes were not made before they were forced upon the Government by open disaffection or neglect on the part of the Chiefs to obey
orders which they were lawfully bound to fulfil. It was, however, soon found Hitherto the impossible to go so far without still further important steps. Chiefs had levied revenue from their allotted villages in kind an arrangement which left them free to rack-rent the land without any sort of restriction other than that imposed by the necessity for keeping the villagers from actually flying the country. The regular settlement of the British portions of the district began in 1847 and it was soon strongly urged by the district officials that the opportunity should be taken of once for all removing the grievances of the villagers by extending the benefits of a fixed money demand The proposal was veheto the villages still subject to the remaining States. mently resisted by the Chiefs themselves, and for some years they managed to delay the decisive step but eventually they were brovight to see that their own interests were concerned as well as those of the people, for the very
; ;
;
2X2
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
when once
still
significant reason that they found themselves unable to collect their revenue their police jurisdiction was gone. Partly for this reason but
lages, side
more because the existing dual system of cash revenues in British vilby side with collections in kind under the Chiefs, was rapidly provThe Government at last, in 1852, consented to finally ing itself intolerable. break the power of the Chiefs by enforcing the revenue settlement throughout the
"
district,
for ever, the power of too long been permitted to play at independence, which for them had no nobler significance than the right to do evil without restraint, and to oppress the people who were so unfortunate as to be their subjects." *
this decision of the
With
Government
the
petty
Cis-Satlaj Chiefs,
who had
ends the history of the leading families. Their has been defined and recorded with the greatest care. Pedigrees have been drawn out both for the leading Sardars and for the minor fraternities, whose descendants were even then counted by the thousand, tracing the descent in each case from the common ancestor of the year 1809, or subsequent year of status fixed as the basis for collateral sucThe year 1S09 has cession under the var^ang conditions of difterent jagirs. been recognised as the status for each of the leading Sardars, and even when does not lapse in their case becomes extinct, the jagir without a speline the There have been two imcial enquiry and the orders of Government. portant escheats in the last thirty years. The Sialba family of Tahsil Kharar died out in 1866, and fifty-nine villages, with a revenue of Rs. 26,000, passed to the Government ;andin 1S75 in thesame Tahsil a like fate befell the Manimajra jagir, the largest in the district, covering sixty-nine villages, with a revenue of Reference to the pedigree tables given for the various families will Rs. 39,100. show that many of the leading houses are represented by not more than one or two members, and it is not unlikely that further lapses will occur in the near future. Nor is this to be altogether regretted, even with every sympathy for the representatives of former power. With the exception of the Mir of Kotaha, the Baidwan Sardars of Sohana and Manimajra, the Rajputs of Ramgarh and Rai[iur, and the minor Pathan family of Kotla Nihang in Rupar, the whole of the existing larger jagirdars, and an immense majority of the lesser shareholders known as the patidari jagirdars, are still foreigners in the land as much as in the days of their ancestors, the invaders of 1763. They have not in any way identified themselves with the people of the district. They still look back on the Manjha as their real home, and if they notice the Ambala people at all, it is usually to recall the days when they had full license to oppress them, and to show too plainly vvhat line they would take if those days should ever return. The one privilege they have hitherto retained as the symbol of their former independence is the right of collecting their revenue direct from the villages of their jagirs, and even this they have frequently abused so grossly that it is not certain whether it will be possible to retain the right for many years to come.
This
position
practically as jagirdars
The general picture presented by this short sketch is not a pleasant one but it is better to state the facts than to give the leading families a fictitious importance by dwelling on their large revenues, and the proud position which they are commonly said to hold. The condition of things is almost unique in the Panjab. In addition to the thirty-three leading families with
*
199.
213
some Rs. 2,60,000, there are over five thousand lesser It is hardly too much to patidarijagirdarsdividing over three lakhs a year. say that these men have no aims beyond living on their jagir where it is large enough, and starving on it where increasing numbers in the family have reduced each share to a miserable pittance. As a rule, they own no land and The best of them are those who have look down on a life of agriculture. Those who returned to their native land and taken to regular employment. remain for the most part eithercannnt or will not enter the service of Governpleasure lies in stirring up useless dissensions among ment, and their greatest A few of the heads of the larger houses have been made the zamindars. Honorary Magistrates ; but with some honorable exceptions, the powers are chiefly valued as a means of gratifying private enmities. !_One man, and it is believed one onl}', among the chief Sardars, has had the enterprise to send this notable exception being in the case of S. Partab his son into the army Singh of Mainpur whose son Shamsher Singh holds a commission as JamaIt it difficult to imagine any more striking dar in the 5th Bombay Cavalry. illustration of the usele:-s lives led by these men as a class, notwithstanding that Government has done all that can be done to strengthen them in the Service in the position they are meant to hold as the heads of the people. army is, above all others, the profession for which they should be qualified, alike by their traditions in the past and their ample revenues in the present and yet it is only possible to indicate one solitary instance in which advantage has been taken of this ready opening for the families of leading men. For the rest perhaps the less said the better. The really influential men can be counted almost on the fingers of one hand, and family after family is chiefly noticeable for the frequency with which drink and debauchery have brought In not a few cases it is an open secret that their victims to an early grave. vicious lives have led to a failure of lawfully begotten heirs, and that extincwith the consequent lapse of the jagir to Government, have of the house, tion only been avoided through the extreme difficulty attending any investigation into the private affairs of the family--a difficulty which makes it almost impossible to ascertain the truth even where the facts obtain an open notoriety. It is, however, not altogether fair to trace the degeneration of character among^ these Cis-Satlaj Sikhs to defects in the men themselves. The position secured to them, almost without effort on their part, has left them in the possession of abundant means without the necessity for exertion to sustain their place as rulers in the land, and they have naturally sunk under the strong temptations of a life of idleness and comparative luxury. The lesson to be learnt from their history appears to be that no good result can follow from the creation of an artificial aristocrac}', and the state of things in the Ambala district makes it easy to understand the bitterness of the discussion when a similar question aftecting the true Panjab came for decision before the Board of Administration in the early days of annexation. It may perhaps be added that, viewed in the experience of Ambala, there is much cause for congratulation that the sterner policy of John Lawrence caused that question to be finally decided in the Panjab on lines which effectually prevented the repetition of Ambala difBculties elsewhere.
It only remains to add that the question of commutation for military service has remained settled on the lines of the orders of 1846. The general rule is that two annas are paid to Government for each rupee of jagir revenue. This was the rule governing all the leading families and the great majority of the patidari jagirdars, including all those who were recognised as entitled to the superior status of 1809. A comparatively small number of the
214
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
patidars, chiefly in the Rupar and Naraingarh Tahsils, were given an inferior status on special grounds, and in their case the commutation paid is usually four annas in the rupee for the first and eight annas for succeeding generations. During the Mutiny many of the leading Sardars did good service by providing small forces as guards to the Tahsii buildings and hold to important posts on the lines of communication, and these services were gratefully acknowledged by a permanent reduction in their rate of commutation to one anna in the rupee. Subject to these small payments almost the whole of the jagirs of the district are now held in perpetuity on the sole condition of continuance of heirs in the direct line from the common ancestor of the recognised year of status.
215
2i6
tenure by
and Gulab Singh, the widows taking certain villages in lifeway of maintenance. Gulab Singh ultimately suchis
in
He
Singh,
Buria was
disfranchised
War, their criminal, civil and fiscal juriswas annulled, and their lands came under the operalaw as administered
Satlaj
in the Panjab generally. campaigns Sardar Jiwan Singh's
of the
with
conspicuous loyalty.
In
the
war
50,000 on
During the Mutiny the to the military treasury. young Sardar himself commanded a body of twenty horse-
men and
at his
eighty-six footmen
locally
raised
and maintained
some
of
weeks.
He
on
this occasion
sum
money
to assist
the
authorities
Singh
is
He
is
one
Ambala
He was
honored
in
Indian Empire,
and
his rents
amount
annum.
The Sardar
THE AMBALA
DISTRICT.
217
Sardar
Karam
d.
Singh,
1808.
Raniil Singh.
Sher Singh.
I
Kharak Singh,
d. 1S31.
Kesra Singh.
d.
-]
1
1863.
Partab Singh,
d.
1878.
i
Dharam
I
Singh,
Kishan Singh,
d.
d. 1879.
1880.
I
Ram Naram
Singh,
b.
Sheo Narain
SiNOH,
b.
Bachatar Singh,
d.
1870.
1S69.
1877.
adven-
His cousin Himat Singh pushed on turer from the Manja. his conquests in 1763 so as to embrace the whole of the Shahabad district, a large portion of which he shared with
his followers Bhagw^an
in 1775,
Singh and Diwan Singh. He died and was succeeded by his nephew Karam Singh, whom he had adopted. He was friendly with the Moghal Governors, and received from Ahmad Shah a jagir in the Shikarpur Taluka and the title of Sardar for services Most of his lands were, however, wrested from rendered.
his sons shortly after his death.
In
Kishan Singh and Dharam Singh, in the Ambala district, were assessed at Rs. 5,800 per annum, subject to a service commutation charge ofRs. 613. The family behaved well in both the Satlaj campaigns and in the rebelThe present representatives are Sardars Sheo lion of 1857.
Singh,
Narain,
Darbaris.
Ram
Narain,
all
Viceregal
2l8
CHIEFS
219
or
martyrs.
Sirdar
Jiwan Singh,
Shahzadpuria,
is
the
leading
is
included
among the
thirty-four
districts.
Sardars Kishan
Singh and Jasmer Singh are at the head. Their ancestor Gurbakhsh Singh came from Gangobuha, a village in the Taran Taran Tahsil of Amritsar, where many members of He was a worshipper at the Damdama the family still live. Temple, and became a recognized leader of the Shahid Confederacy with Dharam Singh and Karam Singh, ancestors of They started on a career of conthe Shahzadpuria Sardar. and of the spoils Gurbakhsh of the Satlaj, quest on this side Singh received many
rich villages in
the
bet
tracts
of the
Markanda
river.
On
the death
of
Daya Singh,
son
of
Gurbakhsh Singh, the estate was divided amongst his two sons and one grandson Chatar Singh. Lai Singh, one of the sons, was dispossessed in 1839 for the murder of his brother's Two of his villages were made over to his nephew wife.
Chatar Singh, and the remainder were allowed to pass to his
son
Harnam
reinstated.
in 1844,
Lai Singh
was
Singh had received as blood-money were resumed by Government on his death in 1847, and his other possessions fell to his uncle
villages which Chatar
The two
Jawahar Singh.
father's
own
share,
These are now held, together with their by Sardars Kishan Singh and Jasmer
a life-interest.
he only holds on
This
latter
yields
valued at Rs. 7,707, after deducting the usual comfamily behaved well in the Sikh wars
mutation charge of two annas per rupee of the assessed revenue. the
The
and during
supply of
rebellion
of 1857
in the
the
troops
at
Dehli.
Their
220
sowars were posted in charge of the Police Stations of Rajanoh and Asandh-Salwan within the Hmits of their estates.
The Sardars
be made
in this history
He
was
his
weigh out one-and-a-half maunds of gold every morning as an offering to the Brahmins, and to weigh in as much flour and ghi for his own sustenance. Needless to say, he must have been both rich and powerful. This is all they
wont
to
of so
much they
Both
THE A MB ALA
DISTRICT.
221
Karam
d,
Singh,
1808.
1845.
I I
Tawahar Singh,
d. 1857.
Sardar
<i-
Jit
Singh,
Ugar Singh,
d. 1S51.
1852.
Santokh Singh,
I
Har Bhagat
Singh,
d.
Sardar Jawala
Singh,
b,
Bishan
Singh.
Kishan' Singh,
b.
1S81.
1864.
1839.
Gajindar Singh,
Nao Nahal
Singh.
b.
1874.
Mahindar Singh,
b.
Davindar Singh,
/'.
1876.
1S67.
Sardar Jawala Singh's best known ancestor was Chuhar Singh of Chang, near Kasur. He was a near relative of
Sardar Rai Singh Bhangi, the conqueror of Jagadhri and Dayalgarh, and a prominent member of the Shahid Misal.
He
He
and
returned to Amritsar,
where he held charge of the Shahid Bunga for many years. He acquired much land on either side of the Ravi, and was accounted one of the most powerHe placed his younger son Mahar ful Sardar of his day. Singh
in
Karam
Singh,
Singh on Karam Singh's death, sonless, in 1808. In the meanwhile Mahar Singh was faring almost as badly at Jarauli for Sardar Bhanga Singh of Thanesar took advantage
;
to
wrest
10,000 revenue.
Mahar Singh
which
the
arrangements
brought
22 2
his
the
British
Govdeath,
ernment
in 1845,
1809.
Since then
his family
have enjoyed a
his
Just
before
will, giving-
three out
of ten shares of his estate to each of his three sons, and onetenth in addition to the second. Jit Singh,
whom
he desired to
Jit
in the
Chiefship.
Sardar
Singh
who
now
at the
The family has on all occasions proved loyal to the BriGovernment. Sardar Jawala Singh holds the village of Fatehgarh Atri in his sole possession as head of the house. The remaining villages of Jarauji and Ajrana are shared equaltish
ly
family.
The
is
Rs. 789.
ment School.
He
is
Singh, Jagirdar of
Khamanun.
223
1771.
Desu Singh,
d.
Makki,
d.
1775.
1777.
I
Mahtab Singh,
d.
1796.
Jodh Singh,
d.
Ratan Singh,
d.
1796.
1843.
Dava Singh,
d.
Gursaran
Singh.
1862.
Sundar Singh,
d.
Kahan Singh,
d.
1832.
I
1880.
I
187
1.
Jawahar Singh,
b.
Narain Singh,
1879.
18S0.
When
Desu Singh,
now
in
the
was
ceeded by his nephew Mahtab Singh, who obtained possesHis eldest son Jodh Singh, who sion of the whole estate.
followed him, was slain in 1796 at Biana, fighting against
One of Mahtab Singh's widows, Masamat Mahratas. Gauran, then managed to secure possession. After a time her claim was disputed by Jodh Singh's younger brother
the
Ratan Singh, who wrested Dera and Tandwala from her. He appears to have surrendered these villages as the price of
protection to Sardar
Thanesar,
of
to
Bhanga Singh, the powerful Chief of who gave him Talheri in exchange. On the death Masamat Gauran, in 1833, the whole estate was made over
Ratan Singh, whose grandson Tilok Singh and greatgrandson Naina Singh are now in possession. Naina Singh is a minor under the Court of Wards. Tilok Sinsrh was
formerly a
member
During the
24
One
The
in
jagir
of eight
of which
seven are
The
the
is
Rs. 2,340.
Tilok Singh's
the
name and that of his nephew Naina Singh appear on Ambala List of Viceregal Darbaris.
225
1812.
I
1 I
Fatah Singh,
d.
Dava Singh,
d.
Amir Singh,
d. 1842.
1847.
1877.
Sangat Singh.
I
Teja
Singh,
b.
Hira Singh,
b.
Makhan
Singh,
b.
Sahib Singh,
b.
Partab Singh,
b.
1848.
1836.
1840.
Gurdit Singh,
b.
1836.
1849.
1863.
Zorawar
b.
Sin--rh, "^
Abha
b,
Singh,
1875.
Balwant Singh,
b.
Bhagwant Singh,
b.
1868.
187
1.
18S0.
Sadar Sahib Singh's ancestors belonged to the Karora Singhia Jat Misal, of which the Ambala Kalsiasare a branch. Nodh Singh, the great-grandfather of Sahib Singh, came
from Kalsia Kalsia, and
extinct.
in the
Karam Singh
whose family
in the
is
now
When
Ambala
Leda
eastern
equivalent to
the
;
services
of two hundred
descendants
in the
reside.
The Leda
composed of two
entire villages
and shares
in
six villages of
The
jagirdars are
number and
Sahib Singh's share being Rs. 582. The family maintained some police levies during the Mutiny, and as a reward receiv-
for
one
:226
The title of Sardar is usually bestowed upon the most worthy member, independently of his position in the pedigree table. Thus Dava Singh succeeded Jit Singh, and was followed by Sahib Singh, the present head of the family.
year.
is
a Viceregal Darbari.
227
Baia Singh.
I
Bhagwan Singhj
d.
181 2.
I
Jawahar Singh,
d.
1812.
I
Rai Singh, d. 1 80 c.
I
Singh), 1828.
and
dau!.;hter of
Basant Singh,
d. 1871.
Jaswant Singh.
I
Karpal Singh,
d.
Lai Singh,
d.
Sant Singh.
1861.
i868.
Harnam
But Singh.
I
Singh,
Hardit Singh,
b.
d,
1861.
1844.
I
Sobha Singh,
b.
1869.
Didar
Singh,
d. 1887.
Kartar Singh,
b.
1857.
I
Ajit Singh,
d.
1
880.
Sardar Rai Singh and his brother Bhag Singh set out
1760 from their home near Kasur to seek their fortune below the Satlaj. They were Bhangi Jat Sikhs; and in
in
their
company was
the celebrated
Nanu
bold.
a few years
they found themselves masters of the Jagadhri country, and built themselves a fort near Buria, which they named Dayalgarh, and
made
their head-quarters.
the
vil-
containing eighty-four
of Sardar
Rai Singh.
He
died
228
CHIEFS
Chiefship to his
who
He
was the
Sardar of Jagadhri.
it
by the
death
British Political
His widows fought was divided equally between them Agent. To Mai Daya Kaur fell the
Mai Sukhan took over the Dayalgarh villages and held them until 1852. She was a daughter of Sardar Kishan Singh of Khanpura. After her death her blood relations were allowed to succeed her in a portion of the jagir in default of next of kin of her deceased husband. These were her nephews Harnam Singh and Hardit Singh, and her three brothers, as shown in the pedigree table. They took over the villages of Khajuri (Jagadhri) and Jatlanaon (Pipli) on a life-tenure. Hardit Singh is still in the enjoyment of his share, which is valued at Rs. 1,100 per annum. The other shares have lapsed by reason of the death of the grantees. Sardar Hardit Singh lives at Dayalgarh, where he owns some
land.
He
is
man
is
of
little
come
prominently forward.
He
in
is
His son
Sobha Singh
reported to be a
a Government school.
in
sons of Sardar Karpal Singh, the elder, Didar Thanadar of Police in the North-Western Provinces, and Kartar Singh is the manager of the estate of the minor Guru Nao Nahal Singh of Kartarpur. Mai Gayan Kaur, widow of Sardar Lai Singh, receives a compassionate allowance of Rs. 300 annually.
Of the
is
Singh,
THE AMBALA
DISTRICT.
229
230
Ambala
district.
The
status
;
but,
ranks second
among
The present Sardar Jiwan Singh was educated in the Government Wards School of Ambala. He is a Honorary Magistrate, and as a Honorary Civil Judge holds the powers of a Munsif for the trial of suits up to Rs. 500 in value. He is also a member of the District Board and of the Committee of Management of the Aitchison College at Lahore. He is a man of excellent character, and commands universal respect. The family holds the title of Mushfiq Jlla/irbaii, but is more commonly known by the native
title of Shahid, which ensures it respect from the Sikhs throughout the Panjab. The present Sardar was married
in 1884 to a sister of the Maharaja of Patiala, an alliance which has much increased the dignity and prominence of the
house.
31
232
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
sufficiently strong
family name.
The Manauli
jagir
is
made up
as follows
Rupar 57
..
Total
34,100
From
anna
in
this
for
military
and one
by Sardar
Jai Singh.
is still
Aitchison College,
Lahore.
The
estate
has
been now
two generations almost continuously under the Court of Wards, and is very rich owing to the careful nursing
for
of British authorities.
also a large
sum
invested
name
herits
Government Securities. He unfortunately ina weak constitution, and although the greatest pains
in
his
education,
it
is
doubtful whether
do
which he
will
succeed on
THE LUDHIANA
DISTRICT.
253
234
the
Mulk
of Kabul.
home of the children of Shah Shujah-ulThe circumstances under which that unlost a
fortunate
only be touched
upon
his capital
after
Panjab
in
1799,
IVIahmud,
who took
But the blind monarch was speedily avenged by another brother Shujahul-Mulk, who, in 1803, deposed Mahmud, and installed himself as Ruler of Afghanistan. Seven years later, Shah Shujah was, in his turn, driven out by Mahmud, and forced to seek assistance from Maharaja Ranjit Singh. This he did
not receive, although the Sikh Chief used the King's
in
name
The expedition was a failure. After holding Peshsome months, and trying in vain to establish his sovereignty over Multan, Shah Shujah one day found himself a prisoner in the hands of Jahan Dad Khan, Afghan Governor of Attock, who deported him to Kashmir, and had him kept there for over a year. He was released by Wazir Fatah Khan, who had crossed the Indus to re-assert Afghan
himself.
awar
In
181 3 he
visted Lahore,
still
him to re-conquer his kingdom. There Ranjit Singh exchanged turbans with him as a token of the sincerest friendship, and after a little manoeuvring, induced him to give up the KoJi-i-Nur diamond, which the Maharaja had longed to possess. Shah Shujah was now made to perceive that his presence was only desirable in so far as it enabled the Maharaja to take action against Kashmir in his name. He managed to remove the ladies of his family to Ludhiana without Ranjit Singh's knowledge, and himself fled shortly after to the Kishtwar Valley, whence, aided by the local Chief, he made an abortive
help
who would
235
and crossing the Satlaj high up, came round to Ludhiana in September, 1816, having kept well out He was of the Maharaja's reach throughout the journey. granted an allowance of Rs. 50,000 per annum by the British
and was treated with the respect due to But Shah Shujah's nature was too restless In 181 8 he to allow him to sit long inactive at Ludhiana. receivand Kabul, towards travels again started on his seized Dera Bahawalpur, Nawab of the from ino- assistance
Government,
his
rank.
Ghazi Khan, while his son Timur marched further south and took possession of Shikarpur. He proceeded along the Indus to Peshawar,, where he was successfully opposed by Mahomed Azim Khan, Wazir of Ayub Khan, and obliged Thence he was driven, step to take refuge in the Khaibar.
by step, back to Shikarpur, and finally found himself once more a refugee at Ludhiana after wandering for months through Rajputana and the Eastern Panjab. Here he met his blind brother. Shah Zaman, who, after nearly similar adventures, had also become a guest of the British Government. This was in 1821, Twelve years later the Shah
again set out for the recovery of his patrimony,
now
in the
hands of the Amir Dost Mahomed Khan. His English hosts had told him that they had no objection to his making the attempt, though they could not promise a continuance of hospitality were he again, through stress of circumstances, obliged to knock at their door. He had with him about three
thousand armed followers and two lakhs of rupees.
The
Bahawalpur Nawab gave him a gun and some camels. He defeated the Sindians at Shikarpur, and levied from the towns-people a contribution of five lakhs. Thus enriched, he proceeded towards Kandahar, but remained in that neighbourhood only until Dost Mahomed had time to march down from Kabul and administer to him a crushing defeat. Once more he was forced to turn towards Hindustan for safety
236
and once more the English gave him shelter at Ludhiana. In money he was half a lakh richer but in prestige more damaged than ever. Next came the triple alliance for the subversion of the power of the Barakzais, broken by the death of the Maharaja in 1839, and followed by the return to Kabul of Shah Shujah and the re-establishment of his dominion with the aid of British troops and British money. The unfortunate Shah Shujah was assassinated immediately after the disaster to our Kabul Garrison in 1842; and his family, no longer able to hold head against Dost Mahomed's faction, returned to their asylum at Ludhiana,
;
since.
Shahzada Nadar, youngest son of Shah Shujah, is now head of the family. His elder brother Shahzada Shahpur, who had been in receipt of an allowance of Rs. 4,800 Shahzada per annum from Government, died in 1884. Nadar is President of the Municipal Committee, Honorary Magistrate, and Sub-Registrar of Ludhiana. He and his
at the
in
His offers of Mutiny were duly acknowledged by GovernHe enjoys a pension of Rs. 3,600 per annum, and ment. He was created a takes a high seat in Viceregal Darbars. Companion of the Indian Empire in 1888. Shahzada Shahpur's son Alamgir is an Extra Assistant Commissioner.
of land
in
the
Montgomery
service in the
also a son
of
an
allowance of
Rs.
is
3,000
One
an Extra Assistant
is
Commissioner
Province.
a Tahsildar
Timur Shah's
tal in
son,
instrumen-
he
237
is
Rs. 3,000.
Mahomed
receives
a pension
The members
in civil
At
the present
moment
there are
employment
live
Deputy Inspectors
;
of Police,
in the
in
smaller posts
while
army
twelve
Dafa-
dars,
238
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
Phul.
I
NOTE.
K.C.S.I,
BAHADUR.
Tilokha
(ancestor of the
Rama,
d.
1714.
|
Jind and
Nabha
Chiefs").
Duna,
d.
1726.
I.
Bigha Singh,
d.
Dao,
d.
Sangu Singh,
d.
Sukhu Singh,
d.
Suma
d.
1773.
I
1723.
1744.
1765.
Singh, 1772
(ancestor of the
j
Rampuria Sardars),
r~
Mohar Singh,
d.
J
"
d.
Gurdas Singh,
d. 1748.
Chuhar Singh,
<^-
Dal Singh,
1793
(ancestor of the Kot Duna Sardars).
1793-
826.
Dip Singh,
d. 1822.
I
Sujan Singh,
d.
1828.
Kharak Singh,
d. 1859.
Dewa
d.
Singh,
Achal Singh,
d.
Utam
d.
Singh,
1855.
I
1S57.
1879.
Sardar Atar
Singh,
b.
Narain Singh,
b.
I
Atar Singh,
d.
1852.
1879.
1833.
I
Balwant Singh,
Bhagwant Singh,
b.
Balwant Singh,
b.
1852.
I
1855.
Son,
b.
1887.
I
Jawahar Singh,
d. 1S27.
I
Jaimal Singh,
d.
Jagat Singh,
d.
1808.
I
1865.
Bibi Atar
Kaur
married Prince Nao Nahal Singh, of Lahore.
Khazan
Singh, d. 1831
Nadhan
Singh, d. 1838.
Gulab
Khem
Singh,
d.
Narain
Singh,
d. 1865.
Ajepal Singh,
b.
1846.
1858.
Mahan
Singh, d. 1858.
Kahar Singh,
b.
1835.
Partab Singh,
b.
Utar Singh,
b.
1853.
I
1863.
I
One
son,
b.
1887.
Two
sons.
Ala Singh,
first
Raja of
Patiala.
home
239
there after Ala Singh set out to seek his fortune in 17 18, and
founded a dwelling-place
removed
to Patiala
after
the
destruction of Sarhand,
whence he and
made
it is
his capital.
Duna
the
held the
office
of Chaudhri, and he
had
to collect
Having failed in this duty on one sons were seized and thrown into of his one and he occasion, prison at Lahore. They there suffered such hardships that the
Mahomedan Governor.
Duna
died
shortly
after
his
release.
This was
in 1726.
all
celebrated of
the Bhadauris.
He
of the
Patiala,
seize
ninety
but he
had
to
later on.
He
also
freely
in a fair
way
to
become one of
when treachery
put an
Chuhar Singh's sons Bir end to his career. Singh and Dip Singh were alive when the British Power felt its way up to the south bank of the Satlaj. They at first admitted Patiala to be their head, and identified themselves
;
Government.
This was
objected to by Patiala, upon grounds which need not here be The matter was under dispute for many years, and detailed.
w^as not finally set at rest until
1858,
rendered
in the
years
Mutiny.
All
the rights
Paramount Power were then yielded to Patiala, including reversion in lapsed estates, and the annual commutation tax of Rs. 5,265 hitherto taken by the British Government. The decision was naturally distasteful to the
of the
240
CHIEFS
family,
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
Bhadaur
They probably
feel that
not proved backward in But the concession would no doubt not have been made to Patiala had not her claim been and it is perhaps incorrect to just and allowable in itself affirm that she received Bhadaur because of special service
rendered. *
of the family,
Firozpur,
body of fifty horsemen, whom he 1857, raised and equipped at his own charges and as a reward, was exempted from payment of his commutation tax for a period of six months. He succeeded his father in 1858. He was educated at Banares, and there acquired a taste for learning. His library at Bhadaur is well stocked with valuable manuscripts in Sanscrit, Gurmakhi and Persian and he is always foremost in matters connected with the education and intellectual improvement of the people. He is, moreover, an acof a
;
;
command
complished author,
works
in
He was
nominated a mem1870
;
and he was granted the title of Malaz-ul-ul)?m Val Fiizala in acknowledgment of his eminent and liberal patronage of In 1880 he was created a Companion of the Order learning. of the Indian Empire, and in 1888 he was admitted to Knight-
hood
in the
occasion of
same distinguished Order. In 1887, on the Her Majesty's Jubilee celebration, the newlyof MahamahopadJiyaya was conferred on him
instituted title
in
241
SARDAR UTAM
1
SINGH, MALOD.
Phul.
1
I
Raghu
(Jiundan
family).
Tiloka
(ancestor of the Nabha and Jind Rajas).
Raman.
Jhandu.
Chatu.
Takhal
MaL
Ala Singh
(ancestor of Patiala
Duna Singh
(ancestor of
Bakhat Mai,
d. 1742.
Bhadaur
family).
Maharaja),
Man
d.
Singh,
1778.
Bhag Singh,
d.
Dalel Singh,
d. 1824.
I
1819.
Fatah
Singh,
d.
Mit
Singh,
d.
1849,
1878.
1866.
I
Sardar Utam
Singh,
d,
1841.
1850.
1853.
Infant,
d.
1887.
1866.
1879,
1867.
The
history of the
Malod family
is
given
in
Griffin's
Sardar
Utam
celebrated
from
whom
are
descended the present Rulers of Patiala, Jind and Nabha, as well as the Chiefs of Bhadaur, Malod and Badrakhan, and the minor Sardars of Jiundan, Laudgarh, Dialpur, Rampur and
Kot Dina.
Jasalji,
The
242
near Hissar.
the
Sirsa
grandson Khiwa took a Jatni as his second wife, who bore him his son Sidhu, from whom has sprung one of the most
important Sikh tribes
in the
Panjab.
It
is
unnecessary to
Malod Sardars, as it has received full notice in Sir Lepel Griffin's work already alluded to. Their immediate ancestor was Bakhat
into details of the earlier history of the
go
from
whom
The
Afghans
district of
in
1754 by Sardar
On
his death, in
;
Malod was taken from the Maler Kotla Man Singh, son of Bakhat Mai. 1878, the estate was divided amongst his
two sons the elder, Dalel Singh, taking two-thirds, including To these he added Khiali the Malod and Shaina villages.
and Sahur, wresting them from the Rais of Raikot in 1807. He gave assistance to the British authorities in 181 5 during the Ghurka War, and in other ways showed a desire to be on good terms with the new Power then beginning to make itself Sardar Dalel Singh died in 1824. His eldest son felt. Fatah Singh took two-thirds of the patrimony in accordance
with the established custom of the family.
In his share were
To Sardar Both brothers were present with the British troops at Mudki and Firozshahr, and helped in the matter of carriage and supplies. Sardar
included the villages of
Ramgarh and
Shaina.
civil
Fatah Singh's services were again utilized in establishing a government in the Sikh Cis-Satlaj districts annexed in
1846.
He
died in
1850.
His son
Utam
Singh, a minor,
Hazara
Singh, in 1854.
suitably
He behaved with
money and men. His services were acknowledged by a permanent remission of one sixteenth of the revenue demand in his villages, and he was made
the Mutiny, helping with
243
in
He was forward
during the
late Af-
ghan War, but they were not required. He is a Viceregal Darbari, and takes seniority over the other three Darbaris of his family. His jagir income is valued at Rs. 43,136 per annum. He lives at Ramgarh, in the Ludhiana district.
Sardar Hakikat Singh succeeded his father
in
1
8 19.
To him
fell
the villages of
which his branch of the family still reside. He performed good service in the Mutiny, and encouraged educalatter of
tion
by founding and endowing a school at Bir, which still Balwant Singh, his son, was a minor when Hakikat Singh died in 1875, 3-^^cl was educated at the Ambala Wards
exists.
School.
in
He
is
his Ilaka.
One
acts on attaining
his majority
was
to provide
College.
his lands
He
villages of Rohli, Sohian, Chima, Bawarpur and Bir (Ludhiana) yield an annual income of over sixteen hundred rupees exclusive of the Government demand.
in the
Utam
assisting
Government both
his
and
his
in
his services
estate
between
Badan Singh.
1878.
Sardar Badan
Singh behaved well during the Kuka disturbances, defending his fort, which was attacked with the object of procuring weapons, and killing and capturing about a dozen of the
fanatics.
He
is
known
as a thoroughly loyal
subject of the
Queen-Empress. His services have been recognized on many He exercises criminal and civil powers within occasions.
. . . .
244
his Ilaka,
Viceregal
Darbars.
His
jagir
He owns land in valued at Rs. 15,780 per annum. Pakhoka, Malod, Somal, Bundhari, Burkhera, and Teh
is
Loharan,
all in
2,230 per
annum.
His younger
of Rs. 8,000, in
brother
addition to
is
also a
from land
rents.
The
duction
follows
:
subject
to a
commutation deannually as
lieu
of providing
men
for service
Sardar
Utam Singh
Balwant Singh
Ks.
245
Singh submitted a
Centuries ago,
in
the
Marwara
childless,
country.
One
was advised by a
fakir to take
of another caste.
He
daughter of a
carpenter against the consent of her father, have complained to " the Emperor of Dehli."
tate,
who
is
said to
This poten-
avenge the wrongs of the carpenter, led an army but not Rajput King, who was duly slain before his Consort had presented him with a son and heir, whom they called Puran. Puran found himself coldly received by his father's relatives, who refused to regard him as
to
against
the
a proper Rajput and when the time came for him to marry, none of the pure blooded would give him a daughter. So
;
he was obliged to turn towards the carpenters, as his father and thus it came about that Bhai Narain did before him
;
became simple
village tarklians.
name
is
so he despatch-
ed an army against him and drove him out of the Marwara land into the Panjab. Puran settled in a village called Mania
Kal Jharani, near Batinda, and maintained himself by husbandry and carpentry. Sudhu, sixth in descent from him, settled at Tanglani in Nabha, and married a lady of Sikh
parentage, against her
will,
evidently
for
it
is
him on the night of her marriage, and sought comfort and consolation from a neighbouring Guru, who told her to be of good cheer as her husband would certainly adopt the Sikh faith and this actually happened. Sudhu tracked her up, and so overpowered was he by the Guru's eloquence that
;
246
he there and then went through the necessary formalities and became a Sikh. His son Rup Chand, so named by
reason of his extraordinary beauty, was taken as a boy to
palial.
Many
new
faith.
On
at
their
village,
his
rather
Guru in the evening as a special delicacy. So pleased was the Guru with this exhibition of self-denial that, after bringing them round, he directed them to follow him as his disciples. He gave his cloak and sword to Rup Chand, who carried them on his head, regarding them as things too sacred and too precious to be worn In the ordinary fashion. The Guru, pleased at this fresh act of reverence, settled the father and son in a village, which he re-named
to the
in
Nabha.
This was
In
1630.
that way,
and was royally entertained, with three thousand of his followers, by the devoted Rup Chand, to whom he gave the title of Bhai, and put him in spiritual charge of the Cis-Satlaj country, promising that his children should one day come to
be venerated as Sodhis.
Bhai
Rup Chand
lived to a great
much for the spread Amongst those of Sikhism in the neighbouring Jat villages. who listened to his teaching were Tllokha and Rama, sons
age, and acquired large Influence, doing
of Phul,
to
whom
the
present
Nabha owe
their origin.
Chand,
to
be found
In the villages
of Bhai
Rupa
(Nabha),
Sheraj (Firozpur),
Kotha Guru
(Patiala),
and Lakhnerl, In the Ambala district. The children of his remaining six sons have also spread themselves about the Malwa country. From Rup Chand' s seventh son, Dharam
247
His son Dayal Singh founded the village of Dayalpur, now belonging to the Nabha State, the revenues of which (Rs.
4,620)
go
to the
Dharam-
was also founded by Dayal Singh, and the proprietary dues are still levied by the family. Of Dayal Singh's sons, Godar Singh is particularly remembered for his piety and holy living. It is related of Gajpat Singh, first Raja of Jind, that, having no children, he came to confide his troubles to his friend Godar Singh. After thinking it over, the Bhai pronounced in the matter as folpura, in the Firozpur
lows
"
This
is
indeed a misfortune
In
it
for
is
you of
written
all
men
I
should
shall
have offspring.
my
in
fate
it
that
have children, as
;
none but I will good fortune if my wife will give consent." His wife, the good Mai Baji, willingly agreed, whereupon Godar Singh
performed certain
with
rites
yours that you shall have gladly transfer to you this portion of my
is
who
returned
home
father
became the
of several sons and daughters. One of the latter. Raj Kaur, was eventually the wife of the celebrated Sardar Mahan Singh, Sukarchakia, and the mother of the still more celebrated
Later on,
entertain
* In connection with Raj Kaur's birth there is a tradition that the Raja, enraged when the expected child proved to be a daughter, ordered her to be buried alive, a not uncommon And it was only on the faith of habit amongst disappointed Jats even in the present day. Godar Singh's assurance that she would certainly be the mother of a great Ruler, that the Raja was induced to allow her to live.
248
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
Jind, presented
him with
shortly
after,
as
However,
it
now
has,
and to receive
all
family to
in
donee more The next member of the acquire property was Bhai Mohar Singh, who early
villages
by the Jind
Raja, one by Sardar Hari Singh Khana, and one by the Sardar
of Ladhwa.
In 1807
with a
visit at
of the Cis-Satlaj
to the
Sadhowala and Sujana in jagir from the Sikh Chief as a grantin-aid towards the expenses oithe lajigar. The Maharaja also presented him with five hundred maunds of salt, promising
that this article should be in future supplied
to
the
kitchen,
Singh on
village
presented
Mohar Singh
with a
named
Gangrali.
Mohar Singh died in 1820, leaving the property to his nephew Bahadar Singh, a minor, whom he adopted. The family affairs were looked after by his widow Mai Gohran, who was fortunately a clever woman for the growing power of the Bhais had begun to excite the envy of Raja Karm Singh of Patiala, who, by way of exercising authority as Suzerain, For this unestablished a Tahsil and Thanna at Bagrian. justifiable trespass he was at once reported by the widow to
;
who requested
the
Raja
to
Karm Singh
sat
249
mother
from
whom
But the widow appealed, again successfully, to Captain Murray, and she was allowed to hold the estates in life-tenure, it being considered certain that Bahadar Singh, if his own master, would fall an easy prey to his Patiala neighbours. When,
however, Mai
taken over by Bahadar Singh,
1838, and the property was was found he was perfectly able to look after his own interests, as he fully proved in more than one victorious tussle with Maharaja Karm Singh. On
Gohran died
in
it
one occasion,
nels,
in
Mansa Singh,
to seize all
Bagrian
Campaign.
led back in
this act
captured,
and
at
triumph to Bagrian.
to treat as a
Karm
Singh,
enraged
of
whom
he desired
including
a solitary gun,
of Jind and
to effect
the
Colonel's
release,
and
level
Bagrian village with the ground. But the ever watchful Chiefs
Kotla,
who had no
desire to
see Patiala
of observation"
withdrew
to
and Karm Singh Bahadar Singh had next assert himself against the Raja of Faridkot, who, in 1840,
that neighbourhood,
his forces,
non
effccfa.
Godar Singh,
wall around
holding
it
mud
so as to convert
into a fort.
But
this
Clerk,
used the weapons of diplomacy, and complained to Sir George who had just relieved Colonel Wade in charge of the
to
down
token of possession.
250
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
Bhai Bahadar Singh was the first of his house who had the honour of receiving a seat in the Governor-General's
Darbar.
On
his death,
his
in
son Sapuran
one-fourth of
Mauza Vandu
half
and the whole of Shajahanpur, Umarpura, Thriki, Gangrali, Paharwal, Talwandl and Bagrian also in two-thirds of Ronta, Diwala and Kishangarh. During the Mutiny, Sapuran Singh behaved loyally, remaining under the orders of the Deputy Commissioner of Ludhiana with a small body of horse and foot, mainFor this service a year's revenue tained at his personal cost. was remitted to him, and the commutation charge in lieu of service was reduced to one anna per rupee. In 1 860 he was made an Honorary Magistrate and Civil Judge in the Jhajar Ilaka. He died two years later, and was succeeded in the He estates by his son Bhai Narain Singh, born in 1848. has an income of about Rs. 1,700 per annum. He is invested with the powers of a Magistrate and Civil Judge in Bagrian. His influence extends all over the Malwa country, and most of the Phulkians take the paJial at his hands. Sir
of Mahalan Kalahar and Ismailpur,
;
Henry Davies,
late
and a Deputy Commissioner, who had ample opportunity of judging, put him down as one of the most loyal and enlightened Raises of the Ludhiana district. He is a Viceregal Darbari. *
generation of the Sikh aristocracy
* Bhai Narain Singh died after the above account
was written.
He
by
his
THE LUDHIANA
DISTRICT.
251
SARDAR MAHTAB
Sardar
SINGH, LIDHRAN.
Charat Singh,
1816.
UtanA Singh,
d. 1841.
Wazir Singh,
d.
Ram
d.
Singh,
Raja Singh,
d.
Atar Singh,
1827.
1828.
1847.
1831.
Budh Singh,
d.
Chainan Singh,
d. 1871.
Sham
d.
1877.
I
Singh, 1837
Nadhan Singh,
d.
1887
(children).
(children).
Mahtab Singh,
i.
1S47.
Kishan Singh,
d.
Sahib Singh,
1884
1878.
|
(children).
Sher Singh.
Shamsher
Singh.
Ragbir Singh,
3.
Thakar Singh,
d.
Sarpat Singh,
d.
1870.
1875.
1876.
Sangat Singh,
(J.
Albel Singh,
3.
Harnam
3.
I
Singh,
Hari Singh.
I
1820.
sons.
1825.
1828.
sons.
l>.
Mansha Singh,
1847.
Two
Two
Two
other
Chatar Singh,
^.
1843.
sons.
living
Sardar Jai Singh was a Dharm Jat Sikh of the Manjha, He joined the near Atari, in the Amritsar district.
in
their
when
the battle of
Sarhand was fought, and assisted at the seizure of Ambala, Shahabad, Lidhran, Amloh and Sarai Lashkar Khan. His share of the spoil was thirty-four villages around Lidhran
and Kharar, roughly estimated to be worth Rs. 60,000 per annum. Jai Singh with his fellow Sikhs suffered defeat shortly afterwards at the hands of Ahmad Shah Durani, and had to abandon his holdings and take refuge in the hilly country north of Ambala. The Raja Amar Singh of
252
Patlala
and
to
sidered his own. The matter was subsequently compromised by the rendition by Patiala of four of the villages. Jai Singh was a man of consequence, and the Raja Jaswant Singh of Nabha felt honoured by receiving his daughter in marriage. But, like many others of the minor Sardars, he and his son
Charat Singh,
after him,
lived
in
constant
fear
of being
Charat
Singh was glad to accept British protection when it was He accompanied General Ochterlony's offered in 1809. force into the Simla Hill country in the campaign against the Nipal General, Amar Singh Thapa, in 18 14, and gave good
help in
the matter of carriage and supplies.
On
his death
portions,
represent-
a third share. This splitting-up of the property had the effect of weakening the position of the family, and they
were obliged
in
the
same year
under the
Nabha Chief, agreeing to supply him with protection to come to him in full strength whenever and horsemen, fifty
of the
he required their services. But they still strove to maintain their independence in all respects, save the obligation to assist against a common foe, while the Raja Jaswant Singh was more than ever anxious to hasten on the day when the
Lidhran family must merge as
subjects.
common
on
for
some
years, the
Raja
doing all in his power to bring his weaker neighbours under subjection the brothers steadily resisting the attempts of the
Raja
deprive them of the position their grandfather and father had won and maintained. The question was taken up in 1827 by Sir Charles Metcalfe, Agent to the Governor-General
to
in Dehli,
on
the joint
representation
of the
to
Lidhran and
Sonti
Sardars, and
referred
by him
Captain Murray,
THE LUDHIANA
who considered
furnish
DISTRICT.
253
to
contingents
service
to
the
Raja,
they must
be protected from his oppression, and their disputes heard and decided by the British Agent at Ambala. But the Resident held the Sardars to be dependants of Nabha, and that any interference on the part of the British Government would Injuriously affect the position of the Raja. The case was again taken up by Sir George Clerk in 1836, when this view was somewhat modified. The Chiefs had for some years. It was admitted, rendered suit and service to the Raja,
and
their obligation to
tained on
many
Government.
The
deem
it
expedient to
The complaints which they had made of harassing and perpetual demands for service were nevertheless
directed
to
dispense
of the
daughters,
of actual
war.*
ill-feeling continued,
Government and withdrew its own criminal jurisdiction but this was rescinded later on, and In i860, when a Sanad was granted by Lord Canning to the Raja Bharpur Singh, the LIdhran Sarand
exists in a
measure
to this day.
In
1851
list
of Feuda-
State.
The LIdhran Sardars have always loyally assisted the Government when occasion has required their services. They supplied horses, grain and carriage to the army of the Satlaj
in 1845,
and again
in
1848
in
of Multan
rebellion.
254
duty as a personal escort to Mr. Ricketts, while Sardars Chaman Singh and Ram Singh helped to hold Jagraon with
a body of their
own horsemen.
in 1877.
His chair
of
the
in
Viceis
Darbars,
Sardars
as
senior
member
family,
Mahtab Singh.
The
other
Darbaris
Harnam Singh, Hari Singh, Albel Singh The three former are the sons of Sardar who was present with our army in Kabul
during the
first campaign. Sardars Hari Singh and Albel Singh are the most distinguished of the brothers. Hari Singh was present as a boy in Major Broadfoot's camp when
Mudki were fought. Shortly Mutiny broke out he acted on orders received from Sir John Lawrence and raised and equipped a full troop, which became a portion of the 12th Bengal Cavalry. He received the rank of Rasaldar, and fought well all through the campaign. He has also done good service in Abyssinia and Afghanistan. He retired in 1885 on a pension of
Rs. 1,080 per annum, after holding a Rasaldar's commission
for
twenty-three
years,
during
which
period
he earned
of Sardar
with
whom
he served.
He
is
enjoys the
title
Bahadar.
Still
more distinguished
After
in the earlier
stages of the Mutiny, he elected for active service and joined Watson's Horse, now the 13th Bengal Lancers, bringing with him one hundred sowars and receiving the rank of Rasaldar.
He
fought splendidly in many battles beside his gallant Commander General John Watson, V. C, who in 1876 wrote
old
to his
comrade as follows:
THE LUDHIANA
DISTRICT.
this letter,
255
and he
will
have known you a valuable servant of the State and never ceased to regard you as a personal friend, and to esteem you for your many good qualities of
Sirdar Albel
Singh was
entrusted
the
for
management of
Sikhs of
and intelligence secured him the who regarded him in the light He possesses handsome testimonials from many of a father. distinguished officers who knew him well, including Sir Hugh Gough, General R. C. Low, and Colonel Macnaghten. He took part in the Afghan War of 1879, ^-nd was in Egypt Lord Northbrook conferred with the Expedition in 1882. upon him the title of Rai Bah adar in 1875. ^^ was for a short time an Aide-de-Camp to His Excellency Lord Napier of Magdala, and he was attached as Orderly Officer to his Royal Highness the Prince of Wales in 1876. At the close of the Egyptian Campaign he visited England and received his War Medal from the hand of Her Majesty the Queenand
his tact
all
the men,
Empress Major in
in the
Shahpur
which he
Rs.
is
rapidly
The assessment,
562, has
been remitted
in
acknowledgment of
a Rasaldar
in his
Many
of his
The Lidhran
tances
of
in
flourishing
for
not
remit-
made by those who are in military employment, many of its members would be in a state of comparative poverty. The jagir comprises the revenues of
256
twenty-five villages
trict,
in the
split
Ambala
dis-
up amongst numerous branches of Charat Singh's descendants, and Mr. Gordon Walker, late Settlement Officer of Ludhiana, is of opinion that in another generation or two the shares will be
it is
maintenance.
THE LUDHIANA
DISTRICT.
257
Chet Singh.
I
Utam
Singh,
I
Daya Singh.
L
Sher Singh.
I
Lehna Singh.
I
Ganda
Singh.
Bishan Singh.
Fatah Singh.
The Jhabu and Dhiru Mazra jagirdars of the Samrala now only of small importance. Mr.
Officer, says of
them
" There
is
to distinguish these
;
men from
the Jats
around them,
is in
service."
The
the
to
Kang
entered
of Khana.
for
lowed up by the Raja of Patiala, who annexed the villages to An appeal made to Mr. Fraser, Resident at his own State.
Dehli, resulted in the
restoration
of eight
of them to
British
the pro-
Sardar
nephew Gurbakhsh 'Singh, who thenceforward became the head of the Jhabu Mazra branch. The family was of assistance to Government during the Sikh War, furnishing supplies and helping with carriage.
Sardar Ganga Singh
trict
is
a Zaildar, a
member
of the
Dis-
He has lately
received
the acknowledgments of Government for having built a school His jagir share yields Rs. 1,903 per annum. in his village.
He
is
Tahsil,
owner of eleven hundred bigas of land in the Samrala and of forty-five bigas in Mauza Ghamapur, Amritsar.
2sS
FAIZ TALAB
KHAN OF RAIKOT.
d. 1886.
Amir Khan,
b.
Fatah Khan,
b.
1848.
1854.
1857.
!
Inayat Khan,
b.
Bahawal Khan,
b.
1877.
1882.
The late Rai Imam Bakhsh Khan was the nephew of Rani Bhag Bhari, who nominated him as her successor. The last of the male issue was Rai Alyas, who died in 1802. He was succeeded by his mother the Rani Nur-ul-Nisan, The family is after whom followed the Rani Bhag Bhari. of Hindu Rajput origin, tracing itself back to the Chandar Bansi dynasty. The present representative is Faiz Talab Khan, a Viceregal Darbari, living at Raikot, in the Ludhiana
district.
Mention
Griffin's
is
frequently
the
made
Rajas of
Panjab.
Ram,
a Hindu Rajput,
left
Jasalmir early
and
settled
at Chakar, in the
faith.
Jagraon
adopting the
Mahomedan
He took
the
name
of Shekh Chaku.
His
Alaudin Ghori, who made over to him the revenues of thirteen hundred villages south of the Satlaj, subject to an
The family conmany generations ruled the country between Ludhiana and Ambala. One of them, Rai Ahmad,
annual payment of
five
lakhs of rupees.
founded the existing town of Raikot in 1648. Jagraon was built by his nephew Rai Kamaludin, whose son Rai Kulha was the first of the famil}^ called upon to protect the patrimony
from the incursions of the Manjha Sikhs.
did with the aid of Shah Ali Khan,
This he effectively
of Sarhand.
Nazim
But
the
more
in
Malwa
country.
The
celebrated Bedi
Sahib Singh
of Una,
259
four years earlier had devastated Maler Kotla with sword and fire, swept down upon Raikot in 1798 at the head of numerous rabble, announcing his determination to exterminate the kine-killing race whose presence polluted the land. Jagraon, Raikot and Ludhiana were speedily overrun, and a fierce battle was fought at Jodh, where the Raikotia made a gallant stand under Roshan Khan but their leader was killed towards the end of the day, and victory remained with the
;
who
Sikhs.
The Bedi
upon Ludhiana, pressure having been put upon him by the Phulkian Chiefs whose aid the Raikotias had sought. The Sikhs of Ludhiana opened the gates of the city to the Bedi, but the fort held out, defended by Hasan Khan. It was regularly invested, and would no doubt have fallen had not Rai
Alyas
in his last
George
Thomas
was
to
of Hissar,
who was
his
George Thomas was not, however, sword on this occasion, for the Bedi hastily raised the siege on hearing of his approach, and betook
be the reward.
destined to
draw
himself to his
home beyond
the Satlaj.
to
be
hands
the Rani
Aus
Kaur.
on both
in
a quarrel with
the Rajas of
Nabha and
Bibi
Jind, in
sides.
Ultimately,
the
whose
sister,
Raj
nephew for aid against the Rani Aus Kaur. This was most readily granted by the Maharaja, who was only too pleased to have an opportunity of interferRanjit Singh, applied to his
ing
in Cis-Satlaj politics.
He
did
little
to restore friendship
parties, but
26o
feel-
by the majority of
his followers.
"
writes Griffin, *' two women, Nur-ul-Nisa, widow of Rai Alyas Khan, and Lachmi; but Ranjit Singh had no generosity, and preferred despoiling a widow to attacking a Chief who was better able to From the plunder of this family, Raja Bhag Singh resist. received the districts of Ludhiana, Jhandala, Kot, Jagraon and Basia, including fifty-four villages, of an annual rent Sirdar Gurdit Singh of Ladwa, the districts of Rs. 23,260
tives (at
villages
worth Rs. 23,540; Raja Jaswant Singh of Nabha, portions of Kot Basia, Talwandi and Jagraon, thirty- one villages worth Rs. 26,590 Sirdar Fatah Singh, Ahluwalia, portions of Dhaka Kot, Basia, Jagraon and Talwandi, one hundred and six villages worth Rs. 40,505; Diwan Mohkam Chand,
;
portions
Basawa Singh, ten vilKot and Jagraon, worth Rs. 5,714; and Sardar
village in Talwandi, worth Rs. 400."
thus
found herself
left
with
wandi out of all the fertile country bequeathed her by Rai Alyas Khan. Nur-ul-Nisan was succeeded by Alyas Khan's widow, the Rani Bhag Bhari. She represented the interests
of the family
when the
the
on the
Satlaj,
On
her death in
Khan.
He
behaved loyally
in
the Mutiny.
THE LUDHIANA
DISTRICT.
261
annum. Faiz Talab Khan, the eldest son, retains the mafi grant. Six hundred bigas, jointly owned by the brothers, is now remains to the once powerful Chiefs of Raikot.
all
that
The family is proud of its Hindu Rajput origin, and many old Hindu customs are still observed in connection
with marriages and other ceremonials.
262
iSio.
I
Ratan Singh,
d. 1846.
I I
Sarmakh Singh,
d.
Gurmakh
Singh.
186 1.
Lai Singh,
d.
I
Bishan Singh,
Bhagwant Singh.
1887.
d
('
1877.
I
.
I
Harnam
!
Singh,
Harnam
b.
I
Singh,
Naurang Singh,
b.
1844-
1856.
1842.
I
Jagdish Singh,
l>-
Bakhshish Singh,
b.
Harden Singh,
(,,
Baldeo
Singh,
b.
Gursaran
b.
Gurdayal
Singh,
b.
1880.
1883.
1880.
1883.
Singh, 1883.
1885.
The Kotla Badla family, Tahsil Samrala, Ludhlana, is another of the many petty Chiefships, owing their origin and
prosperity to the adventurous spirit of a
when
Mahomedan power was weak, crossed the and helped himself to as much as he was able to hold
the
g-ood lands in the Malwa.
It
is
of the
of
struggles
that
for their
retention.
Many
now submitted
for the
manu-
facture of history
manifestly exaggerated,
and few of
circle.
them are of
interest to
for the
Rai Singh's father Mahtab Singh was taken and killed murder of Masa Khan, Mahomedan Governor of Amthe time of
ritsar, in
last century.
Nadar Shah, about the middle of the Rai Singh, then an infant, was saved from his
father's fate by a sweeper who sheltered him v/hile the search was being prosecuted, and ultimately left him in a jungle. Here he was found by a Kambo woman, and taken to her husband's home. But he never lost his identity, and when he grew up, Sardar Sham Singh, founder of the Karora
THE LUDHIANA
DISTRICT.
263
Singhia Confederacy, gave him his daughter in marriage. He accompanied his father-in-law on most of his plundering
expeditions, receiving his reward in villages,
many
of which a
are
still
At Miran Kot he
death
in 1809.
built
mud
fort,
sons, the
now
Ludhiana,
Samrala Ratan Singh was a man of culture. He was a good Persian scholar, and at the request of Captain Murray, Agent to the Governor-General, wrote a history called the Panth Parkash, of the various families then celebrated in the Panjab. He, moreover, rendered assistance in carriage and supplies during the Afghan War, and again when the troops were assembling for the campaign on the Satlaj his son, Gurmakh Singh, accompanying the army with four armed rechildren have their head-quarters at Bheri, in the
Tahsil.
;
and others rendered in 1857, payments were remitted by GovernGurmakh Singh's best act, perhaps, was to found a ment. school in his village, for which he duly received a khilat and Sanad.
tainers.
For these
services,
The
Singh.
present Sardar,
Harnam
Singh,
is
is
The whole
this
family jagir
worth Rs.
per
to
his
annum, and of
Rs. 1,600.
Harnam
Singh's share
amounts
dues
in
He owns a village in Nabha and collects He is on the list of Viceregal Darbaris. kind.
264
Sayad
AH
I
Eakhsh.
Ali,
1869.
I
II
b.
I
Sharif Hasain,
b.
1831.
Abas Hasain,
1868.
Mahomed
Mohsan,
b.
11
h.
.
Mustafa Hasain,
1869.
Murtza Hasain,
b.
1878.
1884.
Ahmad,
b.
1884.
is
Rajab
Ali,
one of the most worthy of the many excellent men who served Government in the days of the Board of Administration at Lahore.
The
family
is
Sayad Mahmud, a celebrated theologian, who, in 1502, left his home in Multan, and attached himself to Sakandar Lodi Fifty years later, in Akbar' s time, the Sayad was ofDehli.
given a jagir of five hundred bigas near Batala, in the Gurdaspur district. The Emperor Jahangir increased the holding, and the family resided at Panjgrain, near Batala, During the reign of Mahomed Shah, for several generations.
Sayad Mahomed
twelve villages
Jafar
in
was
granted
istamrari
rights
in
the Ludhiana
district,
one of which,
Talwandi,
They continued to held by the family. beginning of the present century, when Diwan Mul Chand, representative at Jalandhar of Maharaja Ranjit Singh, seized the jagir and reduced its holders to
is
still
poverty.
To Maulvi Rajab
We
265
Upper
in
India.
He was
not long in
at Ambala. He soon became Head Reader, and was sent forward in this capacity
Agent
to Ludhiana,
in
1839.
Later on he
accompanied the Lawrences to Lahore, and rapidly gained the confidence of the Panjab Chiefs and gentlemen with whom his work brought him in contact. The late Sir Herbert
in the
highest esteem.
:
"
In 1848
he re-
believe his
judgment on
proved
Rajab All's character. Sir Henry Lawrence, in recommending him in 1853 as having earned the continuance in perpetuity of his ancestral jagir holding
wrote
" During
in
I
hardly
;
Ali
me
in all political
Sir
Henry Lawrence
strove to obtain
him
in
Viceroy, in 1868.
He received jagir assignments valued at Rs. 2,696 per annum in Aligarh and both Talwandis, Tahsil " in consideration of most valuable Jagraon, Ludhiana, services rendered to the State, at the time of the negotiations
with the Ruler of the Panjab to obtain permission for the British Forces to cross the Sikh Frontier and proceed to
266
Panjab, and during the Siege of Dehli in 1857." During the Mutiny the Maulvi's services were placed at
of the
Hodson
in
He
received
10,000
in
the
title
of
Khan Bahadar
by
all
in
that
He
died in
who had
known him.
Half the jagir of Rs. 2,696 has been continued to Rajab two sons. The elder, Maulvi Sayad Sharif Hasain,
All's
head of the family, is a Viceregal Darbari, a Zaildar, and a Member of the Municipal Committee of Jagraon, where he resides. He shares with his brother the income of about eleven hundred bigas of land in the Jagraon Tahsil, The brothers used to reyielding Rs. 2,500 per annum.
at the
100 per
mensem from
the
Maharaja of Patiala in consideration But this bounty has recently been stopped. their father.
Sharif Hasain was, during his father's lifetime, for a few years in the service of Government as Nazir at Lahore, and
as Naib-Mir
Munshi
in
THE FIROZPUR
DISTRICT.
267
THE FIROZPUR
DISTRICT.
268
1794,
with
the
entirely
They
were not
jit
left
made
frequent
later, the young RanSingh attacked the brothers several times without success-
Nazamudin Khan joined vigorously in the cabal against when that Chief obtained possession of Lahore, and the next year Kasur was more vigorously attacked, but Nazamudin held out, though he agreed to pay tribute to Ranjit Singh. In 1802, Nazamudin Khan was
Ranjit Singh in 1800,
assassinated by his three brothers-in-law Wasil
Khan,
Haji
Khan and Najib Khan, whom he had ousted from their jagirs. Kutbudin Khan has generally been accused of having been
privy to the murder
;
Kasur
at
the fort of
Azam Khan,
and put Wasil Khan and Najib Khan escaping to the Deccan.
Ranjit Singh at
the
close
Haji
Khan
of the
year again
invaded
till
ap-
peared
with
a
to
month's
his
fighting,
Kutbudin gave
and agreed
to
territory
it
of
in
jagir,
Kutbudin and
in
Mahomedan
to Fatahdin
Khan
same number of horsemen as Mamdot. But Fatahdin Khan was not satisfied, and was always appealing to the Maharaja for the grant of Mamdot,
subject to the supply of the
which he considered
his right.
THE FIROZPUR
DISTRICT.
269
At last, with the connivance of the Maharaja, in 1831, he crossed the river when his uncle's contingent was absent on service, and attacked him. The Dogars, ready for any change,
joined him,
and Kutbudin was defeated, severely wounded and driven out of the country, and he died soon after at Amritsar.
Ranjit Singh
now thought
fit
to interfere
on the other
side.
in his
He
recalled Fatahdin,
father's possessions.
Once again Fatahdin tried his Agent interfered, and the Maharaja
The Mamdot
Chiefs
were
at
feudatories of the
;
Lahore Government. Lahore was the high court of appeal and there are many instances on record of fines imposed upon these Chiefs. In 1824, Kutbudin Khan was fined Rs. 12,567 for conniving at, and sharing in, the plunder of cattle from the Lahore territories. In 1844 Jamaludin
Khan was
the
fined Rs.
11,100 for
the
Lahore
news-writer at
his court,
was
told that
confirmed to him
against
us,
yet at
in
and
killed.
cousin
Fatahdin
Only towards the end of the campaign, when he perceived where the victory would eventually be, did he turn round and render some trifling assistance to Sir John Littler, when that General was threatened by the Sikh army at Firozpur, which induced the Government to grant him In sovereign powers and to confirm him in his possessions. 1848 his contingent, under his brother Jalaludin, behaved
Khan was
270
well at Multan, and Jamaludin was granted the title of Nawab and the contingent of one hundred horsemen was reduced to sixty in time of peace and seventy in war.
Jamaludin
Khan was
During
the Sikh times his tyranny had been notorious, but, under the
power was increased, and his tyranny grew same proportion. His revenue system was but robbery extortion and violence. The Dogars were the especial objects of his hatred, for by their aid his father had been driven from the country; but all classes, Hindus and Mahomedans, felt his heavy hand. Robbery flourished under his protection, and even the property of British subjects was not secure from his gangs
British Rule, his
in the
of thieves,
length
all
their master.
left
At
It
Mamdot.
wells
ruin
;
and populous,
these
with
many
to
and
the
canals,
but
were
all
falling
The
British
to
;
Government
interfere
known
policy,
long refused
of this
with
at
the
internal
arrangement
State
but
affairs
came to such a pass, and the voice of the people was so unanimous against their oppressor, that an investigation was, in 1855, made into the charges against the Nawab, and on their truth being established, he was deprived of his powers,
length
and
his territory
was annexed
to the
Firozpur
district.
The
Nawab was
he
died, in
pensioned, and,
till
He
where
Firozpur
district,
March
1863, of apoplexy.
as
Then came
between the
sons of Jamaludin
Khan and
The
latter
THE FIROZPUR
was
in
DISTRICT.
brother's
271
no way concerned
in
his
misgovernment'
in
He
intelligent
many
He
was against us
good service under Lake, and later in the war, His fidelity was at that time fully proved. He also behaved very well in 1857, and laid a camel dak from Firozpur to Bahawalpur, and his conduct was, at the time, highly spoken of by the authorities.
1848, he did
under Lumsden.
Accordingly, in
Nawab,
to be the Chief,
with succession to
male
issue, the
On
Jalaludin also
of
Nawab,
to
descend to
Mamdot.
In
He died in May, 1875, and was sucNazamudin Khan, the present Nawab, born in 1862. During his minority, which ceased in 1883, the estate was managed in the Court of Wards by the Deputy Commissioner of Firozpur. Its resources were considerably developed by the construction of important irrigation canals,
powers.
ceeded
by
his son
which resulted
in
an increase
in
the
annual
income from
a
distance
The
locality
and
at
of
about twenty miles from the old capital of Mamdot, which had been partly washed away by river action. In fact, the property
was made over to the Nawab in a most prosperous condition. Things have not thriven so well since 1883, and the Nawab He received a Commission from Her Majesty is now in debt. in 1885 as a Lieutenant in the 2nd Panjab Cavalry. His interest in matters connected with horse-breeding has
been recognized by the bestowal upon him of a special diploma at the hands of the Viceroy. He is a keen sportsman and a splendid
rider.
No
2^2
The Nawab's
Lahore.
first
cousin,
lives at
He
receives an
annual
THE FIROZPUR
DISTRICT.
273
Gur Bakhsh
Singh.
.
Ram
Singh.
Gurdial. Singh.
Children.
274
own
He
villages in
was thus permitted to establish a number of the plain, and he fixed his boundaries by marking
fancied.
down
He
who
named
the
Ilaka
Guru Harsahai,
father's
place
as
Jiwan Mai appears to have made friends later on with Ahmad Shah, for he was allowed to hold his lands free of revenue
and
the grant
when
the
the time of
villages
in
Mahomedans disappeared from this part of the Panjab. In Guru Gulab Singh, the jagir income of several
the Chunian Ilaka was assessed at Rs. 3,740 per
annum.
The religious influence of the family was very great throughout the reign of Maharaja Ranjit Singh, and many of the Harsahai Sodhis were employed about the Court at Lahore, and accompanied the army on expeditions along the
Frontier,
when
it
was necessary
to preserve the
enthusiasm of
high pitch. In making these journeys they seized the opportunity of recruiting followers under their own religithe
at a
men
ous banner from amongst the scattered Hindu families of the Western Panjab and they were, until quite recently, honored
;
and revered by large numbers of Sikhs, not only in their immediate neighbourhood, but in Rawalpindi, Peshawar, Kohat and the Derajat. On the death, in 1869, of Guru Gulab Singh,
only two-thirds of the jagir were continued to his successor,
Fatah Singh, on a
life-tenure.
He
was unfortunate
in
in
behis
coming involved
time
own
sons,
and
much
melted away.
He
son,
and in order to despite him, made a gift of his property and of the Guru headship to his younger son Kabul Singh. A law-suit followed, in which Guru Bishan Singh was sue-
275
but
the
expenses of litigation
the death of
;
seriously
in
crippled
the property.
jagir
On
Fatah Singh
1878,
the
was temporarily resumed and it was re-granted to Guru Bishan Singh in 1885, under a Sanad from the Supreme
Government,
gisterial
Guru Gulab Singh and Fatah Singh both exercised mapowers within the limits of their jagirs. These privi-
The
valued at Rs. 3,550 per annum, and the family are owners of nearly twenty-four thousand acres in nine villages
of the
Mukatsar Tahsil.
Bishan
at the
age of
fifteen, a riao-e in
He has
Khatri
recently
made
a second mar-
family
of Amritsar.
He
is
President of the
Local
five
half-brothers,
sons
by a
to
doubtful
if
without sons.
Ram
Singh and
The
estab-
as
is
the guardian
book
[pothi]
belonged
tion,
to
Guru Nanak.
travel
They
venera-
and people
privilege of
seeing them.
276
Banwali Das.
Abhai Ram.
I
Jaspat -Singh
Didar Singh.
Bishan Singh,
cf.
1826.
Jawahar Singh,
d. 183S.
Jagat Singh,
d.
Bhagat Singh,
(/.
1S58.
1862.
Sahib Singh,
d.
Mahtab Singh.
1853.
Kajindar Singh,
//.
1
Inciar Singh,
d.
1855.
888.
Children living
in JSabha.
Jawala Singh,
d.
Ajit Singh.
1S69.
Man
i>.
Singh,
Khazan Singh,
i?.
Utam
d.
Singh,
1849.
1826.
1833.
Bhagwan Singh,
Ram
Singh,
Kartar Singh,
Kishan Singh,
/>.
1826.
d. 1879.
I
1834.
1841.
Hukam
^>.
I
Singh,
1844.
Ganda Singh,
6.
1884.
Guru Maharban,
Khatri, grandson of the fourth Guru Ram Das, and uncle of Arjan the sixth, from whom the Anandpur and Kartarpur
Sodhis branch
off.
The Sodhis
of
descended from Chandsain, the youngest son of Pirthi Chand, who was Guru Maharban' s father. The family became influential in the
who founded
the village
Kotha Guru in Patiala. These possessions were added to by Guru Abhai Ram, who was in the He founded confidence of the Patiala and Nabha Chiefs.
of Dhilwan, and also
277
Guru Kot, and received in gift the village of Dila Ram from Diwan of that name. His great-grandson Jawahar Singh was a man of note early in the century. He co-operated with Diwan Mohkam Chand, agent of the Maharaja Ranjit
the
Singh,
in the
They took possession of Zira, Mudki, Kotkapura, Badhni and Chuhar Chak. The last-named ilaka was bestowed upon Jahawar Singh. He founded Sibian, Sahu and Burj, and
acquired Kaliki.
In 1807,
Moga, were taken by the MahaTara Singh Gheba, and conferred upon Jawahar Singh as a reward for services rendered in many expeditions, including Multan and Peshawar. Maharaja Sher Singh gave him half of Khirkiwala and Nathewala. His brothers, Jagat Singh and Bhagat Singh, were associated with Jawahar Singh in the Chuhar Chak Jagir and their
Zira Tahsil, and Dosanjh in
raja from the family of
;
descendants
now hold
to the
This
is
all
that
now remains
Sodhis
that
neighbourhood.
Sahib
Singh and Gulab Singh, sons of Jawahar Singh, joined the Campaign. The following villages were confirmed to them
British at the time of the Satlaj
:
To Sahib Singh
half of Khirkiv/ala,
Dhilwan,
:
and
all in
Faridkot or Patiala.
in Zira,
in
To Gulab Singh
Sibian, Sahuki in
Manawan
life-tenure.
Dosanjh, Kaliki,
Ambala.
half to
Butar branch
the
MahNa-
bha
the
State.
Moga
Tahsil by paying
accumulated arrears of
revenue due
by
the
former
278
proprietors.
They behaved
and received
Gulab
Sodhi
Hukam
Singh, son of
in
service
1866.
Ram Singh of Dhilwan, enHe became Mir Munshi twelve years. He was ap-
pointed a Subordinate Judge in 1887, and has recently been deputed for duty under the Maharaja of Bikanir. He owns,
in addition to his ancestral
property,
district.
in
Bhatianwala
to
in the
Lahore
amounts
about Rs.
Rs. 8,000.
Sodhi
served
Man
the
He
helped
matter of
during the
Mutiny, and his services were again conspicuous when the Kukas gave trouble at Maler Kotla in 1872. He is a Magistrate
and
Civil Judge,
energetic officer,
in
to
district.
He
also
works as
Sub-Registrar
Viceroy's
list
Tahsil.
in
of Darbaris
magisterial powers
title
of Saris
dar Bahadar.
Sodhi
Man
Singh's brother
Utam Singh
Tahsildar
in the
Province.
at
Faridkot
in
December, 1888.
circle of villages
He was
an Honorary Magistrate
in
in the
around Baghaparana
the
Moga
Tahsil
279
where he lived. Rajindar Singh was always forward in the performance of loyal services, especi:illy in encouraging Sikhs His inof a good stamp to take service In our regiments. His Rs. about was 9,500. come from jagir and land rents
son Ajit Singh was for a short period a Naib-Tahsildar.
is
sole
the
eastern
which was purchased by Sodhi Jagat Singh. This and his other landed properties and jagirs yield him an income of Rs. 1 1 ,000 per annum. He exercises the powers of an Honorary Magistrate in his Ilaka.
Man
Singh, was
Sodhi
Man
or three villages
but by their
two-fifths of
perpetuity.
28o
CHIEF-^
d.
1774. "
,
1794.
I
d.
1822.
1841.
Bhai Isanjang
SiiiLjh,
d.
1849.
1838.
I
Bhai Shib
Singh, d
Sham
1S64.
1867.
a Barar
Sidhu
Faridkot.
Jat
Sikh of
lives
same stock
Jhamba,
in
as the ruling
family in
He
Mukatsar Tahsil, and has a perpetual jagir-holding in five villages, which yields Rs. 3,137, after deducting the Government commutation charge of Rs. 448,
the
taken
in
in lieu
He
is
Darbaris
the
Firozpur
district,
and
exempted from
is
He
member
the union of Sikh Sarhand and captured who was slain. it from the Mahomedan Governor Zin Khan, The spoils were divided amongst the victors according to the amount of assistance rendered, and Budha Singh re-
Bhai
part in
Confederacies
ceived as
his
share
the
iSi
He
returned
to
possession
next joined
with
Kapura, and
Bodla,
fashion,
Bhai
Desa Singh,
in
Bahak
in
the usual
Budh
He
Rs.
died at
in
which
in
managed
84,000
revenue.
was killed in an endeavour beyond what his father to push the family boundaries had bequeathed him. Ram Singh, nephew of Tek Singh, exchanged the Sarhand lands for twelve villages in the Adampur Ilaka, with the Maharaja of Patiala. In the time
of his successor Faujdar Singh, the Babarpur possessions were
lost
in
quarrel
After Faujdar
Jhamba
Ilaka
from
for
the
Patiala, in
exchange
Bahor
lands.
and
in
which followed,
worsted.
He
in
promptly placed
nor-General's
his favour
;
Agent
and the villages were duly made over. The brothers Mahar Singh and Kandla Singh effected a partition
of the property in
by the
British.
1838, when the country was The former received the villages
taken
over
of Jhamba-
Mahar Singh
died in
1841.
He
law,
is
his brothers-in-
who were
estate
made them
deceased,
attacked
aSa
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
all
NOTE.
The
case was
made
when Bhai
in his father's
jagir-holdings
Jhamba, Ghagar and part of Bahak Bodla. Three ladies Husana and Bahus Khurd and Kalan, with reversion to Bhai Zabarjang. One of them
of the family were given jagirs in
is still
THE FIROZPUR
DISTRICT.
283
Amrika.
I
Bhumia.
Gheba.
Sardar Singh,
Dharam
d.
Kaur Singh,
</.
Dargana Singh,
d.
1815.
1792.
1757.
Mohar
d.
Singh,
Dal Singh,
d.
1815.
1825.
Sher Sinqh,
d.
Gurdit Singh,
d.
Dava Singh.
I I
1836.
1861.
I
SucHET Singh Bakhshish Singh. (now known as SucHET Mahomed), Narain Singh,
I
i.
1856.
1
Bhanga Singh,
i>.
iSSj.
Suchet
first
Mahomed
is
the great-grandson of
Dharam
Singh,
another chapter.
in
These Chiefs
in
in
the
sack of Kasur
1758,
They grew
power
the
Doab and
in
Firozpur.
mud
They
also captured
in the
Moga
Tahsil.
Kaur Singh, brother of Dharam Singh, took Kang in Nakodar and Fatahgarh Panjtar, an important place in the
Zira Tahsil.
district.
live
in
the
Jalandhar
The
separated in
of
of villages
in
2S4-
Lohian Ilaka in Nakodar, north of the Satlaj. His grandson Sher Sino^h was killed at Peshawar in 18^6, fightinof under Maharaja Ranjit Singh. Gurdit Singh and Dava Singh were
confirmed
at
annexation
in
comprising the
Milak Akalian
Tahsil Moga.
for
Khurd
in
was afterwards exchanged Shadiwal, Sayad Mahomed and Rajanwala, all in the Zira
This
village
Tahsil.
To Dava Singh
fell
Phida,
in
Tahsil Firozpur.
in
86 1.
He
had received a
khilat
and Sanad
for services
ren-
religion,
taking the
Mahomedan name of
Suchet Mahomed.
The
relatives of his
The
new assessments
of 1888,
is
The descendants
of
Dava Singh
285
Sapha Singh.
I
Fatah Singh.
I
Dava Singh,
d.
iSo2^
Amar
d.
Singh,
1856.
Ill
,
Sawa Singh,
d.
Panjab Singh,
l>-
Vir Singh.
VVazir Singh,
I
1824.
1834.
!
Sant Singh,
l>.
Gurdit Singh,
t.
Hardit Singh,
d.
1848.
1834.'^
1838.
Isar Singh,
d.
Karpal Singh,
l>.
1866.
1873.
hundred years ago there hved in the Firozpur Zamindar named Gil, of Rajput Ragbansi desHe must have been a man of some wealth, for he cent. was the happy owner of two wives and seven concubines At but, although of mature years, he had no children.
About
five
district a Jat
of
women who
all
fancied
the
affection
of their
lord
would be
given to her
heir.
who should
it
bring him a
a
child, per-
son
was
away and
into
the jungle
where
they
left it to perish,
placing
in
the
mother's
bed a large
The
of
common
in
south
new-born
child.
He
ran
home
whom
the
was given, acknowledged to be the rightful heir. After this, by his slave girls, Gil had eleven other sons, whose descendants are still numerous in many parts of the Panjab. Shergil had four sons. The
name
286
two youngest died without issue but from the eldest, Rana Dhar, has descended the great house of Majitha, and from
Jubal the second,
Dava
generation,
is
Such
the tradi-
and Shergil.
of
Sawan Singh,
was
third cousin of
the
great-grandfather
Dava
Singh,
Sangat Singh, the leader of the Nishanwala Confederacy, of which he himself was a member, although he does not seem to have been of a very warlike
disposition.
of the Sardars
who
held
Raja of Nabha,
and subsequently
Ranjit Singh,
his own fort of Jahangir against Maharaja who had besieged it in 1806. The fort would
have
to
fallen
Sahib
his
Sineh,
Singh had given a tenth of who persuaded Ranjit Singh to raise the
whom Sapha
jagir,
siege.
;
and Sapha
son
but
his
came a very distinguished soldier. Burj and Barampur in jagir, besides large cash allowances. He accompanied Diwan Karpa Ram to Kashmir, and remained high in his favour till his recall and disgrace, when the jagirs
of Sardar Fatah Singh north of the
Satlaj
were resumed,
and he
retired to the
till
Cis-Satlaj
estate
remained
once tried
his death,
although
the
to induce
him
to return to Lahore.
16,
Dava Singh
at a
He
went
to
Kashmir with
fifty
his
father,
he
received
command
of his sowars,
and
of the regiment
of his brother
family.
Majithia
In
THE FIROZPUR
mission
DISTRICT.
287
1834 he accompanied the young Sardar to Calcutta on a On his return half complimentary, half political. regiment as commanDhonkalwala the he was transferred to
dant.
He
new
corps, but
remained
In 1842
he was transferred to
Gurkha regiment, with which he did service in Hazara. Under the Darbar he was posted at Dera Ismail Khan in command of the Surajmukhi regiment, and when the outbreak
to
at
Multan took
place,
he proceeded with
his
regiment
join
Edwardes and
Van
Cortlandt,
with
whom
he
He
was present
;
at the
Sadosam on the
Multan.
When
the battle of on the i8th June, 1848 ist July, and during the first siege of the Katarmukhi regiment was disaffected the
rebels,
its
and ready
to
it
to join
transferred
that he
its
might repress
discipline.
to
mutiny,
improve
with
the
After the
of Multan, he
and marched
showed
his
known courage
and energy.
When
the
in 1853,
raise
Amritsar.
at
After the
had
been
disarmed
Amritsar,
battalion
on
the
outbreak of the
force at
of
Hindustanis
to
to
preserve order
to
guard
this
the treasury,
and
so
and that
work
be
was
well
and
successfully
to
in a great
measure attributed
He
and during
down country by
him.
For
his
288
was granted the Star of British India with the title of Sardar Bahadar, and a personal allowance of Rs. 1,200 a year.
On
the
the
on the
ist
January, 1861,
Dava
career.
after a long
He
received
a special
a grant of six
rights
in
family
will
hold
perpetuity.
He
ment
died
in
1872.
His son
for
Amar Singh
has received a
some time
but
He
the
acts as Secretary
to the
Board of
Zira,
and
is
He
lives at INIansurwal.
289
Usman Khan.
Madat Khan.
I
Suliman Khan.
Burhan Khan.
I
Subhan Khan.
Sultan Khan.
I
Sham=udin Khan,
d.
1868.
Usman Khan.
d. 1880.
I
Sardar Khan,
t.
1845.
I
Mahomed
b.
Uniar Khan,
1876.
About one hundred and fifty years ago Mahomed Hayat Khan, of Bhati Rajput descent, settled at Thathi Kotna, a nowdeserted village near Kasur, and set up in trade. Kasur, some
two hundred years before
the three sons of
in
this,
Nazamudin Khan,
Mahomed Hayat
and
at
entered.
They fought
in
many
engagements,
Chunian,
the
great
between the Imperial forces and the Kasur Pathans, who had refused to pay tribute, Subhan Khan was slain.
battle
Khan
remained
in
Ranjit Singh
was
also for
many
years
Mamdot
Chief,
fault
and
he
but for
some
confiat
Punjab
2go
CHIEFS
the time of the Satlaj Campaign, and was the medium communication between the Raja and the British officers.
As
amount
the
the
in
variously represented,
of information
far
may be
interestin,8^
state
what
was
really given
by
Raja
Lai Singh,
On he was a traitor to the Sikh Government. December, 1845, when the Sikh army was crossing the Satlaj, the Raja sent Shamsudin Khan to Captain Nicholson at Firozpur to assure him that both he and
and how
1
2th
no-
the Sikh
array
might be destroyed;
regulars
and that he had marched that day back to Asal, and To this Nicholson the next day would march to Hariki. but that whether replied that he would report the matter
;
Lai Singh's horse joined the regular army or not, was a matter
of indifference,
as the
British
equal ease.
the
The
making a bridge at Hariki i6th December, Nicholson, and the Governor-General and Commander-in-Chief hearing that way ofMudki, sent forShamsudin Khan, by approaching were
discovering fords.
On
the
who
which
all
his
own
said
cavalry,
to attack
the
Gothe
Nicholson
the
Raja had
talk,
and that
marching as he
proposed.
On
the
the
Sth
that
Raja had marched to Firozshahr, and Nicholson gave him a letter to Major Broadfoot, which, it is believed, was
delivered to that officer as the troops were going
into
action
THE FIROZPUR
at
DISTRICT.
the 21st, as
in
it
291
was found
in his
on the 22nd.*
the
battle
On
after
of
to
;
any service
ascertain
him with
guard beyond
till
the
pickets.
the Raja
He
had
been hidden
battle
of Firozshahr,
to
Amritsar,
himself in
to
who swore
;
murder
* The number of the Sikh troops engaged at Mudki has been variously estimated^ Lord Gough, in his despatch of the 19th December, estimates them at from 15,000 to But the numbers engaged 20,000 infantry, almut the same force of cavalry and 40 guns. The force which marched from did not exceed, the regulars and irregulars, 15,000 men. Firozpur with Lai Singh, a portion of which fought at Mudki and the whole at Firozshahr^ was thus composed
:
Regular
292
detailed
account of
This inforthe number and disposition of the Sikh troops. it came though too late be correct, to of any use was mation
beyond confirming the information which had been already though It will thus be seen that Raja Lai Singh, acquired.
at heart a traitor, did little to
serve
the
British.
He may
;
have prevented an attack by the Sikh army on Firozpur but beyond this, which is not certain, he was of no service
whatever.
When
hore,
Major Lawrence was appointed Resident at LaShamsudin Khan was made agent of the Darbar, to
its
communicate
Resident.
In
1848 he did good service, and was present at the battle of In July, 1846, a donation of Rs. 5,000 was Gujranwala.
granted to him, and after
annexation,
when
his jagirs
were
lived
2,500.
He
Kasur with his great friend Malik Khalrudin Khan. Both both had been had been servants of the Mamdot family deprived of their estates by Nawab Jamaludin Khan, and they
;
have ever since remained bitter enemies of the family. * When Jamaludin Khan was alive, they did all they could to injure him, and joined the party of his sons, who had openly
quarrelled with him.
Usman Khan, the nephew and son-in-law of Shamsudin Khan, was a brave man and a good soldier. In 1857 he
distinguished himself in
his uncle
command
had
raised.
He
subsequently served
Police
arrangements,
and as
Inspector
He received his discharge in 1863 on the reduction of the force, with the highest character for energy He
died at Firozpur in 1880.
to
* Khairudin
Nawab
Jamaludin, whose
mother was
Khairudin's cousin.
THE FIROZPUR
DISTRICT.
six
is
293
hundred bieas of
in
He
and on
this
account resigned
in 1886.
Municipal Committee
a daughter
He
married his
own
niece,
of his sister
retired
in 1868.
294
THE JALANDHAR
Guru Nanak,
I
DISTRICT.
1552.
d.
1574.
Mohuru.
Mohan.
Gum Ram
Das 'Sodhi
1581.
Khatri, son-iii-law
of his predecessor), d.
I
Pirthi
I
Chand.
Pal
Mahadeo.
1606.
|
Mahar
Mina Sodhis
(from whom are descended the of Haranpur in Jhilam and of Butar and (nnu Harsahai
in Firozpur).
Guru Hargol^ind,
d.
1644.
Baba Gurdita,
d.
Ani Rai,
0. s.
Atat Rai,
0. s.
Guru Tegh
Bahadar.
I
Suraj
(his
Mai
1638.
I
p.
p.
descendants
are at
in
Anandpur
Guru Gcbind
Hushiarpur).
Gum
liar Rai.
Singh,
d.
1677.
170S.
Guru Ram
Kai,
0. s,
Guru Hai
Kishan,
0. s.
Fatah
Sinsh.
Jajhar Singh.
Zorawar
Singh.
Ajit
Singh.
p.
d.
1692.
Guru
Ram
Chand,
0. s.
p.
Karam
I
Parkash.
Bopaji.
Nonit Rai,
I
Jiwan Mai.
.
i
Gurdial,
0.
s.p.
Guru
Ram
I
1737.
Khushal
Singh.
I
Guru Takhat
Singh,
0. s.
Guru Gulab.
Singh,
d.
p. 1766.
1806,
Guru Sadhu
Jaswant Rai,
0. s.
Harbans Rai
(no issue).
Singh,
d.
p.
1859.
issue.)
d.
1882.
iSSi.
THE JALANDHAR
Guru Nao Nahal Singh
is
DISTRICT.
295
Nanak,
first
Nanak
was a Bedi Khatri, Ram Das, third in succession to Nanak, was the first of the Sodhis. The history of Sikhism in the earher days was practically made by these Gurus, who were
not only priests but politicians and soldiers.
been already
told at length,
suffice
to
Nao Nahal
He
for
was
killed
in
revenge
Khushrau aeainst
foundation-stone
Guru Arjan
laid the
known
and
as
Ramdaspura,
present
it
its
name
honor of
is
Amar
Das,
Arjan Singh
Gurdaspur
this
village are
Gurus.
Arjan.
its
Taran Taran
owes
reliofious
fame
to
;
Guru
and
is
The immense
at
xA.rjan
results.
faith,
Constant bathing
ground, exclaiming
" This
the
"
!
shall be the
The
village,
is
protection
and
patronage,
now
considerable town.
It is
conveniently
situated on the
highroad and
line of railway
all
is still
shown.
post
296
CHIEFS
of sandal-wood,
known
as a
too
heavy
to
for
ordinary
saint.
The Maharaja
glad
a
encourage the
lakh
the
re-
made
grant of a
building
of
in
now known
poses
and he
for pilgrims of
every
sect.
Gangasar.
the
Thamji and
proved
in
called
it
it
by an
underground channel.
Arjan's
own
one of
his
mentioned on
letting
it
return
he had
by
it
fall
this trouble
the
bathing.
" for
you
here
self
in
the Gangasar."
into
The
;
half-doubting disciple
in
him-
down
the
well
by a rope
presence of a large
full
gathering of believers
with the lota
in his
of joy,
hand.
He
in
had found
well.
it,
as
the
Guru
has
bottom of the
The Gangasar
by those
whom circumstances
of the original
tion
is
Guru Arjan made a collection of the sayings Guru Nanak and other Sadhs. The compilaknown as the Adi Grantli. The original volume, in
is
venerated by
relics.
all
Sikhs as the
most precious of
Guru Dhir Mai deThence it was posited this work at Kartarpur in 1644. stolen shortly afterwards and made over to the rival Guru
their
religious
Teg
Bahadar,
who
a
is
reported to
have dropped
for
it
by design
Some
book
now shown
is
mere substitute
THE JALANDHAR
never again fished out of the
Sikhs
is
DISTRICT.
river.
297
But the
belief of the
that
Teg Bahadar
in
volume nephew
;
a position to guard
later
it
with safety
on, intact,
and
all
honor
in
its
present resting-place at
Sadhu Singh, grandfather of the present Guru, took the volume to Lahore at Ranjit Singh's request, in 1830,
Kartarpur.
offering
and received the highest honors as its guardian. A daily was made of Rs. 86 and special doles of Rs. 600 were received at each festival of the amaivas (end of a
;
moon) and
5rt:?^yCv'^;//
while
in
presented
camp whenever
a military expedition
must be with them while the Thus, the money given to the man in charge was in no wise thrown away. This sacred volume was similarly taken to Patiala in i860 to be shown to the Maharaja Narindar Singh, who in vain
ardour, feeling that victory
Guru's breathed
spirit
was
in their midst.
tried to acquire
it.
He
fixed for
its
ance of Rs.
for three
It
is
51^,
whole years.
Kartarpur.
exposed every Sunday to the public gaze in the Shishmahal of the Guru's house and the charawa or money, cast
before
it
by the
faithful,
forms an
important
item
in
the
owner's income.
Guru Sadhu
accepted the
conveyed
to the
Guru
warrior Sikh,
Guru Arjan was succeeded by his son Hargobind, a who armed his followers and became a military
zgS
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
leader.
He
was
continued his tactics of annoyance towards the local GoverThe Sikhs worshipped nors whose authority he defied.
him
and under
its
his
bold rule
their religious
Guru Gobind was the next priest of note. He flourished towards the end of the seventeenth century, and instituted the polial or baptismal rite, by which alone the candidate is received He abolished caste amongst the khalsa or chosen people. distinctions and proclaimed that war was the most glorious
enthusiasm reached
highest heat.
of pastimes for
man, though
it
proved unremunerative
after the
for
him
sons
personally.
He
was
slain,
in
mad
attack
on the imperial
1708.
Gobind Singh was the last of the spiritual Gurus. Mention has already been made of his first cousin Dhir Mai, He was a immediate ancestor of the Kartarpur family.
brave, ambitious man,
who
seized lands
in the
Doab worth
immediate successors.
property
all
through
his
Guru Sadhu Singh who held the Maharaja Ranjit Singh's reign, was neighbours, the Ahluwalias of Kapurin
check by the
Maharaja,
who regarded
was
also
States,
Sadhu Singh
and he received substantial jagirs and occasional preMaharaja sents from the Rajas of Patiala, Jind and Nabha. Ranjit Singh presented him with the houses and gardens
attached to the Baoli Sahib in Lahore
a
city,
which
still
yield
handsome revenue.
is
This Baoli or
well,
above,
Arjan.
said to
299
to
tire
of the
new
doctrine,
plundered the place and threw Arjan's servants into the well,
burying them
Years afterwards,
the Baoli
in 1834,
Mahare-
Singh
fell
in
Arjan.
length a flower-seller
At Baoli, or where it had stood. came forward who said he had heard from his father that the Kazis' mosque was built upon the ruins of the Baoli of Arjan. The mosque was forthwith des-;
But no one knew of Arjan's
troyed,
Then
they cleaned the well out, and the Maharaja had his bath,
and recovered.
And
in
and the Rs. 70,000 thus collected were expended upon the restoration of the Baoli Sahib in all its original splendour. The shops at Lahore, in the
State should pay in a day's pay
Dabi, were made over to the Gurus of them in maintaining the Baoli in a proper state of repair. These shops yield an income of over two thousand rupees. The grant was continued to the family by the British Government.
Kartarpur
to assist
Rs. 63,000
Guru Sadhu Singh's lands were estimated as yielding when the Jalandhar Doab was taken over in
He had been holding certain villages on lease, 1845-46. worth Rs. 5,000 per annum. These leases were cancelled under our administration, as they were found to affect the
cultivators
injuriously
;
and
his
jagirs
were
reduced
to
commutation of one-fourth.
Guru's behaviour throughout the Mutiny crisis was all that could be desired. This was recognised in 1861, two
years after his death, by the release of the perpetual jagir from
the burden of a service charge.
The
300
Sadhu Singh was succeeded by his son Jawahar Singh, a He latterly of weak character and intemperate habits. becam.e incapable of managing his affairs, and Government
man
was forced to interfere to save the estate from utter ruin. In 1877 the management of the property was made over to the Deputy Commissioner of Jalandhar and a loan of Rs. 1,64,000 was sanctioned at a low rate of interest to meet the more pressing claims. At the beginning of 1889, a sum of Rs. 1,16,700, including interest, was still due to Government
;
Guru Jawahar Singh died in 1882. He left a son, the who was born one year before his father's The boy is under the charge of the Deputy Comdeath.
present Guru,
missioner of Jalandhar.
His income
is
in-
He
the
is
an intelligent child,
It
is
and
is
receiving instruction in
Aitchison
College at
Lahore.
Singh,
a
The
estate
being managed by
Sardar
of
Kartar
cousin
of Sardar
Hardit
Singh,
Dialgarh,
Ambala.
THE JALANDHAR
DISTRICT.
301
^lORON.
Singh.
Singh.
I
Albel
1868.
I
1S67.
1861.
I I
Balwant Singh,
b.
1883.
"SSs.
Sardar
at
Harnam Singh
is
Bhangu
Jalandhar.
He
is
a Viceregal
The
in Amritsar,
who,
in
Doab and
Phagwara and
the Satlaj.
when
Dayal Singh's
son Fatuh Singh rose to the rank of Colonel in the Artillery. He went back to the plough on the break-up of the Sikh army.
Four
villages
were resumed
at annexation in
lieu
of
dis-
which were
pensed with.
In 1858, when the conquest jagir holdings were being revised, it was settled that the revenues of the villages of Asaor and Fatahpur should revert to Government
on the death of Sardar Dayal Singh, who was allowed to hold them for life subject to an annual nasarana deduction
of Rs.
678.
Six
villages,
with
an aggregate revenue of
the
Rs. 7,500, were confirmed to Dayal Singh and his lineal male
heirs subject to a deduction of half
revenue.
The
pre.
sent Sardar
minor when
his grandfather
302
died
1868.
He
is
was educated
Zaildar
in
at
the
Ambala Wards'
and has
lately-
School.
He
his
Ilaka,
Honorary Magistrate* In addition to the jagir already specified, he is owner of six hundred and ghufifty ghumaos of land in Moron and of seven hundred maos in a village in Ambala, yielding about Rs. 4,000 per annum. He is connected by marriage with Sardar Narindar
Singh of Sarda Heri,
in
been appointed an
the
Ambala
district.
THE JALANDHAR
DISTRICT.
303
J5
h-1
<
c n
Cfi
i-~
rt
O P < X p
o
I
c/5
< P
304
The
Jats,
Sardars of Shahkot and Dhandowal are Badecha and are descended from the same ancestor Amrika, a
Amritsar.
resident of Dhianpur,
fifty
Kang and
Man
became members of Tara Singh's band, and were given villages about Sh^^hkot, Bopara and Raipur Bahia, in Nakodar, and some in Dharamkot, Mari and Tihara, to the south
of the Satlaj,
On
the descendants of
to
despoiled
part
Man
Singh retained
of
Singh.
Shahkot and Dharamkot on submitting to Ranjit The British Government resumed the Dharamkot
and released part of Shahkot. This grant was changed to a conquest jagir in 1858. The family of Dan Singh live in Shahkot, where they own some
estates in lieu of service sowars
land.
The descendants
there,
and
those of
Man Singh
reside
Dhandowal.
Sardar
Narain
Gurbakhsh
was the son of Sardar Bhag Singh, eldest son of Man Singh. His widows have a pension of l^s. 1,200 per annum, and one The jagirs of the of them is a Lambardar of Shahkotfamily are situated in Shahkot, Dhandowal and twenty-two other villages, and are worth Rs. 11,800 per annum, of which about three-fifths belong to the Shahkot branch.
Sardar Partab Singh, Dhandowal, is married to a daughHis sonSardar Khushal Singh of Dialpur, Patiala.
ter of
in-law,
is
a Naib-Tahsildar.
Sardar
Gurbaksh Singh, who died in 1881, was Subsome years. His son Dalip Singh
a Naib-Tahsildar.
He
is
also allowed
to
hold
the
Zail-
darship of Shahkot.
305
both
families.
He
and
his
cousins
Partab
are
Singh,
Shahkotia,
Viceregal
Provincial
Sardar
Amar
Singh's
name
is
on the
3o6
SARDAR NAHAL
SINGH, RANG.
THE JALANDHAR
no male
ed
to
issue.
DISTRICT.
307
On Bhup
Mulewal, Gurdaspur.
lewal
in
Mu-
was resumed on his death in 1885. One-half his share of the Kang jagir, amounting to Rs. 420, was continued to
Nahal Singh, he agreeing to maintain his brother's widow. Nahal Singh's own share in the jagir is Rs. 840.
Sardar Nahal Singh, Viceregal Darbari, new represents
the family.
He
including
the jagir
He
Tahsil
Nakodar,
fifty
Jalandhar, and
ghumaos
dred and
hunis
ghumaos
in
two villages
in
Amritsar.
He
He
is
of the
Naof
kodar Local
Board.
a daughter
His brother
Sardar
Dava Singh,
The
family are
Kang
Jat Sikhs,
3o8
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
SARDAR PARTAB
G
SINGH, JALAWALIA, OF
ALAWALPUR.
THE JALANDHAR
of Kapurthala.
district,
DISTRICT.
are
309
These
villages
now
in
the
Ludhiana
Basawa
Singh,
He
was
killed
Singh.
maintenance and
repairs.
On
Sardar Himat
Singh's
death
in 1829, the Alawalpur villages, valued at Rs. 60,000 per annum, were continued to his heirs subject to the provision of one hundred and eighty horsemen. In 1832 the estates
Singh.
The two
were there-
known
in
Tahsil.
Kohat
ity
Alawalpur and Dhogri, both in the Jalandhar Sardar Kishan Singh was killed in battle before 1841, and advantage was taken of his son's minoras
to
transfer the
Dhogri jagirs
a
to
Sardar
Ram
Singh,
nephew
favour.
of
Himat Singh,
his
General high
in the
Maharaja's
On
receiving
command
districts, this
in
to the State
on the death of
that
Ram
Alam Singh.
Singh being at its head. by the deduction of an equivalent for the service of eighty sowars, and was confirmed for his life by Government
orders
left
passed
in
1827.
The
six-and-a-half
at
villages
thus
to
him
death
were
this
assessed
the
regular settlement at
Rs. 9,180,
until his
and
in 1857,
when
aggregating Rs. 3,000 being granted to his widows and sons. Both Partab Singh and Ajit Singh were forward in their
ofters of help
They
31 o
CHIEFS
D. G. Barkley,
Deputy Commissioner
the ing the
of Jalandhar,
applied
on behalf of
convert-
orders
Thereunder the cash pension of Sardars Partab Singh and Ajit Singh was commuted to a jagir grant of threefourths of the village of Alawalpur, valued under the recent assessment at Rs. 2,000 per annum, to be continued after their
same
year.
death to the lineal heirs male of the late Sardar Achal Singh.
Sardar Ajit
Partab Singh,
Singh
is
better
who does
not mix
his
brother
affairs.
He
was appointed Sub-Registrar at Alawalpur in 1875, and Honorary Magistrate in 1881. The title of Sardar Bahadar was conferred upon him by the Viceroy's Sanad of 1888. By his loyal and upright conduct he has gained the respect
of every official
district.
who
the Jalandhar
His and
impartiality
charities
Magistrate
and
private
liberality
people of his
have made him popular with the neighbourhood. Mr. Purser, late Settlement
Officer, describes
is
him
as
" a
worth having."
Sardar Partab Singh
is
late
who gave
his
daughter a
village in dowry.
jagirs,
this
On
resumption of Sardar
Bhup Singh's
annum
son
in lieu of
His
daughter of the
late
Sardar
Thakar Singh, Sindhanwala, who died in exile lately at PondiSardar Partab Singh's son Achar Singh is connected chery. by marriage with Sardar Richpal Singh of Bhagowal, Gurdaspur, Munsif of Ludhiana.
Note.
Sardar
Ajit
in
THE JALANDHAR
DISTRICT.
1858.
Dava
d.
Singh,
1844.
Amar Singh,
b.
Harnam
b.
1
1828.
Singh, 83 1.
Narain Singh,
b
1822.
Wariam
b.
II
'
.1
Thakar Singh,
d.
1876.
I
Singh,
Sant Singh,
b.
Partat Singh,
b.
1862.
1858.
1870.
The
Tawar Rajput
of
wandered
to the Panjab,
and settled at Mauza Khokhowal in Amritsar. He amalo-amated with the Jats of the neighbourhood, and, sinking his
became gradually recognised as a Bhindar Jat. He by marriage came to own nineteen vilFiroz acquired jagir rights in lages around Khokhowal. three villages of Gurdaspur from the Emperor Akbar,
origin,
and
his connections
which were
rations.
continued
next
to
his
oftspring
for
eight
gene-
The
remarkable
man
in
the
family
was
with
Ram
who
joined
and Amritsar districts, in some of In this manner which their representatives still have rights. Ram Singh, who had joined the Karora Singhia Misal in
1759,
Rs.
1
found
himself
possessed
of
lands
yielding
him
His
son,
Commandant
in
the
army of Maharaja Ranjit Singh, at the head of two hundred horsemen, of which seven were maintained by himself as a He took part in most of the campaigns charge on his jagir.
of his day and acquired
more
land,
which he
a
lost
in
squab-
bling
He made
over
young man.
Sewa
312
tala
the
Ba-
Its
revenue
was
resumed by Government on their death. Sardar Amar Singh, now at the head of the family, received over the Jalandhar villages of Naugaja, where he resides, Isapur, Mokhe and Mor. The revenue (Rs. 2,700) was released to him on lifetenure, charged with a deduction of Rs. 1,670 in lieu of
service.
The
demand was enhanced in all four villages. Sardar Amar also owns a fourth share of six hundred ghumaos in the village of Vila, being the land held up by Mahtab Singh for his own maintenance.
the
Singh
Sadar
pur
Amar
Singh's
is
the
Lam-
bardar of Vila
district.
of the Gurdas-
lately
His son Wariam Singh is a Police Inspector, employed on special duty in attendance on His Excellency the Viceroy. His grandfather, Sardar Dava Singh, was for many years a Deputy Inspector of Police in Amritsar.
The
its
members
people in
are allied by
marriage with
many
of the
leading
313
SARDAR SUNDAR
SINGH, SARHALI.
Nahar Singh.
Diwan Singh.
I 1
Charat Singh.
I
Mohar Singh.
I
Suba Singh.
Budh
Singh,
4. 1852.
1 .
Karpal Singh,
d.
1883.
1
314
On
Chak Andhian, valued at Rs. 2,450. Fatah Singh's share lapsed, a life-penOne-quarter of the village
revenues was assigned to Budh Singh's son Karpal Singh, and to his lineal male heirs who are now holding. They own
thirty
ghurnaos of land
in Sarhali,
fifty
in
ghumaos
of the original
patrimony
in
Man, Tahsil
Batala, Gurdaspur.
The
for
some time
death in 1883.
local influence,
He and his brothers have a good deal of and they are connected by marriage with good
and Ludhiana.
families in Jalandhar
THE JALANDHAR
DISTRICT.
315
Chaja Mal.
I
Zorawar.
I
Sultan Bakhsh.
I
Bhup Singh,
d. 1865.
Achar Chand*
Gulab Singh,
d. 1838.
Partab Singh,
d. 1871.
I
Amar
d.
Singh,
is
1871.
The
Sardar
Amar
Singh,
His home
is
at
Amar Singh
make
of
were chaudhris
the
Satlaj.
in the
built
its
Makandpur, Nawashahar,
the
old proprietors,
where
they
head-quarters.
whom
There that Ganga Ram, one is an anecdote told in the family of the Makandpurias, in Public Darbar tore up a Sanad of the Emperor Shahjahan, confirming the Rajputs in their The matter was quickly reported, and rights of ownership. Ganga Ram was summoned to answer at Dehli for his disresHe pleaded that he had acted in the inpectful conduct.
to
managed
terests
of his
Sovereign,
There was sufficient wisdom in the in the hands of the Jats. argument to secure condonation of the ofTence, and Ganga Ram and his brothers were maintained in possession of the
3i6
accept
this
ex-par^e
without
earliest
They
and
murdered
Ganga Ram on
the
opportunity,
force.
considerable portion
of what
The
varying
results.
Finally Chaju
Mai and
all
the
members
off
of
by
the
Rajputs,
of the
situation.
Zorawar's mother
father's
house.
She
Dina Beg,
sions
;
to take
Ganga Ram, not proving payment of the State demand. Zorawar's He grandson Bhup Chand was the first Sikh in the family. was an admirer and follower of the celebrated fanatic Bedi Sahib Singh of Una, Hushiarpur, and while still a mere lad, accompanied him on his expeditions south of the Satlaj Bhup against Maler Kotla and Raikot in 1 794-1 798.
the Rajputs, as predicted by
in
punctual
the
checked by an accident which left him blind before he bad reached his prime, and he never attained a position of much
significance.
killed in 1838,
fighting
1
in
Singh's
service.
Bhup Singh
in
died
in
865.
On the accession
one-fourth
the
to
to
headship were
ignored
except
Makandpur
Rs.
his lineal
itself,
of
revenue,
now
yielding
The
Partab Singh,
Singh,
a
who
A mar
youth of
seventeen years,
now
reading
in the
Aitchison College.
He
of land in
is
Nawashahar.
He
a Zaildar
THE JALANDHAR
his
DISTRICT.
317
maternal uncle
The
He
estate
is
of
Sardar
of
an intelligent lad, and has married a daughter Bakhshish Singh of Khamanon Kalan in Patiala.
a small one, but has thriven during the minor-
The
ity
is
Amar
is
Singh.
of land in
Makandpur have
there
3i8
Chuhar Singh.
I
Budh
Singh.
Sudh Singh,
d.
Chatar Singh.
1851.
Kishan Singh,
d.
Basawa Singh,
d.
1836.
1849.
is
in the
Amritsar
in
dis-
Singh, leader of
the Bias
1759,
He
crossed
The
supplying
return
contingent of twenty-six
at
horsemen,
whose
British
Rs.
;
and the revenues of were resumed in lieu thereof under the usual To Sudh Singh the villages of Laroa, Madhopur system. and Dhada Sanora, valued at Rs. 4,600, were released for
three
villages
life.
Government on annexation
his death, in 185 1, Madhopur only was continued Basawa Singh, the present holder. The village son to his of Dhada was left with Sudh Singh's step-mother in life-
On
tenure.
She has
since died.
On
Basawa
Singh and
his lineal
male
is
District Settlement,
190 per
He annum, lives, he where Tahsil, Jalandhar Laroa, of Lambardar is owning forty ghumaos of land. He is connected by marriage
as well as a stifedposhi allowance
100.
Ludhiana.
He
is
THE JALANDHAR
DISTRICT.
319
Ram
Singh.
Chanda Singh,
ci.
Gulab Singh,
rf.
1843.
1847.
Dava Singh,
i.
Daya Singh,
c/.
Jawahar Singh,
i>.
1825.
1856.
1834.
Basant Singh,
d, 1875.
Bhagat Singh,
Jaswant Singh,
l>.
Fatah Singh,
d.
1S47.
1851.
.
1866.
I.
Lachman Singh,
d.
Surjan Singh,
d. 1878.
1868.
Narain Singh,
d.
Hukam
l>.
Singh,
1886.
1871.
The family migrated from the Amritsar Manjha about Lal Singh, to whom the one hundred and forty years ago. present Sardar counts back, is credited with having possessed himself of thirteen villages
south of the Satlaj, in Patiala
villages at his death.
to the share of
in
the Jalandhar
Doab and
three
district, fell
territory.
in the
He owned
Bahram,
Jalandhar
Gulab Singh was deprived whom he happened to have displeased, and he maintained himself upon one hundred and forty ghumaos of land in Bahram, made over to him by his brother Chanda Singh. This latter Sardar had seen much active service, having accompanied Maharaja
Chanda Singh.
command
was
of a
Bahram.
He
killed in a
in
320
Bannu
1823.
At annexation
the three sons of
the village of
in jagir to
Singh's time.
resumed on
The
sumptions was reconsidered in 1857, upon the death of Daya Singh, and it was ruled that two-thirds of the revenue of the village should be released to the lineal male heirs of the
holders,
namely,
Singh.
They
forty-
They
are
owners of
ghumaos of land in Bahram, and of one hundred and twelve ghumaos in the village of Doburji, in the Amritsar
district.
Sardar
blind for
some years
past.
Government, and was useful to Colonel Lake, Deputy Commissioner of His sons Bhagat Singh and Jalandhar, during the Mutiny. Jaswant Singh are Deputy Inspectors of Police in the Prois
He
always forward
vince.
THE JALANDHAR
DISTRICT.
321
Singh,
182S.
Ganda
Singh.
Budh Singh.
I
Sardul Singh,
Kishnn Singh,
d.
1863.
Nahal
Singh, d. 1S45
I
Basant
Singh.
Gurmakh
Singh,
d.
1S47.
I
Dava
Singh,
d. 1S72.
Sher
Singh.
Jaimal
Singh,
b.
1S27.
Natha
b
Gaja
Singh,
/'.
Dharam
Singli,
b.
Buta
Singh,
i.
Singh, 1859.
1S60.
1S56.
I
1859.
J
Harbans
Singh.
Paritam
.Singh.
Dalip Singh,
b.
Hari Singh,
b 1843.
Ishar Singh.
1848.
. .
322
horsemen.
than one
for the
many
his
battles,
life
more
member
lost
fighting
Maharaja.
On
annexation
summary
settlement
was made with Mahan Singh's representatives, who agreed to pay Rs. 17,100 per annum on the ten villages. Four of these later on were resumed by Government in lieu of the services of the horsemen. Again in 1847-48, two more villages were resumed on the death of Nahal Singh and Ganda Singh, pensions being granted to their widows and children. Further resumptions followed as other members of the family died. During the recent settlement operations the shares
actually enjoyed
were ascertained
to
be as follows
Rs.
Jaimal Sinfjh
565
565
Two Two
..
.
..
.
280 655
Chuhar Singh
..
..
..
..
Two
In
all,
655 life-pension of
Rs.
2,720.
There was
also a
in
1886
to his sons
Chuhar Singh's grant was continued on Hira Singh and Indar Singh.
his
death
The family is one of some local importance, and members have always been forward in offers of assistance
its
to
Government. Sardars Jaimal Singh and Bishan Singh were deputed to guard the Lasara Ferry on the Satlaj when the Sardar Jaimal Singh troops at Jalandhar mutinied in 1857. lives at Thala, Tahsil Philaur, Jalandhar, which is wholly owned by his family. Jaimal Singh's share is about two hundred and sixty ghumaos. He is a Zaildar. Natha Singh, son of Sardar Dava Singh, is a Dafadar in the 7th Bengal Bishan Singh's son Gurdit Singh is a Naib-TahCavalry.
sildar.
Jaimal Singh's
name
is
List.
THE JALANDHAR
DISTRICT.
323
324
his residence in
He
Raj-
Mahatpur and Kot Badal Khan. His name notorious amongst the Sikhs, and there were few matters connected with the sect in which he was not directly or indirectly concerned. He secured an alliance by marriage for his son Dasaundha Singh with Bibi
Satlaj, including
had by
time become
of the
Raja
Amar
Singh of Patiala,
when so mindthe
to
in the quarrels of
Phulkian Chiefsc
He
rendered
active
assistance
Amar
Himat
Singh
in
suppressing the
Singh
in
1772
1778 when
attacked by Sardar Hari Singh Sialba, who was supported by Sardar Jasa Singh Ramgarhia. In the year following he joined the other Khalsa leaders in resisting an attempt made to recover the Malwa country by the Wazir Majad-ul-
Daula Abad-ul-Ahad.
his invasion of
Later on,
in 1794,
we
find
him
allied in
of
Una, Hushiarpur,
Maler
Koda
cessfully
owing
to pressure
In 1799 Tara Singh was again in the field, this time on side of his relatives, the Phulkians, who were measuring
Thomas
of Hansi
and
shordy after he was busy at Faridkot championing the rights He appeared never of the deposed Sardar Charat Singh.
to be
able
to
take
rest.
He
died of a fever
caught while
On his way back to the Manjha, RanSingh took the opportunity of breaking up the powerful
Confederacy,
Dalawala
merging
its
possessions
into
the
THE JALANDHAR
DISTRICT.
retain his
it
325
father's
Dasaundha Singh was allowed to Dakhni property till his own death, when
by the Maharaja
to
Bedi
Sahib Singh.
second son of Tara Singh, had been assigned the GhumgaHis possession was contested rana estate south of the Satlaj.
by some of the minor Phulkian Chiefs who, however, were He obliged by Ranjit Singh to refrain from hostilities. divided the villages amongst the Rajas of Patiala and Jind and the Sardar of Nangla. The Nakodar and Mahalpur
estates were
the
but
Nazim
out
a of
half
of Jalandhar.
to recognise
the
ultimately induced Sardar Jhanda Singh's rights to maintenance patrimony, and he accordingly allowed him
in
share
This act of had already given the some Udasi Sadhs and Akalis. The forBaloki
and
Sharakpur.
mer
by
force.
Kaur,
took
and was there granted a maintenance allowance of Rs. 1,800 per annum.
they were maintained in these jagirs for life, subject to an annual service commutation payment of Rs. 280 the share
;
On
Singh, childless, in
widows.
resumed
British
326
The
represented to Govern-
ment by Mr,
Jalandhar, in
Commissioner of was ruled that Sardar Narmal Singh's jagir share in Baloki and Sharakpur should descend to his son Amar Singh, and thence integrally to a selected
D.
1874,
Deputy
and
male
heir, the successor on each occasion to be chosen by Government. The compassionate allowance to Narmal Singh's widow was of course resumed, and the grant was
of
Rs. 140.
is
The
Rs. 685
per annum.
Sardar
Amar Sinah
forty
lives at Baloki, in
which villaee he
is
owns about
Jalandhar.
ghumaos of
other
land.
He
married to
The
members
little
nected by marriage.
of
its
But
power remains.
THE HUSHIARPUR
DISTRICT.
327
HUSHIARPUR
DISTRICT.
328
was
annexed
by the
at
at the close of
the
Sikh
War
in 1846.
The Raja
Rajput
Princes,
judging doubtless
had received coming of by enjoyed formerly the English the powers of sovereignty really ever had hopes such restored. But no them would be been held out, and they had done nothing to entitle them
treatment the Simla Hill Chiefs
to privileges
for years.
Yet
that a
they
felt bitterly
had brought with it no amelioration of all of them no doubt sympathised with the attempt made in 1848 by Raja Umed Singh and some other petty Chiefs of the lower Sawaliks to break free from change of Rulers
their condition
;
and
the
new yoke. The revolt was speedily suppressed. John Lawrence, then Commissioner of Hushiarpur, attacked the Raja's forts at Amb and Akhrot, took them and razed them His possessions were confiscated, and he and to the ground.
Singh were deported
to
Kamaon,
in the
North-
West
Provinces.
permitted to
who was
Singh.
He
is still
return to his
home
at
Amb.
of
He
Ran
Singh.
In 1877,
He
at
usually
resides
at
Ramkot,
in
the
Jamu
State.
the Maharaja's
earnest solicitation.
to
him
the
land
from
the
villages
Jaswan Principality at the time of its annexaIn accordance with the tion to the British Government. terms of this grant, the jagir originally held by Raja Umed Singh, consisting of twenty-one villages in the Jaswan Dun, yielding a revenue of Rs. 18,442 per annum, has been assigned to Mian Raghnath Singh, besides the revenue-free proprietary
constituting the
THE HUSHIARPUR
rigHt
in
DISTRICT.
family
329
at
twenty-five
acres
of
the
garden
Amb,
close
Raja
is
Umed
Singh.
married in the
33^
CHIEFS
C
60
. '^^
-2> bo -
c
rt ";
j: bo
60
bo 60
few
.
'^
.S
o
bfl
60
c n
~ q CO "
j= 2;
J2 60 .5
t/"J
.
J3 60
jX
bo
5
'-''
jS
60 5-
O-
GO
eOO n
^60
;2;
u;
cS
D Q
PL.
D4
-rt.S
--C
c'S-
Q <
J3
60
o
CO
t
<
Q o w H
CO
bO
1^
bo
.5
-
^
p^
-
:2;
60
'3Ji
are
Andh
Ram
Das, fourth
succession
to
Baba
Nanak. It was he who built the famous temple known as the Darbar Sahib at Amritsar, thus securing to that city the honor of being the permanent head-quarters of Sikhism throughGuru Ram Das had three sons, Pirthi out the Panjab.
Chand, Mohandeo and Arjan, of
the ^^^2 on his father's death.
whom
Most of the Sodhis of the Firozpur, Jalandhar and Shahpur districts and of Patiala
and other Panjab States, are descended from Pirthi Chand, (Hushiarpur) and Kartarpur of Anandpur while those
(Jalandhar) are of the children of Arjan.
ascetic
Mohandeo was an
and did not marry. Guru Arjan devoted himself to the compiling and arranging of the Granth Sahib, or Sacred Volume, in its present form. His son Guru Har Gobind
is
said to
lence.
He
all
have possessed both spiritual and temporal excelacquired lands, founded villages and met his
the
many pitched battles, own sect by prosGuru Tegh elytising on a large scale wherever he went. Bahadar, youngest son of Har Gobind, also proved a vigorous missionary, doing much to strengthen the position of the
natural
foes,
Mahomedans,
in
adding
his
and blind
trust in
growth. With his father's death to avenge. Guru Gobind was the hitter enemy of all Mahomedans. He was the last of the Gurus the favourite hero in Sikh history, whose miracles rival the older records, and whose acts of bravery and charity are sung by every Sikh-mother to her son. Guru Gobind was, in his turn, crushed and broken by the Mughals.
;
and
the
for
moment
ed
to
succeed
Guru
332
and
remains
unfilled.
spiritual
successor
is
the
coming
but Gobind
is still
He
man
of no energy of charac-
who never had the people with him, and under whose weak sway the cause only suffered harm. It is unnecessary
to follow the family history step
by
step.
Gulab
Rai, grand-
of Anandpur,
destroyed
by the Mahomedans
in the
time of Guru
Gobind,
and pur-
chased extensive plots of land from Raja Bhim Chand of Bilaspur, thus largely helping to restore the social position of the
family,
ed.
depend-
Nahar Singh, Udai Singh, Khem Singh and Chaur Singh, are descended the Anandpur Sodhis in four branches, known as the Ba7% Djisri, Tisri and Chautki Sm'kai^s. The Anandpur Sodhis have always
four
From
nephews,
it
was
and the four brothers mentioned above were constantthe war-path towards the end of the last century. on out ly They were usually present in the exercise of their spiritual functions, taking no active part in the fighting, and merely exhorting the more fiery
Jats
to
go
in
and win.
But
their
their
services.
At annexation
They were
It meant loss and they did all their timid natures permitted to thwart our officers and discredit our actions in the eyes of the people.
;
per annum. coming of the English. of dignity and comparative ruin to them
valued at
lakh-and-a-half
failed to
in
much
spirit to resist a
Power
that
had recently
THE HUSHIARPUR
broken to
accept the
pieces a
disciplined
DISTRICT.
333
army.
new
the
themselves.
villages
in
found concealed
order requiring
in
their
the
;
the
immediate
to light
;
surrender
arms
treasonable letters
came
had some reason for objecting to a change of government, and the Sodhis were dealt with in a spirit of liberality which they could hardly have expected, and which
no doubt has since been gratefully acknowledged by the whole Sikh nation. Cash allowances, aggregating Rs. 55,200, were made
in 1847.
to the different
members
of the
Anandpur house
and had thirty years later dwindled down to But it was not the desire of Government that the
sink into
family should
The
scheme regulating the scale of pension for each recipient, and securing succession to next heirs on fixed principles. Hereunder, the head of the house was declared entitled to an allowance in perpetuity of Rs. 2,400 per annum, descending
of a
integrally to the
for
the
time
being.
The
heirs of
other
widows and
the
made from
other
Prominent among the representative Sodhis of AnandHarnarain Singh and his uncles Narindar Singh and Gajindar Singh also Nahal Singh and Ishar
;
and
Narindar
in
Mauza
Kurali,
Singh Kuraliwala, so called from the Ambala district, which was once in
. .
334
possession
the
family.
They
are
all
Darbarls, either
Sham
Chand.
rupees.
He died
in 1795.
His
grandson Diwan Singh was at the head of the family in 1846 when the Jalandhar Doab was annexed. As already stated,
the conduct of the Sodhis generally was unsatisfactory at that
period,
in
annum. He died in 1850. His grandsons Harnarain and Ramnarain are minors, whose estates are under the management of their uncle Narindar Singh, appointed guardian by the District Judge of Hushiarpur under Act XL of 1858. Sodhi Harnarain Singh is a youth of some promise. He is studying Sodhis Narindar Singh at the Aitchison College, Lahore. and Gajindar Singh, uncles of the minors, are gentlemen of position and substance, and have much local influence. Their income is set down as follows
:
Pension. Rs.
Other income,
Rs.
\
*
*
2,400
..
.
..
.
^'^"
J
.
1,800
.
750
There
uncles.
is
in proportion by the two minors and their Sodhi Harnarain Sino^h also holds a villagfe in iaorir from the Raja of Faridkot, yielding Rs. 475 per annum and Narindar Singh and Gajindar Singh enjoy a small jagir in
;
annum shared
the Nalagarh State. The uncles and nephews are joint owners of Chak Guru, Tahsil Nawashahr, Jalandhar, and of
Una, Hushiarpur.
THE HUSHIARPUR
DISTRICT.
335
Sodhi Narindar Singh is a member of the Municipal Committee of Anandpur and of the Local Board of Una, He is also President of the Local Board of Hushiarpur.
Nawashahr, Jalandhar.
Sodhi Gajindar Singh
is
an
The
received
Kapurthala have
pokal,
religion, at the
The second branch descended from Udai Singh, called represented by Anup Singh, Narain is Singh. None of these Singh, Puran Singh and Chuhar They enjoy pensions from Goindividuals are Darbaris.
the
Dusri Sarkar,
vernment.
Ishar Singh
are
prominent
from
is
representatives
Khem
Singh,
known
a Darbari.
He
and holds
Mauzas Jhabkara and Maheshpur in the yielding Rs. 2,095 P^"^ annum. Kahan Singh, the youngest son of Kesra Singh and grandson
in jagir
Gurdaspur
of
district,
Khem
Singh,
a
jagir
died
in
1846.
19,900.
inherited
of Rs.
annexation with the other Sodhi jagirs but as it subsequently appeared that Partab Singh's behaviour was not such as to
villages
in
Gujranwala
and Chahnat of the His son Hardit Singh and grandsons Ishar Singh and Kishan Singh now hold the jagir. Hardit Singh receives a pension of Rs. 800 per annum. Ishar
and
in
district.
Mauzas Gobindpur
Singh
is
a Darbari
33(>
in
Panjab.
He
family-
Kishan Singh
is
an Hono-
of the Anandpur Municipal Committee and of the Una Local Board. He is also SubRegistrar at Anandpur.
The
Singh,
at present
represented
Kuraliwala.
in
He
inherited
in
annexation
confiscated,
1846.
portion
the
Ambala
was
and
and
in lieu thereof
of
The
held by him
>
Tahsil
District
Ahlgraon
Una.
Tahsil
Hushiarpur.
Mahomedpur
Garhshankar.
Do.
)>
Barnala
Tahsil
Nawashahr
j-
Jalandhar.
He
Una
born
rights
in
two villages
in
is
the
Tahsil, aggregating
at
He
an
Honorary Magistrate
in 1864, is a
Anandpur.
* After the above account was written, the young Sodhi liarnarain Singh destroyed himself at Lahore, on the 8th May, i88S, while in a fit of temporary insanity brought on by over study.
THE HUSHIARPUR
DISTRICT.
337
d.
1738,
Kur
Singh.
I
Autar Chand.
I
Jit
Singh, ^. 1773i
Dharam Chand.
I
Sagar Chand,
'^'P-
Children.
Children.
Children.
Sahib Singh,
^. 1S34.
Mahbub
Singh.
Bishan Singh
(ancestor
of
Tegh Singh.
liikrama Singh,
d. 1863.
Bedi Singh,
Khem
C.y .
I I
1845.
Ram
0.
Kishan
1874.
Man Mohan
Singh,
<J.
Shibdeo Singh,
d.
Singh,
1886.
1879.
Bedi Kala Dhari, a descendant of Baba Nanak, crossed over from Dera Baba Nanak, Gurdaspur, early in the last
century,
and
after
for
some
down
at
hear his
difficult
The Jaswal
Ram
Singh,
the revenues
sons scattered
made himself popular by granting the Bedi ghumaos of land. Kala Dhari's Autar Chand settled after his death, in 1738.
of seventy
at Barian in the
still
his
descendants
hold a mafi.
Nanak,
ceeded
son
Dharam Chand returned to Dera Baba Sagar Chand died without issue. Chet Singh sucmatters
it
;
but there
for
was
little
and had
not been
his
celebrated
Bedi Sahib Singh, the family would in all likelihood have sunk into insignificance. Sahib Singh was fortunate enough, shortly after his father's death, to be chosen as arbi-
338
by the parties in a land dispute between Sardar Gurdit Singh of Santokhgarh and Raja Umed Singh of Jaswan and so pleasantly did he arrange matters that he received for his trouble the Taluka of Una from the Raja while Gurdit Singh made him Jagirdar in the rich village of Kulgaraon.
trator
;
became a man of authority on He acquired immense influence all over the Jalandhar Doab and even in the Manjha country, which he frequently visited, crowds would gather to The Raja of Kahlur found it listen to his fiery eloquence. the village of Band Lahri, and him with present politic to others in a position to do so were eager to press land-grants upon him, large or small, according to their means. Even Maharaja Ranjit Singh, smitten by his sanctity, and in appreGujranwala, to the ciation of his worth, added Udhovvali,
Thus honored,
and
religious
social
questions.
We
find the
Raja Sahib
Bedi as
in
correspondence to the
Baba Sahib Bedi Sahib Singhji." Later on we find the Bedi accompanying Ranjit Singh on several of his expeditions and it may be presumed that the Maharaja benefited by the presence of such a zealous and holy man in his camp? for he rewarded him generously from time to time with portions of the spoils which fell to him as victor. But many villages thus acquired were resumed by Ranjit Singh's
;
immediate successors.
In 1794, the Bedi
proclaimed
religious
war against
killing
whom
he accused of
cows,
and induced Sardars Tara Singh, Gheba, Bhagel Singh, Bhanga Singh Thanesar and several other Chiefs, to join
him.
great
as
They were men who thought little of religion and a deal of plunder, and who considered a religious cry
as
good
The
unfortunate
kill
and
pillage.
under
Ataula
Khan, made a
but
339
Ataula
Khan
sent
off
for assistance,
and
as a force
under
by
at
Bedi
to
Amargarh, it soon reached the town and obliged the withdraw across the Satlaj.
later, in
Four years
sar a second
religious
of Rai Kot,
The Sikhs
in
thousand
number,
Rai Kot,
and overran
Jagraon,
Ludhiana, and
the
neighbouring country.
;
The
Chief, Rai
officer,
Roshan Khan, made a gallant stand at the village of Jodh, and would have repulsed the Sikhs had he not been killed by a musket-shot, when his troops, disheartened, took to
flight.
to
his
neighbours
with
for
help,
and
the
Chiefs
of Patiala and
Jind,
Kaithal, and Jodh Singh Kalsia, collected their forces and marched towards Ludhiana, driving the Sikhs before them and recovering the villages which the Bedi had seized. Driven out of some villages, Bedi Sahib Singh seized others. To Mansur he was invited by the zamindars, weary of the tyranny of Sher Khan, the collector of Rai Alyas, and the Naubat Fort came into his possession, while he built a new one in the village of Doghari. He next took the town of Ludhiana and laid siege to the fort, which he would doubtless have captured had not Rai Alyas induced him to retire
send
for
the celebrated
George Thomas
of Hissar.*
in 1834.
Singh had,
in
his
father's
lifetime,
340
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
annum from
Bikrama Singh,
third
and on him
ative
also
descended the
spiritual
mantle as represent-
Baba Nanak between the Satlaj and Bias. His position was recognised at Lahore, and for some years the But things changed with the family continued to thrive. advent of the British. The Manjha jagirs were resumed,
of
feeble
title
and shortoffered
annum
in lieu of
claims,
was
and
indignantly refused.
lieving in
to treat
for be-
Bikrama Singh's disloyalty, and was not disposed him with the liberality a ready acquiescence in the new state of things would have secured him. Fire-arms, which he should have surrendered, were found concealed in his garden, and other proofs were present of his readiness The first offer was to rebel if any one would take the lead. accordingly modified, and Rs. 12,000 were refused by him Then came the local rebellion in as was the larger sum. 1848, during the Second Sikh War, of the hill Chiefs having Foremost amongst them possessions north of Hushiarpur. were the Rajas of Kangra, Jaswan and Datarpur. The
rising
the
Dun
men and
bellious Rajas,
confiscated.
who were expatriated, and their possessions Bedi Bikrama Singh threw whatever weight
he had into the movement, hoping that his luck was about He was marching towards Hushiarpur to raise to turn.
the country, and had halted at Maili,
eight miles
forces,
off,
when,
hearing of the break-up of the Rajas' his plans and fled in all haste across the
he changed
Bias
Sher Singh.
He
gave himself up
later on,
THE HUSHIARPUR
to reside at Amritsar, his lands
DISTRICT.
forfeit,
341
being declared
on an
he enjoyed until
Bedi Bikrama Sing*h's eldest son died in maintenance allowance of Rs, 1,100, raised to Rs.
1864.
2,300 per
annum
three
years
later,
was passed
at the
it
to
the
second son
resuscitating
the
community
valued
Singh and Una, Tahsil Una. The Bedi's mafi lands and gardens yield an and he owns additional income of about Rs. 500 per annum
at Rs. 2,484 in the villages of Arniala. Lai
;
six
hundred
and
seventy
ghumaos
in
Arniala,
Kotla
besides small
plots
in
He
an Honorary Magistrate,
Una
Municipal
Committee,
member
of the District
342
Gobind Chand.
d.
i8i8.
I
Jagat Chand,
d.
1877.
Davi Cliand,
d.
Man Chand,
d.
Udham
h.
Singh,
1884.
1857.
1838.
Suram Chand,
b.
Raghbir Chand,
i>
1842.
1846.
I
Hira Chand,
b.
1866.
1870.
1877.
1881.
Sohan Singh,
b.
Hiikam Singh,
b.
Parfab Singh,
b.
1865.
1871.
1873.
The
Chand
the
early history of
is
as
Babhaor.
Heaven-born.
Both go back to Bhum Chand, But they branched away from each
Kingdom of Goler, near Gopipur Dera, Kangra, just north of tne Hushiarpur boundary line. His The possessions passed to his elder son Makamal Chand.
and founded the
younger,
Sri
Data,
moved south
into the
present
Dasua
Tahsil of Hushiarpur, and there established the small Rajput State of Datarpur, which had an existence of many hun-
dred years.
The
when Maharaja Ranjit Raja Gobind himself in their affairs. interest to began Singh Chand, grandfather of the present representative, having failed to obey the Maharaja's summons to attend at Lahore,
the beginning of the present century,
343
sovereign powers
and reduced
in
to
the
Jagirdar.
On
his
death
Jagat
a jagir grant
of
Rs.
4,600
and
was
in
had been under the impression that the accession of the English would be marked by the restoration to them of all
their ancient rights
and
bitter
was
their
The
revolt of the
been described
another Chapter.
made
to
Chand
North-West Provinces, They were allowed a maintenance grant of Rs. 3,600 per annum.
Almora,
Jagat
His son Udham Singh 1877. Una, Hushiarpur, and enjoys a His stepmother has a similar pension of Rs. 600 per annum. allowance, and the widow of his brother Man Chand also Mian Davi Chand died in 1883, receives a small pension. The elder, Suram Chand, is a General leaving two sons.
Chand
died
in
in
the
army
of
the
son,
is
The second Maharaja of Jamu. office under the Raja of Mandi, who
married to his
He
is
in
receipt
of a pension
of
annum from
is
Both bro-
Raja of Simur.
Darbari of the
are in
He
Provincial
of
The widows
annum.
The
family are
Dadwal Rajputs.
344
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
Sham
Sin.h.
I
Tara Singh,
d.
1831.
Harsa Singh,
d. 1887.
I I
Partab Singh,
d.
Khushal, Singh
d.
1828.
1854.
Indar Singh,
d.
1854.
1847.
Gulab Singh,
b.
Jaswant Singh
b.
I
Narindar Singh,
b.
Mohindar Singh,
b.
1
1846.
1849.'
1886.
888.
Dayai Singh,
b.
Maisa Singh,
b.
Narain Singh,
b.
Bhagwan Singh,
l>.
1864.
I
1878.
1867.
1873-
Balwant
Singh,
b.
Amar
b.
Singh,
1886.
1883.
like
many
an estate
for
himself in
Having
to his
wards
to the rich
This
was
in
1759.
He
villages in
Ilaka
Jamiatgarh,
Tahsil
Garh-
He
was succeeded
built
in his
Hushiarpur estates
small
forts, still in
by
to
his
son
five
patrimony.
But he had
;
admit
supremacy of Maharaja
Ranjit Singh
his
345
of horse-
He was succeeded in 1831 by his only surviving son Khushal Sineh, who became a favourite of the Maharaja, accompanying him on many of his expeditions. He was connected by marriage with Sardar Lahna Singh Majithia, Amritsar. When the turn of the British came, he was given
a jagir of eighteen villages, yielding Rs. 10,371, in Hushiarpur, while holding that of Sultan
trict,
Wind
in
He
died early in
1854,
six
and one
months,
then
of his
followed
him within
seven years
surviving
member
of the
family.
He
School.
The family
jagir,
reduced to Rs.
was spread over four villages in Tahsil Hushiarpur, seven in Tahsil Garhshankar and one (Sultan Wind) in Amritsar.
six
hundred
ghumaos
at
of
land
in
the
Tahsils
mentioned.
Garhshankar and Hushiarpur; is Honorary Magistrate, Sub-Registrar and Civil Judge within the limits of the Balachaur Police Thana. He is President of the Local Garhshankar Board and memlives
He
Katgarh,
Circle
Zaildar,
He
been appointed a member of the Committee of the Aitchison The title of Sardar Bahadar was conferred College, Lahore.
upon him
in
is
The Sardar
Ahmad
Kalan, Amritsar
;
Sardar
Shib Deo Singh of Lidhran, Ludhiana and Sardar Lahna Singh (uncle of Sardar Gurdayal Singh, District Judge) of
Harpargarh,
Nabha,
and Chief
is
of
Manimajra,
Ambala.
per-
described as a
man
of great
346
CHIEFS
worth, a
fine
sonal
and a good
rider,
having
own
He
is
one of
the
accommodated
times.
He
movement
the Jats.
Mention may here be made of the elder branch of the descended from Jhanda Singh's son Sham Singh, who succeeded to the Amritsar, Sialkot and Jamu properties, Harsa said to have yielded over a lakh of rupees income. Singh, son of Sham Singh, was a distinguished soldier in the Khalsa army, and commanded one of the regiments of the He had the rank of General under MahaFrench brigade. In 1849 he espoused the national cause raja Sher Singh.
family,
of twenty-five
and fought on the wrong side at Multan, thus forfeiting a jagir thousand rupees. In 1857 ^^ took service in the
iith Bengal Lancers as a
Rasaldar and
in
proved himself a
gallant soldier.
He
retired
and a pension of Rs. 600 per annum. One-half of this has been continued to his son Gulab Singh, at the head of the The family since Sardar Harsa Singh's death in 1887. Sardar was a Viceregal Darbari of the Amritsar district, and
Gulab Singh is Chief Lambardar of good presence, high intelliHis gence, and possesses considerable local influence. brother Jaswant Singh is a Rasaldar in the nth Bengal Lancers, and for his services in connection with the Afghan Boundary Commission received the Order of Merit. Jasresided at Sultan
of the village.
Wind.
is
He
man
want Singh's son Narain Singh is serving as a Dafadar in his father's Regiment. The family owns about two hundred and
fifty
acres of land.
347
Lai Chand,
,/.
1855.
I
Mahtab Chand,
d.
187 1.
Khushal Singh,
d. 1854.
Sahib Singh,
d.
Lahna Singh,
b.
Sham
Singh,
Udham
Singh.
1881.
1836.
Opindar Singh,
Ram
b.
Singh,
Janardhan Singh,
b.
Pardaman Singh,
b.
Pirthi Singh,
b.
1865.
1869.
1872.
1874.
1877,
This family
is
of
some standing
in
the lower
hills
Hushiarpur
district,
They
are
thirty-six
Royal
to
Rajput races.
Four
have come upwards of eleven hundred years ago from Garhmuktasar and Garhmandal to these parts. One, now extinct, founded Jaijon
stock are said
;
Dad
now Musalmans a third founded the existing Manaswal and the fourth that of Kungrat.
;
Rana Jodh Chand, thirty-seven generations earlier than Lahna Singh, came up from Garhmuktasar in Mirut to
worship
Bias,
at the
and brought with him followers sufficient to enable him to hold the lower Sawaliks near Garhshankar, with his headEarly in the last century, however, quarters at Manaswal.
they lost their
independence and
of
became
tributary
is
to
the
Jaswal
Raja,
now
the
In 1759 when the Jaswals were hard pressed by Sardar Hari Singh, Sialwa, Ambala, their Chief was
representative.
conciliation
he had been
receiving
348
Manaswal.
Jaswalis,
in
We
1804,
next
to
hear
resist
of the
Rana
an
invasion
of the
Katoch
The
to
retire
next
outsider
The Maharaja Ranjit Singh was the who had to be reckoned with. He was
towards the
title
Manaswal
In 181 5 he confirmed
the
in
of Sardar
at
Dava
same
Singh,
son
of
Hari
Singh,
his jagirs,
in
the
Chand's rights
v/hat
fifteen
remained
supply of
the
British
horsemen
in
common
weal.
When
Lai
came
1846,
of
continuance
Chand died
the
is
now
head of
in
the family,
his brother
Sahib Singh
1881.
He
is
Tahsil
two thousand
Garhshankar and one in Tahsil Una. He owns five hundred ghumaos of land in Manaswal
and five thousand ghumaos in six other villages of the Garhshankar Tahsil, besides the whole vilkc-ge of MahandUna, pur, containing two thousand ghumaos in Tahsil
Hushiarpur.
The
Rajput
of
primogeniture upon the head of the house for the time being.
THE HUSHIARPUR
DISTRICT.
349
350
the Rani
Mahtab Kaur,
infant.
at
charge of the
when
Maharaja Ranjit Singh later on by siding with Sada Kaur the two were on bad terms, and he was obliged to
Badni,
in the
flee to
Ludhiana
district,
and
forfeit
all
his
He
who was appointed a personal attendant of His other sons were also by degrees Rani Mahtab Kaur.
the
Rajas
One
of them,
Budh Singh,
was murdered in 1843 with the Maharaja Sher Singh. Bur Singh was employed on various occasions as a confidential aeent, and with such success as to secure him in reward the
in
whole village of Gulerian, Gurdaspur, a jagir of thirty ghumaos Mukerian, and a house at Batala and at Lahore, all of
still
which are
village
in
held by
him.
Later on
he
of
Bathu,
Tahsil
Una,
Hushiarpur,
services
Kashmir under Rajas Gulab Singh and Partab SinghAnd for his assistance to the British on the occasion of General Pollock's advance on Kabul he received a mafi plot in a village near Peshawar, yielding Rs. 300 per annum. His enemies took advantage of the murder of his master, the Maharaja Sher Singh, to attempt Bur Singh's ruin, and the Darbar levied from him a fine of Rs. 81,000 alleged to have
were
been misappropriated on various occasions. at the same time temporarily resumed.
All
his
jagirs
On
Sardar Jawahar Singh, who Bur Singh and appointed him Governor of Amritsar, at the same time conferring upon him the jagir During the commotions revenue of Karimpur in Jamu. following upon Sher Singh's death, Bur Singh came to the front as an able administrator and kept the country around
passed to Raja Lai Singh and
speedily reinstated
THE HUSHIARPUR
Jhilam and Ravval Pindi
crushing the turbulent
in a
DISTRICT.
351
spirits
For these
Rs.
6,500 per
Gurdaspur
respectively.
district,
while
his
brothers
2,
We
in
dan, mother of
wala, where
trust
it
Dalip
Singh,
at
This
him Sir Henry Lawrence and Sir His brother Sudh Singh was at the time Frederick Currie. in attendance on Maharaja Dalip Singh at Lahore. The
was reposed
by
to
Banares
in
consequence
by Mulraj, Bur Singh's services were utilLahore and Multan Road under Sir Robert Montgomery's orders. Sir Robert held
ized in preserving order along the
him in the highest esteem, and many years afterwards wrote to him as follows " My friend, you have always been faithful under whatever Government you have served. Maharaja Sher Singh created you a Sardar for your devotion to him. During the days of the Residency at Lahore you did loyal service to our Government, and your relatives served in our
:
army.
am
sure
all
English officers
will treat
you with
This
fine old
man
still
leads an active
life.
He
is
a Sub-
Registrar of documents
for
the
cluster
is
of villages around
He
lately
Sudh Singh.
the
He
Gov-
title
of Sardar Bahadar by
1888.
The Sardar
352
recently died,
at
Dasua, and a
member
of the
He
for conspicuous gallantry on more than one occasion. was afterwards made an Inspector of Police, but being illiterate he was found not fit for the appointment, and he
name
He
resigned
in 1863.
Nadhan Singh,
enjoys jagirs
Gurdaspur
district.
He
also holds
one
hundred and sixty ghumaos of mafi land in Gurdaspur, Peshawar and Hushiarpur, and he is owner of ninety ghumaos in four villages of the Dasua Tahsil. Sardar Sudh
Singh's jagir-holdings
in
annum,
Gurdaspur yielded Rs. 2,060 per Nadhan Singh Rs. 1,000. and proprietary
rights
in
The
latter
mafi
the
Hushiarpur
The two
THE HUSHIARPUR
R.\I
DISTRICT.
353
354
share of the
He
Chand
his
of
Kangra
on the occasion of
in
his
conquest of the
These were reduced in number to six, on the invasion by Maharaja Ranjit Singh of this Doab in 18 1 5, and were held subject to a nazarana deduction of half the jagir and to the supply of five horsemen to the State. But his talukdari rights already mentioned were not interfered with.
On
Doab by
the British
Government
and
in lieu a
1,000 per
Alam Chand.
on, with
however, reconsidered
later
the
value
of Rs.
1,200 per
annum
male
in
the
the
lineal
Ratan Chand.
This was
cash
allowance.
He
was
twenty
annum.
it
came.
Rai Ratan Chand cheerfully accepted British Rule when He assisted the authorities from the commence-
the Hill
ment, and wisely held aloof from the abortive rebellion of Chiefs in 1848-49, which brought his hereditary
grief.
He was
again
on the occasion of the Mutiny, proceeding to Dehli with a number of his kinsmen and doing excellent service side by side with the British Troops
loyal
assistance
He
died in 1884.
Rai Hira Chand, now at the head of the family, has entered upon the patrimony under unfavorable circumstances,
his father
having
left
it
THE HUSHIARPUR
His
affairs
is
DISTRICT.
335
who
with
trying
come
to
the
Rs.
numerous
creditors.
The
jagir,
in
Tahsil
Una,
yields
rights in
739 per annum. The brothers have ownership three thousand five hundred ghumaos, in the villages
Bangarh,
of Babhaur,
Takhera,
Tahsil Una.
The
unculturable
Hira Chand
recognized by
a Provincial Darbari.
The
title
of Rai
is
Gopal Singh, cousin of Hira Chand, has talukand is an occupancy tenant in Bangarh. The present Raja of Goler is the son of Rai Hira Chand's
Government.
sister.
second
sister
356
KANGRA
DISTRICT.
1773-
Pargas Chand,
tl
Prakaram Chand.
1820.
I.
Bhup Singh,
(/.
1820.
Shamsher Singh,
d, 1877.
Raghnath Singh,
d.
Hardrt Singh,
i>.
i860.
1
1866.
Baldeo Singh,
i>.
1884.
From
habited
time immemorial the Kangra Hills have been inby Hindu races living under the government of
Among these petty States, the oldest and their own Chiefs. most extensive was Kangra. According to local legend the Katoch family, as the house of Kangra is designated, is not The first Raja, Bhum Chand, sprang to of human origin. life fully grown, having been created from perspiration off the and became the brow of a goddess enshrined at Kangra progenitor of a line of five hundred Kings. The ancient name of his dominions was Trigart, an evident attempt to
;
mentioned
Mahabkarat.
is
no reason
to
question
north of the Panjab" are referred to by the Greek Historians of Alexander more than three hundred years before Christ and Farishta alludes to the Raja of
;
THE K A NCR A
Kot Kangra
in
DISTRICT.
357
Kanauj who overran the hills from Kamaon to Kashmir, subduing five hundred petty Chiefs. The time when this
conqueror flourished
history,
is
within
The
number of
it
its
branches
has spread.
Throughthere
is
mark
Katoch
Four independent Principalities Jaswan, Haripur, Datarpur have been founded from the parent The fraternity of Sadu Rajputs with their seven house. Raos or Chiefs, who occupy the Jaswan Valley between Una and Rupar, claim descent from the same stock and
Siba and
The
was an emigrant Katoch. Katoch Monarchy as a power which had already attained the vigor of maturity. But the traditional story of the circumstances under which Haripur
boast
that their ancestor
earliest records refer to the
was separated from Kangra may be accepted as trustworthy, inasmuch as it is implicitly believed by the general body of Hari Chand, Raja of Rajputs whom it most concerns.
Kangra, was out hunting in the neighbourhood of Harsar, still famous for its extensive woods stocked By some mishap he fell into a with various kinds of game.
a village of Goler,
dry well unobserved by his companions, who, after a long and
fruitless search,
belief that he
had become the victim of a beast of prey. His loss was mourned as one who was dead, and his brother Karam Chand ascended the throne. But Hari Chand was still alive. After the lapse of several days he was discovered
and extricated by some shepherds, from whom he learned His position was emthe story of his brother's accession.
358
barrassing
living,
his
rolls
of the
in his stead.
return
to
Kangra
resolved
so he
generously
birth-right.
Selecting a
Goler, he built
after himself,
and
made
the
it
Thus,
while
younger
sat,
without real
right,
Katoches.
Since the days of Hari Chand
twenty-six
generations
Principality
preserved
almost intact
the
present
Dera
Tahsil.
Datarpur is alone excluded, as it now belongs to the district of Hushiarpur and the only addition is Tapa Ghagot,
;
formerly a portion
of Jaswan,
Dera
Tahsil, as
it
stands in
the
map
of
Kangra,
represents
Dealing with comparatively modern history, we find Raja Rup Chand of Goler allied with Shahjahan in the subjugation of the Jamwal and Mankotia Rajas,
For
title
this
assistance
the
weapons which
are
still
preserved
in the family as
Raja
Man
Singh,
who
flourished in the
half of
the
who
sent
him
on an expedition
Jagat
to
Kandahar, which
failed.
He
was sub-
in
punishing
Raja
Chand
of Nurpur,
matter of etiquette to
conferred
Lion-killer,
upon
Man
S/ier
of
the
THE KANGRA
DISTRICT.
359
Raja BIkrama Singh took service under Aurangzeb, and was where he died. He
for his
was famous
physical prowess,
it
and
his
could
fingers.
break
a
is
in
This
says.
in
to ap-
distinguished
Maharaja Ranjit
;
him with
respect,
1812,
he seized
the
his territory,
worth about
him a
one-fourth
revenues. of
This operation
was not
exercise
Maharaja.
Paramount
perforce
free,
him
until
;
The
Raja
agreed
his liberty.
Once
he protested against the confiscation, and refused to touch the Rs, 20,000 which had been fixed for his maintenance.
The
of his
British,
When
the
jagir of Rs.
Chief
Shamsher Singh, who had succeeded Bhup Singh in 1820. The grant was spread over twenty
and together with two detached mafi plots and three gardens in Talukas Nandpur and Haripur, was estimated to yield
Rs. 20,711.
spirituous
The
liquors
right
of raising
was
of Kangra.
old
Rajput Chiefs
celebrated
soldier,
36o
for his
War
he gathered
He
shared
when
bring
Maharaja Ranjit Singh's ambitious policy had caused them. Yet Shamsher Singh remained outwardly loyal and refused to give countenance to the rebellious movement set on foot by some of his kinsmen immediately after annexation. He died in 1877, and his jagir consequently leaving neither widow nor son
relief
them no
the
lapsed, as
no provision
for
collateral
in 1853.
heirs
But as an
should
and that no police or magisterial powers should be claimed by the Raja as of right.
cease,
conferred
Singh was gazetted in 1878 to the title of Raja, upon him as a hereditary distinction. As the estate had been heavily encumbered. Government stepped in shortly before the Raja's death and saved him from hopeJai
less insolvency
in half-yearly
Mian
This sum
is still
in
course of liquidation.
On
his son
fair
Jai Singh's death in 1884, he was succeeded by Raghnath Singh, the present Raja, a young man of
educational
civil judicial
attainments.
He
and
jagir,
powers within the villages comprising his The nominal specified in the original Sanad of 1853.
is
Rs.
21,411
but the
is
realizations
The Raja
the leading
361
Darbari of the
Kangra
district.
His
sister is
The
are
living
Katoch representatives
in the
Kangra
dis-
Raja Raghnath Singh of Goler, Raja Jai Chand trict of Lambagraon, Raja Jai Singh of Siba, and Raja Amar Chand of Nadaun. The Goler family is, however, usuallycalled Goleria
;
the Datarpuras,
Dadwal
362
MAJOR
JAI
THE KANGRA
princely portion to his
children
;
DISTRICT.
but his aggressive
363
nature
brought him into collision with a power mightier than his own, involving him in irretrievable ruin. In 1805, Sansar
Charid
fell
of Bati,
adjoining
upon the State of Kahlurand seized the Taluka his own district of Mahal Mori. The
in a position to retaliate alone, solicit-
who had
already
overrun the
beyond
border.
The
first
hundred miles They gladly responded, and action was fought at Mahal
Satlaj, three
Mori
in 1806,
when
own
;
Then
Certain por-
while Fort
in the
Kangra and
remained
sources.
The
people,
harassed and
;
fled
for
some
made
inroads on
his
disorder.
At
last, in
readily granted. The Sikhs entered Kangra and gave battle to the Gurkhas in August 1809. The Gurkha army had suffered severely from sickness yet the
Singh.
This was
field
But fortune
finally
who
followed
up the victory
by pressing close upon the enemy, obliging them to abandon all their conquests on the right bank of the Satlaj.
Ranjit Singh was
not
the
man
to
confer
so
large
took
Fort Kangra and the sixty-six villages in the valley allotted by ancient usage for its maintenance guaranteeing to Sansar
;
364
unfettered by conditions was in 18 10. But in the same year Ranjit Singh withdrew from his engagement and began to encroach more and more on the Katoch Chiefs possessions, until
his
Chand
other dominions,
of service.*
This
nothing was left but the bare title, and a small jagir to save him from begging his bread. Raja Sansar Chand died in 1824, having sunk into the position of an obsequious
Lahore. Twenty years earlier he was Lord Paramount of the Hill States, and almost a rival to the great Maharaja himself. He was succeeded by his son Anrudh Chand, from whom the Sikhs exacted a lakh of rupees as succession money. In 1827 Ranjit Singh took advantage of Anrudh Chand's presence at Lahore to demand his sister's hand on behalf of Hira Singh, son of his Minister Dhian Singh. Surrounded by Sikhs, and fearing the consequence
tributary of
the timid Chief acquiesced and returned had no intention, however, of being bound by such a promise, and was prepared to lose his Kingdom
of abrupt
refusal,
homewards. and
He
ancient house.
left his
Knowing
he quietly
household,
his
Ranjit
of his
Singh was
authority
safe.
;
defiance
of
the
in the
Raja were
His
name
of the Khalsa.
reaching
Hardwar,
girl
his
chosen
retreat,
the inno-
Raja of
He
died
of paralysis
while
still
exile.
His
the
Rana
years.
of Baghal with
whom
he continued to reside
for
some
* At the end of this history is given a copy of the Treaty granted to Sansar Chand hy the Maharaja. It was executed in the Holy Temple of Jawalamukhi, and was stamped by Ranjit Singh with his own hand colored with saffron.
365
Governor-General,
Raja
to
go
Lahore and make terms with Ranjit Singh, promising him his sympathy and support. This the Raja did, accepting a jagir of the pargana of Mahal Mori in his own counWhen the war with Rs. 50,000. try, yielding annually
assisted
to
his
utmost
He
and
his
brother
Parmodh Chand
following of Raj-
puts and attacked and captured the Forts of Tira and Riah, which had once belonged to the family. This was in 1846. Subsequently the Katoches possessed themselves of Pathiar and Karot, in Palam, and the Forts of Sola Singhi and
Chaumukhi
in
Nadaun.
in pos-
charges he had
He
died
in
1847,
when
the Chiefship
passed to his
brother
Parmodh
Chand.
The
fate of the
Kangra Princes
is
a remarkable contrast
There,
the British
Power delivered the country from the yoke of the Gurkhas and restored the Native Rulers without exception to
independence.
The knowledge
of this generosity
made
hope
into
the dethroned
to the
Chieftains look
forward
with anxious
coming of the new Power, and converted them desperate and discontented subjects, when they found
the English intended these
that
So strong was
actually rose
Kangra Princes
Panjab
hills
insurrection
during
the
War
of
1848-49.
inciting
them
ditary
to rebel,
to their
here-
Kingdoms
the
movement proved
successful.
Parmodh
B^6
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
who
received
NOTE.
the
those
Sikh overtures
returned
promises of assistance.
Towards
He
end of 1848 his proceedings became clearly defined. had advanced from Mahal Mori and taken possession
forts
of the neighbouring
salute
of Riah
and Abhemanpur.
in
A
their
was
fired,
assumed Kingship
still
his
do-
minions.
The
district officer
procure him
pardon
to
his
if
home.
offices
were rejected
that an
river
and on
the
3rd
December
was brought
army of
the
in-
with
from Tira.
halted
insurravine.
They were met by a well-directed volley their leader was wounded, and after a short engagement they had to turn, and were chased back to the walls of Tira. Parmodh Chand was taken prisoner and deported to Almora, where he died He was thus the last of three years later, leaving no sons. the lineal descendants of the great Sansar Chand.
branch when the country was
Ludar Chand was the representative of the younger taken over by the British.
in
He
the
was confirmed
of Rs.
35,598,
according to
Hindu law
of
of
inheritance.
His
conduct
during
not
the
rebellion
1848-49
was
unimpeachable.
relative
He
only
went
insurrection.
Ludar Chand died in 1850, and was succeeded by his In the following year, on the demise of son Partab Chand.
THE RANG RA
the exiled Chief
DISTRICT.
367
Parmodh Chand, he was constituted a Raja, The as head of the Katoch Rajputs. acknowledged and opportunity was taken of lifting the jagir grants out of the operation of the ordinary law of succession, and making them
heritable
by a single son.
it
importance, securing as
of Chiefship
;
and
it
whole of the Kangra Rajas and made to include their rights They were not slow to perof every description in land. ceive that on this principle alone could they continue to maintain
even a semblance of the authority and dignity enjoyed by their fathers. Partab Chand's younger brothers Kirat Chand and Udai Chand by private arrangement received annual allowances of Rs. 3,000 and Rs. 2,000, respectively, in
lieu of
a jagir share.
tastes
in
careless in
affairs
Raja Partab Chand was extravagant in his money matters, and when he died
were found
to
and
1864 hia
be considerably involved.
The present Chief, Jai Chand, was only two years of age when he succeeded his father. His property was taken over by the Court of Wards, and the old debts were cleared off. The Raja resides at Lambagraon, a picturesque locality on the right bank of the Bias, within a few miles of the old home
of his ancestors.
He was
educated
in
Ajmir
at the Chiefs'
is
College.
of sport
He
fond
and manly
In January, 1888, he
was Army.
He
his jagir,
and is President of the Local Board of his Tahsll and member of the District Board. Raja Jai Chand is the second Viceregal Darbari in Kangra. His cousins Jagrup Chand and Daljit Chand are also entitled to seats in Darbar. The latter is of weak intellect, and has squandered his inheritance and contracted debts to a large amount.
His
affairs
368
CHIEFS
hand by the
District Court of
Raja
Jai
Chand
is
Ram
is
His mother
Raja of Sirmur.
A
made
summary
settlement of the
District Courts.
The
estate
is
estimated
comprised
sources.
in the jagir,
The
Raja's
father's
time
for
the
maintenance of
his
Chand,
since
deceased.
allowances
Raja
Jai
brothers.
Translation of a Treaty concluded by Alaharaja Ranjit Singh of Lahore zvith Raja Sansar Chand of Kangra, dated ^tJi Sawan, 1866 Sam bat, corresponding with 18 10 A. D.
(Seal of Ranjit Singh).
A treaty and solemn compact is hereby concluded with Raja Sansar Chand, who agrees to transfer the Fort of Kangra and district of Sandhta to the Government of Lahore
subject to the following conditions.
delivered to the
Clause
Jamna.
I.
Dialji, the
whole
of the Gurkhas
THE KANGRA
IX.
DISTRICT.
369
Whatever countries
arrival of the
r/z.,
my
ability,
Bhorot,
Muhara
Khalsaji
will
not
Kotwal Bah, Siba with Chanaur Ghoasan, Chartgarh and Talhati, Chadhiar and Chando,
retain
these),
Chauki,
The
left to
be
until the
Rajaji, the
shall
Thana
in
remain
the
But
if
shall subsequently
be conquered.
the
IV. Except Kila Kangra with the Taluka of Sandhta, Government of Lahore has no claim whatever on the
life,
and
will
in
exchange
for
in the hills
full force,
in this Treaty shall remain in and not be disturbed by any of the descendants of
Baba Nanakji, Sri Guru Hariji, Sri Amritsarji, Sri Guru Arjanji, Sri Guru Gobind Singhji, Sri Baba Gurdataji, Sri
Anandpurji, that
I
will
whole of the
my
ability.
It
Is
written that
may form an
1866 Sambat.
37
CHIEFS
RAJA
SINGH OF SIBA.
Mian Khushal
Singh.
I
Raja
Madho
I
Singh.
Mian Davi
Singh.
Rai Sher
Singh.
I
Raja Gobind
Rfija Bije
d.
Mian Gulab
b.
Mian Zalam
Singh.
Singh.
I
Singh, 1879.
I
Singh, 1816.
Raja
d.
Ram
Singh,
1S74.
1829.
Mian Karam
Singh,
b.
Mian Ratan
d.
1841.
I
Singh, 1873.
Dharm
b.
Singh,
Suchet Singh,
b.
1870.
1S72.
Gajindar
THE KANGRA
doomed
it
DISTRICT.
371
to
destruction
Raja Dhian
and through Singh, had married two ladies of the family his interest the Raja escaped with a yearly tribute of Rs. 1,500 and the surrender of his principal fort. The estate was, however, divided between the cousins. Lands worth Rs. 20,000 were given to the Raja, while the Kotla Taluka, worth
Rs.
5,000,
Singh.
Oh
was made over unconditionally to Mian Davi the death of Davi Singh the Maharaja again
property, leaving- only the equivalent of
re-distributed the
who was
required to maintain
Raja a service contingent costing two-thirds of the grant. Gobind Singh died in 1 845, and was succeeded by his son Ram
Singh.
Ram
army with
one hundred men, and was present at the battle of Firozshahr. But he had no stomach for the fight, and was glad
to escape
back
to
Kangra
in
He
his
out of his
oust
Singh of his Siba possessions, in which he had been conThese he took but he was obliged firmed by the Maharaja. to restore them shortly afterwards under orders passed by
;
The
in
their
res-
pective jagirs.
Ram
his
Singh's portion
consisted of villages
ed
to
him and
male
to
a tribute
Singh was given six villages, yielding Rs. 4,800 per annum, which after his death were to descend according to the Hindu law of inheritHe, however, forfeited his rights by taking part in ance. the Katoch insurrection of 1848, and his share was resumed. It was restored to him nine years later in consequence of the
deduction of Rs. 1,500 per annum^.
Bije
loyal behaviour
of his younger
commanded one
372
which marched to Dehli, and did excellent service In the Mutiny. The restitution was made at the personal intercession of the
nected by marriag-e.
crisis
Maharaja of Jamu, with whom the Mian was conRaja Ram Singh's own loyalty in the of 1857 was undoubted. He had no children, and his
adopt an heir was refused.
jag-ir
request to be allowed to
when he died
his
in
1874 the
ment of Rs.
1,500.
The
made
Singh and
nephew Karam Singh at a cost not exceeding The title of Raja was conferred upon
distinction
in
him as a personal
lowing year.
of Raja.
1878.
He
died in the
fol-
The
same
who has
The Siba
jagir was
brought
the
under summary
its
Ram
;
Singh, and
rights
assess-
of the jagir-
The dar being defined as those of a superior proprietor. Raja estimates his income at Rs. 30,000, namely, Rs. 20,000 from Siba, Rs. 5,000 from Kotla, and the remainder from
miscellaneous sources.
Raja
limits
in the
Jai
of his jagir,
house of Jamu has been noticed above. His sister married the late Maharaja Ranbir Singh, and was the mother of the present Maharaja Partab Singh and of Rajas Ram Singh and
Amar
which
Singh.
is
Singh of Punch. The sons of ]\Iian Karam Singh receive an allowance each of Rs. 720 per annum from the Jamu State.
Raja
Jai
Singh ranks
third
amongst
the Viceregal
Darbaris of Kangra.
TEE KA NCR A
DISTRICT.
373
374
Nadaun
with a few hundred men and took up a position on the boundary of the Katoch and Kahlur countries. The movement caused some excitement, as he was known to be a good soldier. It was, however, pointed out by Mr. Erskine,
Superintendent of the Hill States, that his interests were on our side, and that he would do well to preserve a neutrality
he were not prepared to throw in his lot with us altogether. Jodhbir followed the good advice, and carefully refrained
if
from assuming the offensive, though there was strong temptto cut in on our unprotected flank and give trouble where we were least prepared for it. As a reward for his consistent behaviour in this crisis he was confirmed in his
ation
his
own
request,
made
tenable by a
single heir,
at the
the others
time being.
his
in-
Raja Jodhbir Chand subsequently gave proof of loyalty on more than one occasion. During the Katoch
surrection he assisted in holding the
Nadaun
Tahsil,
captur-
ing several of the rebels. His services were acknowledged by Mr. Barnes, then Deputy Commissioner, in a letter to the Commissioner. His son Pirthi Singh fought during the ]\Iutiny in Central India, winning the Order of Merit and receiving a khilat of Rs. 500. For his good services generally, the Raja was made a Knight Commander of the Star of India in 1868, and was granted a salute of
seven guns as a personal distinction.
Other concessions
escheats
within
in the
form of rights to
mah
He
thus
by
his
own
his
merits
On
character had
se-
and esteem of
all,
375
ment."
The
succession
of
Amar Chand,
regulated in
provi-
being-
accordance with
Raja Amar Chand was at the the rules already laid down. same time invested with the powers of a Magistrate and of a Civil Judge as exercised by his father, within the limits
of his jagir.
In 1878
the
him
discharge the
heavy
liabilities
incurred
by
his father.
Of
his brothers,
Mian Hari
Singh is an Extra Assistant Commissioner, and Sher Singh, an Assistant Superintendent of Police. Mians Pirthi Singh and Ishri Singh reside with their brother at Nadaun. Suchet Singh has attached himself to the Raja of Mandi.
Raja
of Jasrot.
Amar Chand
stands
is
fourth
on
the district
list
of
Viceregal Darbaris.
He
allied
by marriage
The
Raja estimates
his
income from
:
all
sources
Rs.
at
Z3,Z'i-(>
Palampur Tahsil
2,000
Land
.,
184
$76
Raja Gurpal.
I
Nahal
I
Pal. Pal.
Raja Amrit
Pal.
Sapuran
Raja Narain
d.
Pal,
Bhagwan
I
Pal.
1864.
Ran Bahadar
6.
Singh,
1S47.
Raja
i>.
.
Ram
I
Pal,
Gopal
i>.
I
Pal,
1849.
1854.
Rajindar Pal,
If.
Kalian Pal,
d.
1874.
1874.
Kotlahr
is
the
smallest
of
all
the
Kangra kingdoms.
in the continuity
The
territory has
second or Jaswan chain of the hills. As this ridge approaches the Satlaj, it suddenly divides into two parallel branches and the valley between them, with a portion of
of the
;
the enclosing
is
hills, is the petty State of Kotlahr. The dynasty one of considerable antiquity, numbering, according to
forty generations. The first Raja was a Sambhal near JMuradabad, originally a Brahmin but after acquiring temporal power he and his descendants were considered Rajputs or members of the military class.
local
accounts,
native of
is given by Mr. Barnes. He Raja Gobind Pal of Poona, and claims to be the three hundred and seventy-seventh in lineal descent. At the close of the Duapar Jug, or Third Age of the World, there flourished in Poona the Raja Gobind
traces
descent
from
Pal,
who traced
his descent
and Dharam
Pal.
from the Moon. He had two While Ajain Pal was away
ed by Dharam Pal.
THE K A NCR A
he wandered
at
to the
DISTRICT,
his son
377
Panjab with
the
Sukh
Pal,
and
settled
Babhaur on the
Satlaj, in
Hushiarpur
district.
His
Kangfra Hills, and was fortunate in securing the friendship of Sansar Chand, a Katoch Raja of
that period,
his
daughter
Pal,
in
The
Sukh
Nadaun.
said
Pal, is
of " the whole country west of the Satlaj ;" an evident exaggeration.
This
much may be
now
said
down
living at
Kotlahr,
their
and excluding
One
Hills
and founded
existence as independent
Coming
to
modern
facts,
we
find
in
Man Khandi
the
time of the
Mughal
In-
vasion.
lahr,
to the
Rajas of Kot-
Rai, and recognising their rights above named tracts on payment of a tribute of Rs. 1,600, and subject to their furnishing a contingent of
in the
addressing them as
forty
horsemen and
five
hundred
foot.
and Kahlur Rajas limited the Kotlahr possessions to theirpresent small dimensions. This was immediately before the coming of the Great Maharaja, who swallowed up all the Kangra kinglets with the utmost impartiality. Kotlahr had for years
past maintained a precarious existence.
In the time
of the
Katoch Chief Ghamand Chand, grandfather of Sansar Chand, one-half the Principality had been annexed to Kangra, and during the zenith of Sansar Chand's power the Kotlahr Raja became entirely dispossessed. But when Sansar Chand was
378
took
the opportunity
Sikhs.
two months without making much progress, though they had more than one severe brush with the garrison, com-
manded by Raja Ghamand Chand in person. Finally, Jamadar Singh compounded by promising the Raja a Khushal
jagir of Rs. 10,000,
fighting.
should he surrender
without further
These terms were accepted, and the Raja duly entered into the enjoyment of his allowances. This jagir comprised the tract called Charatgarh in the Jaswan Dun, During the First Sikh War Raja Narain Hushiarpur.
Pal, at the instance of the Superintendent of Hill States, ex-
Kotwal Bah.
Later on,
when the
but
in
valley
came
to the British,
ation of his
Raja alleged had been held out to him by our officers when his alliance was a matter of consequence to us, he was awarded a life-grant of
Rs.
10,000 in addition to the jagir of like value he had received from Maharaja Ranjit Singh, which was confirmed to the Raja and his heirs lawfully begotten for ever. An exchange of villages was subsequently effected with the object of giving the Raja a compact jagir in the Kangra The new villages were Tapas Tira, Heru, Thara district. and Dhiungli in Hamirpur and as their value exceeded that of the old villages by Rs, 88, this sum was made payable by The Raja was also nazarana. Government to as the Raja allowed three-fourths of the income of the forests within his Raja Narain Pal jagir, subject to a small annual deduction. His property had become involved from died in 1864. various causes, and two years before his death it was taken over by the District Court of Wards, and retained during the minority of the present Raja Ram Pal, which ceased in i86g,.
;
THE KANGRA
DISTRICT.
379
Ram Pal has received a good education. His estate is well managed, and he is always forward in loyal offers of assisHe exercises criminal and civil juditance to Government. His income from cial powers within the limits of his jagir. miscellaneous sources is estimated at twelve hundred rupees, lieu of forest including two hundred rupees paid him in The fines, which are now wholly credited to Government. Raja stands fifth on the local list of Viceregal Darbaris.
38o
Raja
Pirthi Singh,
J,
1819.
I
Fotah Singh,
(/.
1789.
I
1846,
1
1839.
I
Gagan Singh,
i>.
Udhain Singh,
1882.
1885.
is
The
original
founder was a Tawar Rajput, Jeth Pal, an emigrant from About seven hundred years ago he established himDehli.
self at
are called
to the
Pathankot near Gurdaspur, whence his descendants Subsequently, the family removed Pathanias.
hills, probably for seclusion and safety, as the plains Nurpur became the capital open to incessant attacks. were about two hundred and fifty years Basu, Raja of reign the in Between Jeth Pal, also known as Rana Bhet, and the ago.
present
representative,
thirty
generations
have
elapsed.
The boundaries
of
of the old
almost
than
on hazardous expeditions in the service of the Empire. In the reign of Shahjahan, Raja Jagat Chand of Nurpur,
at the
in
his
own Uzbegs
and in the early part of the Aurangzeb, Raja Mandhata, grandson of Jagat Chand, was deputed to the charge of Bamian and Ghorof
THE KANGRA
DISTRICT.
381
band, on the western frontier of the Empire. After a lapse of twenty years he was a second time appointed to this honorable post, and created a I\Iansabdar of two thousand horse.
In later times Raja Bir
Singh of Nurpur
fell
a victim to
At
the
commencement
of the
Maharaja had appointed a grand rendezvous of all his forces, personal and tributary, at Sialkot. But Bir Singh failed to obey the summons, and as a penalty
the
was
fined a
sum designedly
sale of his
to
fixed
beyond
vessels,
by the
sacrificial
himself forced
into
quit his
home.
He
crossed
border
Chamba, whither he was followed by many of his subjects and retainers, who voluntarily shared the bad fortunes of their old Chief. Urged by some of the bolder spirits, he presently made a descent upon Nurpur, determined to strike
one desperate blow for the recovery of his patrimony. But the tactics and resources of the simple Hill Chief were of
no
avail
battalions.
skill
of veteran
to fly in disguise
British posts
was
Shah
Shujah against the Government of Ranjit Singh, who considered their machinations of sufficient importance to make
them matter of remonstrance with the British Agent. Bir Singh was requested to leave Ludhiana, as his presence there was objectionable to the Lahore Darbar with which we
were on terms of amity. He retired to Arki in the Simla Hills, where he lived for ten years in constant correspondence with his Wazirs, never abandoning the hope of ultimate In 1826, encouraged probably by the dangerous success. illness of Ranjit Singh, he determined on another struggle
for his rights.
Starting
in
the
garb of a
fakir
he reached
382
Fatahpur, a
The
headman recognised
News was
;
for
when
was known the people rose to a man and joined his standard. Nurpur was investbut within a week Sardar Desa Singh had arrived at ed the head of an overwhelming force, and Bir Singh was a
the arrival of their old Chief
;
Chamba
Raja,
who handed
was sent
to
the
unfortunate
man
He
of
seven years.
Singh
Chamba and
At her
solicitation,
and in remorse for his own conduct, Charat Singh ultimately ransomed the ex- Raja, paying Rs. 85,000 for his release. Ranjit Singh offered him the jagir of Kathlot, a fertile
district
on
the
Ravi,
just
outside
the
hills,
yielding
had no intention of giving. He, however, fixed a maintenance allowance for Bir Singh's infant son Jaswant Singh, the
present Raja, of Rs.
to accept.
The last days of this Prince were worthy of his character and career. In 1846, when the British and Sikh forces were engaged on the banks of the Satlaj, Bir Singh again raised He had been thirty years asserting the banner of his race.
his rights,
to
for
be forea
gone.
frame
and he died
of his fort at
avenged.
The
gallant
influenced,
THE KANGRA
held to palliate, the
British
DISTRICT.
383
Government.
infant
son
could
although from the descarcely be regarded as responsible meanour then assumed by his officials proceeded the misfortunes which subsequently
fell
stipends assigned
authorities.
were easily disposed of by the British But the Raja of Nurpur never acquiesced in
seizure
His case was therefore exceptional, and had to be treated on The opposition which he had always special grounds.
made, and
his
repeated
attempts
to recover
his
territory,
pfiven him and his advisers a bad name with the Sikhs, who regarded them as turbulent and dissatisfied and no doubt this character was true, though justified in part by Acting upon these imthe treatment they had received. pressions Sir Henry Lawrence, Agent to the GovernorGeneral, proposed a jagir of Rs. 20,000 for the young Chief,
had
on condition that he should not reside at Nurpur, which the officials, misled by false hopes, most foolishly and insolently refused. For a year the Raja remained without any provision, and in the interval John Lawrence, Commissioner, had
lowered the
offer
by three-fourths
and
this the
Raja was
On
Ram
Singh,
son of the Wazir of the ex- Raja, collecting a band of adventurers from the neighbouring
Jamu
Hills,
suddenly crossed
fort
the
of
Shahpur.
drum
Paramount Power
Ram
Jaswant Singh, Raja of Nurpur, and he, When the news reached Hushiaroff to
was hurried
the spot
and the
fort
384
invested. This promptitude frightened the rebels, who fled during the night and took up another position on a wooded Shortly afterwards John Lawrence, range close to Nurpur.
Commissioner, and
Barnes,
the
District
Officer,
came
up
the position.
Ram
Singh
Sikhs at Rasul.
was routed and obliged to seek shelter in the camp of the During his occupation of the hills he had
been joined by about four hundred men from the surrounding
villages,
some
of
them Rajputs of
In January,
1849,
Ram
Singh persuaded
Raja
five
vSher
Singh
to give
hundred
into
strong, and
hills,
all
with
irruption
the
of
heights.
to
force
the
attack,
and
with
considerable
troops.
the
British
to
Ram
Singapur.
But Raja Jaswant Singh was at that time a boy of ten years, and of course in no way responsible for what had happened. In 86 when the matter of the family allowances was re1
1
annum was doubled, apparently upon repremade on his behalf in 1854 by the Deputy Com-
These were based upon the antecedents of the and must have gained strength by the Raja's loyal
was converted
the
into
a small
jagir, consisting
yielding
Rs.
2,138
in
Nurpur
as a cash
acres,
Tahsil,
balance
pension.
The Raja
of forest
revenue-free,
in the Chatroli,
385
villages of Nurpur.
The Kach
to
lands, with a
garden
him
in consideration
Rebellion of
1857.
He
fifty
hundred and
is
Kangra
is
district.
He
is
also a
member
small jagirs.
Singh of Ladauri, are also members of the family and hold Shankar Singh is the descendant of Indar Singh, second son f Raja Dia Data, who separated from
Singh upwards of a hundred years ago.
The jagir held by Hira Singh was granted to his father, Wazir Suchet Singh, for services rendered during the Mutiny.
It consists
Hira Singh
district
on the
h'st.
He
is
member
of the Local
Board of
Nurpur and
386
387
Lahaul, as well as lower down the Bias and in the Upper Kangra Valley. Finally came the fall before Sikh supremacy,
all
and amalgamation with Lahore, forced upon States north and west of the Satlaj.
the
Rajput
The
power
in
jMughals
who
supreme
States
so long- as the gross tribute levied on the Chiefs was paid with tolerable punctuality.
Emperors.
the
present
Chief,
possesses
Emperors to his ancestors, in which they are addressed as ** Zamindars of Kulu." This is fair evidence of the estimation in which these kinglets were held by the Mahomedan
Rulers of Hindustan.
A
of
second period
early in the
in
Kulu
concert with
the Raja
of
Mandi, possessed Kohar and Sawar in Chota Banghal as well as all the slopes to the Ul River from the outer Himalaya, now included
Sahraj.
in
seventeenth century.
the
Mandi
State,
Mandi
This latter territory fell to the Mandi Raja's share, while what remained was kept by the Raja of Kulu, who shortly afterwards annexed Srigarh and Naraingarh on the
Suket
side.
Jagat Singh, and he also wrested Dhol and Kandi from the Raja of Bashahr. He was succeeded by his son Raja Man
whose time the fortunes of the Kulu Raj reached He continued to plunder Bashahr, and eventually annexed Sangri, and took tribute from other petty States, such as Kumharsen and Kotguru, now in the Simla
Singh,
in
district.
himself for
ever
infamous by
388
own
son-in-
sister
he (Man
for-
Kingdom which
with
his
murderer had
Then he
quarrelled
Mandi
and took possession of the Salt Mines at Goma and Dirang, He finally met enjoying the revenues for some years. hands of the Kumharsen Raja, with his death at the whom he had always been on bad terms.
The period of
against Raja
decline
Man
Dial Wazirs,
Kulu
history,
and
has influence to this day. The result was that Jai Singh was expelled, and his brother Thedi Singh put on the throne.
part
Mandi took advantage of the confusion to seize the greater of the Choar country; and everything portended a speedy break up of the Kulu Raj, when Thedi Singh resolved upon a desperate measure for recovering the power which, under the Wazirs, had oozed out of his hands. He invited
the leading Dials and their adherents
to a
Royal Banquet,
and having made them well drunk with drugged liquor, slew them one and all to the number of three hundred and over. This proceeding had the effect of clearing the political atmosphere for some time, and Thedi passed the rest of his days in the undisputed enjoyment of his patrimony. He was followed by his son Paritam Singh, in whose time the power of the Mughals melted away, and anarchy began to show signs The Gurkhas in those days issuof spreading over the land. ed from their hills and spread along the Himalayan slopes to
the edge of the Satlaj
;
while beyond,
to the
Ravi,
all
the
Rajputs had become tributary to Sansar Chand Katoch, of Kangra. The Kulu Rajas paid tribute to the Gurkhas for Sangri, and to Sansar Chand for Kulu proper but their
;
389
of exactions which would have been difficult to realise, and they passed, on the whole, a tolerably independent existence. Their troubles, however, were all before them. They were about to have to deal with the Sikhs, a nation in those days united and powerful,
could withstand.
three
assist-
Sansar Chand,
in desperation,
sought the
ance of Maharaja Ranjit Singh. In doing so he was unwittingly signing the death-warrant of his own and every
Rajput State
in
Kangra.
with
driven
back
Kulu
of the
suffered in
common
neighbours.
An
official
and he returned
to
Lahore
Three years
later,
was evaded, Diwan Mohkam Chand promptly arrived with a Fifty thousand rupees following strong enough to enforce it. was the sum named. The Raja urged it was beyond his means, but the Sikhs insisted and took possession of his dwelling at Sultanpur, forcing him to fly for safety to the
mountains.
About
into
this
time
Nipal by the
for
English,
Chiefs,
had taken side against the Gurkhas. In 1 8 1 6 the Chiefship was assumed by Ajit Singh, an illegitimate son of the last Raja Bikrama Singh. The succession was disputed by his uncle Kishan Singh, who, with the aid of Raja Sansar Chand, collected a large force in the Katoch country wherewith to invade Kulu. But he was repulsed twice with heavy loss, having been made prisoner on the second occasion with most of his
followers,
owing
39
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
moment
in the
was sent under General Ventura It met with only and the Raja was made prisoner and sent
far
to Amritsar.
Having penetrated so
the so
on the pretext that Kulu had shown a disposition to help Mandi, a force under the Sindhanwalia Sardar was sent up
the Bias.
fair
No
resistance
set
they had practically annexed. As means of reducing the hill forts of Sahraj, the prisoner Raja was made to march with the army, and
the quickest
personally
desired
to hold
He was
even
common
his
and
his
was deemed expedient to hasten the movements of the villagers, who almost worshipped their This brutal King, in the supply of food and money. The hill men, who treatment met with a severe punishment.
could have borne
much on
their
own account,
Raja.
boiled
over
to
A
sort
plot
devised by Kapuru,
Dials.
Wazir
of fiery
was sent round, and men were secretly mustered from The Sikh Force was probably all parts of the country. It had done its work, and had about one thousand strong.
returned from outer
Sahraj
little
39
Tang, the road, a mere foot-path, ran and here the Sahrajis lay in ambush and awaited the Sikhs, who came marching along in single file, undisturbed by any feeling of insecurity. When that part of the line which guarded the Raja came
;
opposite the enemy, a sudden rush was made, a few men cut down, and the Raja caught up and carried swiftly up the mountain side. At the same time, all along the line, rocks were rolled down and shots fired from above at the Sikhs,
who were
of Tang.
seized with a panic and fell back upon the fort Here they remained two days until they were They were forced to move out by the failure of provisions. attacked again as they marched down the valley, and made At last they struck up the mountain side, slow progress. hoping to reach uncommanded ground and secure supplies But they did not know the country, in the villages above. barren, steep and rugged particularly and only got on to a barely keep their footing, and could hill side, where they
The
light
and active
hill
men
some with
precipices.
this
way
miserable
remnant were forced down again into the valley, and there induced to give up their arms on the promise that their lives It is said that four or five men of low should be spared.
caste, dressed as
which the Sikhs had thrown up, and with their hands on a cow's tail, swore that the lives of the Sikhs should be spared. But no sooner were they disarmed than the Sahrajis set up on them and massacred them without pity. One or two camp followers, not regular soldiers, were the only survivors.
At
the news
of this
triumph,
which occurred
in
the
392
hills
the
Palace
across
the
Satlaj
to
Sangri.
Here he knew he
v/ould be
were sure to take on the was the boundary line between the Sikh and English Governments, and the Raja held Sangri from the latter.
Sahrajis
;
for
the
Satlaj
A Sikh Force marched to Sahraj shortly afterwards, every soul and found the country completely deserted had fled into inaccessible places, in the forests high up the mountain sides. After burning and plundering some villages they retired and handed over the country in farm to
;
the Raja of
Mandi
at
and a Kardar autumn of 1841, the two Ranis escaped from their prison in the palace by a passage which they had secretly dug out under the walls, and fled up the mountains. They were on their way to join the Raja at Sangri when they heard the news of his death, which happened there in September, 1841. Instead of going on
In Kulu, however, a force was retained,
In the
the
and began
seem to have intended to give Raja some one of the family who should hold the country on a heavy tribute. Maharaja Sher Singh, who had succeeded Ranjit Singh about two years previously, had been much in these hills, and was inclined
at this time
The Sikhs
up Kulu, and
to instal as
to
When
at
of the
Simla Hill
son
of
Ajit
favor of Ranbir
Singh,
infant
THE KANGRA
Singh
to Sangri.
in
DISTRICT.
393
defective
intellect.
Jagar Singh was passed over as being The Ranis sent for Jagar Singh's
child to Sultanpur,
claim,
ture.
and the Sikh officials there admitted his and wished to send him to Lahore to receive investiBut on the way, at Mandi, he fell sick and died.
first
Thakar Singh, a
cousin of Jagar
The whole
but he was
Sangri
of
the
imbecile
Jagar
Singh.
Three or four years later, in 1846, at the close of War, the Trans- Satlaj Territory, namely, the Jalandhar Doab and the hill country beween the Satlaj and Ravi, was ceded to the British Government. Kulu with Lahaul and Spiti became a Tahsil of the new district Thakar Singh was confirmed in his title of of Kangra. Raja and allowed to exercise Sovereign Powers within his jagir of Rupi. Jagar Singh of Sangri claimed the estate,
the First Sikh
On Thakar
Singh's death in
some
as
It
wife.
was decided to give Gayan Singh the title of Rai instead of Raja, and only half the jagir, with no political powers
;
on a reconsideration of his claims, the resumed half was restored. Government, however, gave him
later,
no
fell
to
timber
in the
whole
jagir.
in
succession
to
present
He was
and the
estate,
394
under the Court of Wards until 1883, when it was made over to Dalip Singh, greatly improved and free of debt. The jagir, which comprises the villages of Kot Kandi, Chung -Harkandi, Kanawar, Bahlan and Sainsar in Kulu, w^as
brought under settlement
fixed at Rs. 10,000.
in
1876-77,
The
Jagirdar's
rights
to be those
of a superior proprietor.
of the jagir
reserved con-
of Government.
The
jagir
number
of subordinate
rent-free tenures
held
under the grantee, who estimates their yield at Rs. 2,000 per annum. Rai Dalip Singh has been fairly well educated. He can read and write Urdu and English. He exercises the powers of a Magistrate and of a JMunsif in small cases
within the limits of his jagir.
He
district,
is
Darbari
of
the
Kangra
and
member
of the
Kangra
Local Board.
He is Mandi Rajas. He
Jagirdar
of
Hira Singh
is
Sangri
the
Simla
THE K A NCR A
DISTRICT.
395
Raja Rahimula
Klian,
d.
Sadikula
Khan.
i
1847.
Afrasiab Khan.
Muzafar
Kutlratula
Yusaf
Hibibula
Khan,
i>.
Khan,
l>.
Khan,
^.
Khan,
d.
1822,
1830.
1833.
1836.
"I
I
Asadula
Khan,
d.
Mahmud
Khan.
1
Fakirula
Yahia Khan.
Nawab
Khan.
Saifula
Khan.
1847.
1S49.
d.
1S60.
Khan,
d.
1804.
Znfarula
I
Asmatula
Hafizula
Raja
Khan,
b
Khan,
d.
Khan,
i>.
i860.
1S66.
Hamidula Khan,
d. 1S79.
1857.
Waliula
Kalimula
Firozdin
Hayatula
Khan,
/'.
Khan,
d.
Khan,
d.
Khan.
1867.
1873.
1843.
I
i.
1855.
.1
A bad ula
Khan,
!
Azimula
Khan,
d
Ataula
1881.
Khan,
.
Habibula Khan,
d.
Abdula Khan.
d.
886.
1836.
1880.
Ahsanula
6.
Faizula
Ikramula Khan,
Najibula
Khan,
i>.
Asmatula Khan,
6.
Aminula Khan,
0.
Khan,
1S84.
Khan,
d.
1874.
1866.
1S63.
1865.
1S86.
Azmatula Khan,
d.
Safiula
Khan,
i>.
Wahidula Khan.
Khalilula
Sadula
Khan,
d.
Khan,
d.
Nasarula
Amanatula
Inayatula
Ghnlam
Hasain,
d.
1870.
1872.
1S74.
1S84.
Khan,
Khan,
6.
Khan,
d.
1874.
1855.
1863
1869.
Is
of
the
Kashmir Rajas of Rajaurl, which was held by them In soveThe last Ruling Chief was reignty up to the year 1841.
396
Rahimula Khan, who on suspicion of attempting the life of the Maharaja Gulab Singh, was sent prisoner to Gobindgarh and his lands taken over by the Sikhs. He was shortly but his country remained with afterwards set at liberty
;
Gulab Singh, and formed part of the territory confirmed to him under the Treaty of March, 1846. Fakirula Khan, son of Rahimula, took an active part in conjunction with Nawab Inamudin Khan, then Governor of Kashmir, in resisting surrender of possession to the Maharaja. But his efforts were He was exiled to Rahlu in Kangra, where his fruitless. children now live as semi-foreigners, never having been heartily received by the indigenous Rajput Princes.
The
from Raja
Rao, a
Jiral
bharat Pandavs.
down
in
early
days of
conquer-
Akbar
of
his
rendered
in
connection with
later
the conquest
Kashmir
and some
in
years
daughter Rajbai
course of a pleasure-trip to Kashmir. Bahadar Shah, who succeeded to the The Mughal prefix of Mirza, used by the
younger members of the family, is said to have originated from this connection with the Royal House.
Inayatula Khan, grandson
Panjhazari, or
of Taj
He was
THE KANGRA
Bhimbar and
gardens
DISTRICT.
397
He
and
a.
laid out
handsome
grandson
saral
at Inayatpur,
and
forts
Naushahra
and
JNIanawar.
His
Rafiula
Khan
To commemorate removed some bricks from the Mandi Palace at Jamu and placed them in the walls of his own house at Rajaurl, whence they are said to have been removed and restored to their original position by Maharaja Gulab Singh. After Rafiula, the Rajaurl power began to decline. His successor Asmatula had been brought up In luxury at Dehli, and was enervated and unfitted to give and take the hard
the Raja and beat him back to his capital. the victory he
Early
knocks which were the portion of a Ruler In those days. in the thirteenth century the Rajaurl Rajas were being
all
worsted on
sides.
Manawar was
seized
by Jamu, the
allegiance
to
districts
transferred their
able to guarantee
them
a peaceful
existence.
Raja Karamula was a man of energy and ambition, and might have restored the family fortunes but he was persistently crushed and kept under by Sardar Abdula Khan,
;
appointed Governor of Kashmir. Abdula had reason to be angry with Karamula, for the latter refused him his daughter In marriage. Then came Karamula's son Aghar Khan, who was unfortunate in having to resist the attempt of Maharaja Ranjit Singh in 1813 to seize Rajaurl. He fled and was captured, and died in prison. His son Rahimula Khan was allowed a jaglrof Rs. 12,000. He made friends with the Maharaja and was employed In many military expeditions, including one against Kashmir which proved successful, and for which he received a jagir worth Rs. 50,000. This was held by him until his expatriation
in 1841.
395
the British
Government
War by
to
men
Peshawar and Ali Masjid. But in the Sikh Wars he sided against the English, and fought with our enemies at Firozpur and Firozshahr. Since annexation the family has always evinced a spirit of active loyalty. During the Mutiny, Hamidula Khan, grandson of Raja Rahimula Khan, furnished levies who were employed in Hushiarpur, Kulu, Kangra and Dharmsala, under the orders of men of the Rajauri clan. They behaved in an exemplary way, and a relation of Rahimula Khan had charge of all the posts of trust at Dharmsala.
His uncle
Nawab Khan
and accompanied General Taylor with a body of retainers when that Officer proceeded to Nurpur to disarm a Wing of
the 4th Native Infantry.
In recognition of these services
a khilat of Rs. 1,000
and the
title
conferred
upon Nawab Khan. Zafarula Khan, son of Yahia Khan, is a Tahsildar, and a Provincial Darbari in the Gujranwala
district.
The pension
lages in the
shortly
Kangra
Tahsil.
at
after settling
divided as follows
Rs.
THE K A NCR A
The
in
DISTRICT.
399
by the
is realised by the head of the family and distributed by him to the several Succession is regulated by the Mahomedan Law recipients. of Inheritance, as modified by the rules prescribed for the
The income
and
^^ was
succeeded by his son Niamatula Khan, the present head of the family, who was given the title of Raja as a personal
distinction.
In
powers
to
be exercised within a
circle of villages
Niamatula Khan is a Viceregal Darbari, Board of Kangra and ViceHis younger brother President of the District Board. Karamatula Khan Is a Tahslldar in the Amritsar district.
home
and
at
Rahlu.
is
To
father,
left
by
his
his land-
ed property and
of Rs.
State loan
now
In
course of liquidation.
fifty
He
holds in
acres of land
Mirza Fakirula Khan, as the head of a separate branch, He was an Honorary Magistrate at
;
and
for
He died in 1889. His eldest In 1877. was appointed Rasaldar of Irregular Cavalry, and with twenty-five men of his own clan joined Hodson's Horse at Dehll, He was also In serving with credit throughout the Mutiny. Abyssinia, and took part In the late Afghan War, receiving
the Orders of Merit and of British India.
In special acknow-
400
ledgment of his services, a grant of six hundred acres in Rukhanwala, Tahsil Kasur, Lahore, was made to him and his
heirs in perpetuity.
He was
in his Regiment, the Bengal Lancers, and is now holding the importemt post of tish Envoy at Kabul on a salary of Rs. 13,000 per annum. younger brother Abdula Khan, who entered the service him, is a Rasaldar-Major in the same Regiment
;
His
with
and
is
Bengal Lancers. Mirza Fakirula Khan owned four hundred and thirty-two acres in the Mitranwali and Nika Khel villages, Tahsil Daska, Sialkot, and about one hundred acres in Radala, Tahsil Wazirabad, Gujranwala.
THE KANGRA
DISTRICT.
j^OX
Raja
Umed
d.
Singh,
1876.
Raja Brijrai
Singh,
b.
Bhopal Singh,
b
1834.
Sundar
Singh.
Fatah
Singh,
b.
1831.
1
1844.
Mahtab Singh,
Kishan Singh,
b 1872.
b.
1884.
Atar Singh,
b.
Sardul Singh,
b.
Chiina Singh,
b.
Jaswant Singh,
b.
1864.
I
1881.
1887.
1866.
1873.
Tiru Singh,
b.
18S7.
Raja
Darbari of the
Kangra
in
district, is
Bhadu
Kashmir, who elected to reside in British territory on the cession of that country to Maharaja Gulab Singh, receiving
perpetual cash pensions from
Government
in lieu of
lands
ceded
The pension
Bir Singh,
the
first
Badhwal family
was
fixed
at
Of this sum
The balance
Singh is the present head. When a dispute arose some years ago regarding the distribution of the shares among the brothers, an authoritative partition was effected.
whom
Brijrai
The pension
him with
is
now drawn by
Brijrai Singh,
and shared by
his brothers
family.
40?
1849.
Upindar Singh,
t.
1825.
I
Rajajagdis
d.
Singh, 1877.
Shibdeo
Singh,
b.
Shib Singh,
d.
Davi Singh,
b.
1876.
1866.
1851.
1864.
Raja Balbir Singh, Mankotia, a Viceregal Darbari of the district, is the grandson of Rai or Raja Apurab Singh of Mankot, who left Kashmir on its cession to Maharaja Gulab Singh, and was granted a perpetual pension of
Kangra
The
with
whom
Balbir Singh
THE K A NCR A
DISTRICT.
403
Jaimal Singh,
d.
Zorawar Singh,
d. 1S7J.
Dilawar Singh,
d.
187
1.
1824.
Sardar Singh,
6.
Amir Singh,
l>.
1867.
.1883.
Mian Dilawar Singh, Viceregal Darbari, Is the only surTegh Singh of Kishtwar in Kashmir, who elected to leave his home when the countrjr was made over to Maharaja Gulab Singh. As in the cases of the other Rajput exiles, an allowance was fixed for the maintenance of this family, to be paid by the British Government from the revenues of certain lands assigned by the Jamu Darbar.
viving son of Raja
A
three
tion
:
,.
. .
..
'
240 ^^
the
Dilawa|
resides
ori-
He
Nurpur
Tahsil.
Though
last
Hindus and
still
Mahomedan
six
404
1851.
Tek Chand,
d. 1870.
Arjan,
d.
1883.
Suiidar
Bhag
Singh,
d.
Singh,
d. 1875.
Partab Singh,
d.
I
Panjab
Singh,
6.
1886.
1S79.
1840.
1
Sohan
Singh,
d.
Piar
Singh,
d.
1850.
r86l.
Fakir Chand,
d.
Harbalab
|
J
Karpal Singh,
i.
1870.
Singh,
d.
Shankar Singh,
&
1S89.
1881.
1886.
Ilira Singh,
d.
Kesri Singh,
l>.
Lahna Singh,
i>.
Tilok Singh,
I.
1851.
I
1854.
1862
1868.
Kam
i.
Singh,
1878.
Malha Singh,
^.
Lai Singh,
i>.
Ratan Singh,
^.
1855.
1859.
1868,
Raghnnth Singh,
i.
Dharam
i.
Singh,
1882.
1885.
is
Indauria clan
The family claim descent from Raja Indu Chand, a Katoch Prince. About two hundred years ago Malha Chand, grandson of Indu Chand, left the Trigart country and
settled in the valley of the Bias to the south-east of Nurpur.
founded the villages of Indpur and Indaura, calling them Chaudhri Gurbhaj, the great-grandafter his grandfather.
father of the present Chaudhri,
He
and Hajipur in the Hushiarpur disShahpur in of Nurpur was deprived of his Raja the When trict. territory, Ranjit Singh associated Gurbhaj in the manage-
THE KANGRA
ment.
DISTRICT.
405
It was in his time that the country passed into the hands of the British and he was among those that helped at annexation. The village of Chanaur in Nurpur, of the
;
revenue-free.
His
in the
patrol
In acknowledgment of these services the village of Chanaur was conferred upon him and his male heirs in per-
petual tenure, subject to the usual conditions of service and good conduct. Tek Chand was succeeded in the Chaudhriship by his son Sundar Singh, who, however, died soon afterwards, leaving his son Malha Singh, the present Chaudhri. He is a Kotwal and Vice-President of the Local Board of Nurpur. He is also a member of the Kangra District Board. His uncle Basant Singh is Sub-Registrar of Indaura, and
is
an Inspector of Police in
Kangra
district.
The
Nurpur
Tahsil, yielding
4o6
1824.
I..
Arjan Singh.
Ishri
d.
Singh,
1859.
I
Kesri Singh,
ci.
Sahib Singh.
I
1S76.
I
I
Kishan Singh,
il
Shib
i/.
I
Singh,
1874.
1879.
Shankar Singh,
^.1835.
Bishan Singh,
'i-
1870.
Nahal Singhi
I
I
I
i^.
1848.
86 1.
d.
1864.
Hira Singh,
6.
1869.
Hushiar Singh,
i.
Gaynn Singh,
i.
1S84.
1885.
Raghbir Singh.
Gandharb Singh.
Nurpur
Shankar Singh is the representative of a branch of the family, which seceded from the parent house upwards His ancestor Indar Singh was felt to years ago. hundred of a be a rival of his brother Raja Pirthi Singh, owing to a doubt as to which was the elder, and because of Indar Singh's
marriage with the daughter of Katoch Raja, who asserted a
kind of suzerainty over the other Hill Chiefs.
Indar Singh,
in
was obliged to reside at Kangra as a pensioner of the Katoch Raja Ghamand Chand. His son Arjan became a favorite of the celebrated Sansar
consequence of
this ill-feeling,
to
him and
to his brothers
Bijaor
of
the
pro-
his
daughter to
Through him he
time annexed
Nurpur
territory, at this
by
On
the
;
Maand
THE KANGRA
DISTRICT.
of the Chiefs
for
'407
were
in
differ-
Government
participation
in
Ishri
country,
cerned
in the rebellion
and he was not of the Katoch faction, or conso his jagirs remained untouched.
;
Ishri
on
whose death,
high
annum, was released to Shankar Singh, senior representative of the elder branch, subject to payment of one-fourth of the revenue as nazarana,
Rai, Nurpur, yielding Rs. 1,800 per
and
to provision of
junior
members of
is
the family.
is a General in the Kashmir army, and managed by his son Raghnath Singh, a Kotwal, or Zaildar in the Nurpur Tahsil. He is a member of the Local Board of Nurpur and of the District Board of Kangra. The family owns 637 ghumaos of forest and cultivated lands in village Rai, and about 2,000 ghumaos in
Shankar Singh
Riali,
both
in
the
Nurpur
Tahsil.
4o8
Singi,
I
Nono Chogan.
I
Sarsham.
I
Chang Namgyal.
I
Chogan.
I
Tashi Angyal.
I
Hari Ram.
I
Chagn.
1
Himi Ram.
I
Bhag Chand.
Mema
Singh.
I
Gatu.
I
Dharam
Singh.
Tashi Angta, or
Moti Ram.
I
Davi Chand,
d.
Dharam Chand.
I
Bhag Chand,
i.
1832.
Tara Chand.
1863.
Ram
(i.
Chand,
1S84.
I
Mahar Chand,
d.
1836.
1870.
J
I
Jai Chand,
d.
Amar Chand,
d.
1884.
Manga! Chand,
i>.
187
1.
1887.
Laliaul and Spiti do not form a part of the country described by Mr. Barnes as " hills from time immemorial in-
On
the contrary,
which originally had no connection with India, and were On the dissolution included in the Empire of Great Tibet.
of this Empire in the tenth century,
districts
this
many
of the
;
outlying
were formed
into
independent kingdoms
of Palgyi
and
in
way
a Chief of the
name
king-
dom
most provinces. The first occasion within historic times on which Ladakh became in any degree politically connected with India was in 1687-88, when in return for aid in repelling
an invasion of the Sokpas or Kalmach Tartars, a small tribute
was paid
to the
409
Emperor of Dehli but a similar tribute seems to have been same time by the government of Lhasa. After the break-up of the Dehli Empire, the Rajas of Ladakh continued to pay the tribute to Kashmir till their country was conquered and annexed to the Panjab in 1835 by ^ Dogra force under Wazir Zorawar, sent by Rajas Dhian Singh and Gulab In what manner and at what time the Singh, Jamuwala. separation from Ladakh took place it is impossible to ascertain but the traditions of the Lahaulis go to show that the It is probable that connection was severed many years ago. in the confusion preceding the re-consolidation of the Ladakh Kingdom by Chang Namgyal, Lahaul became independent and remained for a short time governed by the Thakars or
levied at the
;
Four or
five
of
in jagir, subject to
payment of
its
tribute or nazarana.
now forming British Lahaul was subsequently transChamba to Kulu. According to the account given by the present Kulu Raja, his ancestor in the seventh generation, Bidhi Singh, acquired Lahaul from Chamba. Bidhi Singh was son of Raja Jagat Singh, who was a conthe part
ferred from
acquisition
It
temporary of Shahjahan and Aurangzeb and the date of the may therefore be placed approximately at 1700.
;
would
probably to avert forays and to keep the roads open for trade.
Indeed, the Lahaulis, without orders, continued to pay this
tribute to the
Governor
at
Leh up
fact,
to 1862,
When
410
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
Tara Chand, father of the present representative, had governed Lahaul under the Sikhs and under the Raja of Kulu. He was appointed Negi or chief village headman in administrative charge of the valley. This title was subsequently changed to that of Wazir. In 1861 he was appointed an Honorary Extra Assistant Commissioner.
He
died in 1877, and was succeeded by his eldest son Wazir Hari Chand, now at the head of the family. He has had charge of
the Waziri for
many
owing
to
advancing years.
Hari
Chand has on
Government.
several occasions
In
made himself
useful to the
in
1863-64 he
and reported on the resources of the country, the routes, and possibilities of developing the trade. He accompanied Sir Douglas Forsyth's Mission to in and collected much valuable inYarkand 1870, formation concerning the countries through which their route
lay.
He
is
district,
and
member
of the Local
is
Board of Kulu.
in
He
Sub- Registrar
Lahaul.
by him, Hari
the
Chand
550,
or one-fourth
revenue of Lahaul
and he appropriates as his perquisite all the fines and fees received in criminal and revenue cases coming before him. He estimates his income at about
Rs. 2,000.
Davi Chand.
The Ghamrang branch of the family is represented by Hira Chand of Gondla is at the head of the third branch. They established themselves in Lahaul eight
hundred years ago.
41
SPITI.
1833.
The Nono,
or
**
is
the repre-
now
a portion
is
Kangra
the
district.
Spiti
an
valley
;
among
Himalayan system
it is
shut in to
From
left to
its
was always
govern
and
affairs
are
managed
in
much
the
same way
Nono
gyal
Lam-
in 1878,
when
He
and
is
responsible
an allowance of six-sixteenths of the revenue, equivalent to Rs. 282. He also holds about fifty acres of land, revenuefree,
and
in
proprietary right.
Durji Chatan
district.
is
the sixteenth
Kangra
412
CHIEFS
1871.
I
1854.
I
Bhnp Singh,
b.
1879.
Wazir Karam Singh, Provincial Darbari, is the son of Wazir Goshaun, the well-known Finance Minister and Regent At the time of annexation, Wazir Goshaun was of Mandi.
without exception the most influential
man
in
these
hills.
When
the garrison
of Fort
Kangra
refused to surrender,
own personal
exertions.
at
own private funds. He supplied one hundred and twenty-five matchlock-men to the local authorities of Hushiarpur, and posted some fifty men with the CommisHe had also made arrangements for sioner at Jalandhar. furnishing an additional batch of five hundred men if any In reward, a jagir, concall had arisen for their services. sisting of lands situated in the villages of Bir Korh and Sansal
in the
Palampur Tahsil, of the annual value of Rs. 2,000, was lineal male heirs in perpetuity, on condition of good behaviour and service.
On
Goshaun's death,
to the
and other property acquired by his father but through carelessness and prodigality the greater part of his patrimony has either been alienated or is heavily encumbered.
413
.1
Kishan
Lal Singh,
b.
LaU
1832.
Lachman Das,
b.
II.,!
Kali Parshad,
b.
l>'
1847.
Sheo Parshad,
b.
Bija
b.
Ram,
1885.
1873.
1879.
1874.
Lal
Singh,
Provincial Darbari,
is
the
son of Jograj,
Kanungo, of Nagrota. Jograj, who served as Tahsil Kanungo, had inherited several petty mafis granted to the family by the Rajas of Kangra and on his death some of these, consisting of about one hundred acres, valued at
;
Rs. 215, were continued to his sons during the pleasure of Government and on condition of service as Kanungos. Lal
for
many
years,
and retired as a
Several Naib-Tahsildar on a pension of Rs. 129 per annum. members of the family are employed in the subordinate
district.
414
Martanja,
b.
1834.
1840.
Dhurjali, b. 1851.
Birbhaclar,
b.
1854.
Bishambar Nath,
b.
1S82.
Provincial
guides of the Katoch Rajas of Kangra. The family have always been held in esteem by reason of their religious calling,
The
village of Chahri,
in
the
Kangra
of the
annum,
is
revenue.
The
family
is
7HE
RANG R A
DISTRICT.
415
of Kangra).
Prag Chand.
I
Agar Chand.
Nigahi Chand.
I
Molak Chand,
d.
1874.
I
Mordhaj Chand,
d.
1887.
I
Davi Chand,
b.
1881.
Mian Davi Chand is the representative of a branch of Katoch dynasty, which is descended from Narpat Chand, a nephew of Raja Bhim Chand of Kangra. About two hundred and fifty years ago Raja Bhim Chand gave Narpat
the
Chand a jagir of the value of Rs. 20,000. When Narpat Chand died the jagir was continued to his four sons in equal shares. On the death of one of them without issue, his portion was resumed by the Raja, but the descendants of the others enjoyed their shares until the conquest of Kangra by Maharaja Ranjit Singh, who confiscated the whole. Subsequently, Mian Molak Chand, representing the younger
branch,
had
is
Rs.
2,000
of his
his
jagir
restored
to
him,
and
this
now enjoyed by
grandson Davi
Chand.
Molak Chand originally received an assignment in Mahal Mori in lieu of that in Rajgiri, and a cash grant in lieu of that in Changar Bhaliar, but he had actual possession of the present jagir from the time it was granted to him. Molak Chand was one of the few Katoches of rank who took no part in the rebellion raised by Parmodh Chand. He adhered to the British under
circumstances
peculiarly
trying,
his
house having
been
4i6
CHIEFS
He
was conat
the
possession
of his jagir
now
valued
in perpetuity to
his
heirs, male.
On Molak's death in 1874, the jagir devolved on his son Mordhaj Chand, who was a good specimen of a high-born Rajput, simple and retiring, but thoroughly loyal, and possessing much local influence. He lived by good management within his moderate means, and when he died in 1887, he bequeathed to his successor an unencumbered property. Davi Chand was then only six years of age, and it was deemed necessary to bring his estate under the Court of Wards. Provision has been made for his education, and Mian Hem
ed guardian.
Darbari.
Chand, a Katoch Rajput of the same stock, has been appointHis father, Mordhaj Chand, was a Provincial
THE KA NCR A
DISTRICT.
417
1728.
I
1749.
Mian Bhim.
Raja
Man
Pal.
Murli.
Dhanu.
1
Mathru,
d.
Gahra.
I
1882.
d.
Ram
d.
Pal,
Mian
Bahadar
Pal,
d.
Jit Pal, d.
Cheta,
1878.
Mian Bararu,
b.
Ludar Singh,
b.
Kharak Singh,
b.
1857.
i860.
1864.
Birja,
b.
Bhag Singh,
b.
Gulab Singh,
b.
Lahnu,
b.
Arjan,
b.
Kanhya,
b.
1855.
1S63.
1865.
1868.
1871.
5874.
is
a descendant
who appear
Raja
to
have maintained
in the
fell
early part
victim
to to
in 1728, invited
him
Mandi on
his
assistance against
;
the
Raja of Suket.
there murdered.
He
Damdama
Mandi
light
and
but his
palace.
in a
tank facing
spot,
pillar
and a
on it for years. Sidh Sen's object in murdering Pirthi Pal was to seize his territory, but in this he only partially succeedThe forts at Jagapur, Tika Thana and the pargana of ed. Nir, with eighteen villages of Ilaka Chuhar (all of them until then forming part of the Bhangahal kingdom) were annexed
4i8 to
CHIEFS
Subsequently, Sidh Sen attempted to seize Mandi, Karanpur, which also belonged to Bhangahal but he was repulsed by Raja Raghnath Pal, who had succeeded his
;
He
penetrated,
on a second occasion, as
;
Bhangahal
but
Raghnath Pal
was
Raja Thedi Singh of Kulu, but also to beat him back with not only to check his advance,
able, with the assistance of
loss.
considerable
always appreciated
the
loyalty
of the Bhangahal Chiefs, and when news of the repeated aggressions of the Mandi Raja on Bhangahal reached the Emperor at Dehli, he deputed Adina Beg, Governor of
Jalandhar, to drive him
at
off.
Dinanagar
in 1732.
The
to
ended unfortunately
for
meet the Governor, as Sham Sher Singh, then Raja of Mandi, took advantage of his absence to seize the much-coveted Ilaka of Karanpur.
Raghnath
Pal, w^ho
went
son
Raghnath Pal died in 1749, and was succeeded by his Dalel Pal, whose reign was rendered memorable by a combined, though unsuccessful, attack made on Bhangahal by the Rajas of Mandi, Kulu, Kahlur, Nalagarh, Goler and Jaswan. The united forces of these Chiefs encamped at Tika
Changar, and made an attempt to capture the Raja and his
brother Mian Bhim, but were eventually
great
loss.
driven
back with
slaughtered
in Bir,
several
foes.
One
exists in the
pine
forest
and another stands on the banks of the Pun River within the
limits of
Raja of Kulu whose son Man Pal He succeeded only to the Talukas of Lanod and Paprola. died on his way to Dehli, whither he was proceeding with the
in
1749 by the
Pal,
4^9
in
Mughal Emperor
an attempt he intended making for the recovery of his The Rajas of Kangra and Goler took advantage patrimony.
of
Man
Pal's
appropriating
property.
Kangra Lanod and Paprola, and Goler the remaining Man Pal's widow and her infant son Nahal Pal
absence to seize villages and lands
;
Chamba
jagir.
at Rihlu,
In 1785,
who when
Raja Sansar Chand of Kangra married a daughter of Man Pal, he lent Uchal Pal a small force to help him in recovering
his lands
This
latter
Chief had
re-
course to stratagem.
He
bought
of Sansar
to
Chand's
officers
When
Sansar Chand
Kangra, he had to muster all his available forces, including After the battle of the portion he had lent to Uchal Pal. Nerti, in which Raja Rai Singh was defeated and killed, the
Mandi and Kulu Rajas secured themselves in possession of Bhangahal by paying Sansar Chand five lakhs of rupees.
Some
girl
time after this Uchal Pal died, leaving three sons and
a daughter,
who
The
of
Ram
The
Pal, eldest
efforts
1843.
Bahadar Pal, his younger brother, to recover the family estate, were always opposed by the Raja of Mandi, Mathru, father
of Bararu, the present representative, succeeded in
obtaining
from the British Government a, pension of Rs. 500 per annum for his cousin Mian Bahadar Pal, and this he enjoyed until
his death in 1854.
Bararu
is
his
circle, an;l
member
420
THE HAZARA
NAWAB
SIR MAHOxMED
DISTRICT.
K.CS.I.y
AKRAM KHAN,
OF AMB.
421
whom
back.
to
his son,
From
the
this
time
opposition
Sikhs.
He
Khan, whom he caused to be assassinated but the Sikh Governor espoused the cause of Ghafar Khan, and put in his son after expelling Jahandad Khan, though a man of less energy the Tanaulis.
and vigor than
Sikhs.
his father, continued the struggle against the
in 1846, he had the good sense or humanity to save the lives of the Sikh garrisons in his country and for this he was rewarded by Maharaja Gulab Singh v/ith a grant of the revenues of Badnak Kalga and Kalinja, valued at Rs. 6,000, in the Siran Indus Doab. He was in power when the Panjab was annexed, and he behaved afterwards in a generally loyal way, lending his services on occasions of emergency. During the Mutiny he streno--
in
his
territories
and preof
He
furnished
contingent
and
at
weight
sign.
and undoubted allegiance had great a time when the lower orders were looking for a
his bearing
was
his
were
acknowledged by the General in his official despatches. He was succeeded in 1858 by his only son Mahomed Akram Khan, the present Nawab. In 1868, when the Deputy Commissioner and a small detachment of Gurkhas were practically beleaguered in Agror by a number of Hasanzais, Akazais and Chagarzais, the Tanauli Chief at once came to their
assistance with his retainers and rendered conspicuous service,
showing great personal gallantry in the emergency. He was rewarded with a cash pension of Rs. 6,000 per annum and the title of Nawab and after the Second Black Mountain
;
422
CHIEFS
the
India.
racter,
The Nawab is described as a man of great who in his youth was distinguished as
force of cha-
bold
rider
and a brave soldier. He rules his territory with a rod of iron; but, on the whole, administers it well, and has creditably managed his somewhat difficult charge, creating very few troubles and complications with the neighbouring independent
tribes.
x'\s
Trans-Indus,
Amb,
and a small tract round it, including Ashra and Betgali, he Chief. The tract called Feudal Tanaul, is an independent
or the hereditary jagir,
tered
is in
is
adminis-
by the Nawab.
or
cri-
This
tract
contains about
square
is
The Nawab
the
landlord
of the
whole.
He
also
enjoys
is
revenues
as
of
known
the
Kulai
and Badnahak
is
Ilakas, south of
Tanaul on the
tolls
Indus.
8,963,
This
and
on
trade,
especially
on timber
income
as he
is is
floating
down
the
Indus.
careful in
money
matters,
if
not
man
in the district, in
spite
of
retainers,
and
in
the
form of
allowances to relatives.
He
Mahom-
and Another prominent member of the Tanauli family Khairula Khan, of the is Mahomed Khan, son of the late He owns a one-ninth share of the Kathia Palal branch.
his heir
designated
villages
423
Another representative member of this family is Abdul Rahman Khan, a second cousin of the Nawab. His grandfather, Madad Khan, brother and deadly enemy of the celebrated Painda, was Chief of the
of the
Hindwal Tanaulis, and in the early days of our administration was treated as a valuable counterpoise to his nephew Jahandad. He supplied a body of horsemen for
service in 1857, and personally opposed the
crossing through
Hazara of the mutineers of the 55th Regiment from Swat He also did useful service against the Satana into Kashmir. fanatics in 1858, and in reward was presented with a valuable
khilat.
Abdul Rahman,
his grandson,
is
now Chief
of Phalera
in
Feudal Tanaul.
424
Sultan
d.
Kamal Khan,
1559.
Sultan Said
Khan.
I
Alawal Khan.
Fatah Khan.
I
Sullan
Jalal
Shah Beg.
I
Mahomed Azim
Khan.
I
Khan.
I
Sultan Ajmir.
Sultan
Nawazish
Ali
Bisharat.
I
Amir
Ali
Khan,
Khan.
Namdar Khan.
Murid Khan.
d. 1S25.
Raja
d.
Mahomed
Khan,
1
88 1.
I
Sultan Jafar
Khan,
d.
Sher
Mahomed,
d. 1S29.
iSoi.
182S.
1S35.
1865.
I
Raja Ali
I
Sardar
d.
Madad
Raja Najaf
Gohar Khan,
d. 1863.
Ali
d.
Mahomed
Khusro Khan,
b.
Khan,
1822.
Khan,
d.
1885.
i860.
1853.
Ata
b.
Ali,
Ghulam
1817.
Mahomed
Khan,
b.
Aziz khan,
d. il
1820.
1828.
Farman
Raja Haidar Raja Shadman
Raja Sultan
b.
Ali,
1866.
Bakhsh Khan,
Khan,
b.
Khan,
b.
1865.
|
1829.
1833.
Raja Jahandad
Raja Sher
Raja Gohar
Khan,
b.
Raja
Fazaldad,
b.
Mahmud
Khan,
b.
Ahmad,
b.
Rahman,
b.
1848.
1858.
1876.
1855.
1858.
Yusaf Khan,
b.
Hasain Khan,
b.
Mahomed
Jafar,
b.
1859.
1864.
1873.
The
in Sir
history of the
Griffin's
Lepel
Gakhars generally has been given Panjab Chiefs. The Hazara branch
THE HAZARA
DISTRICT.
425
separated from the parent stem towards the end of the sixteenth century. Fatah Khan, son of Sultan Said Khan, crossed
the Nurpur range in Rawalpindi and settled at Khanpur, a large village just inside the southern border of the present
Hazara
far
district,
between
Haripur, and
not
This Khanpur from the ancient Taxila of Alexander. Ilaka was a portion of the Sarangwal Gakhars' estates, and was made over by his grandfather Sultan Sarang to Fatah
Khan, whose children have held it ever since. The Khanpur Gakhars managed to preserve their independence until the Sikhs got a firm grip of the Hazara tract in 1831.
playing the
game
of grab
came
off
no man of
when
the gains
They had
the
In
free.
nothing,
while
their
feudatories,
themselves
Ahmad Shah
Durani,
who was
ruler
of the
Panjab and Kashmir in the middle of the eighteenth century, the Gakhars were entrusted with the keeping of order in the
lower portions of the
for military
district,
services
rendered.
The
Kabul and
Kashmir passed through the valley, and the constant movement of officials and troops kept the people within bounds
;
but
changed early in the present century. The Duranis were no longer strong, and the tribes began to despise their old masters, though afraid to assert their own complete
things
independence.
Khan
sturdy
of
Khanpur stood
Hazara
made the people fear and remembered to this day in and honorable ways. But he was almost
He
is
426
alone
for
the
general
cry
was
Then came
men
their
as likely to
They were welcomed by all honest effete Duranis who had had day and were now rulers in name only. Yet the Sikh
the Sikhs.
Hazara people had known. These government" Makhan Singh, Kardar introduced by the Lahore officials. of Rawalpindi, visited Hazara in 1818 with five hundred sowars, and levied a tax on such of the Khans as he could reach. He was slain in the following year in fair fight with the Turin Chief; and his followers had to fall back in indecent Reinforcements were of course haste upon the Attock Fort. sent from Lahore, and the Sikhs had their revenge, and
grinding than any
the
latter
had no reason
by a
little fair
who came up
in the
command
death, unwarily
attacked a
Gandgarh range, and was badly beaten, and himself He was succeeded by Sardar Amar Singh slain in the battle. He won the Majithia, a brave soldier and a good politician. Chiefs over by kind treatment, and would probably have made
a successful Governor had he not lost his
life
while
leading
a foraging
country.
party
All this
against
some rebel villages in the Nara time the Khanpur Gakhars had the status
of independent jagirdars.
They acknowledged
the supremacy
of the Sikhs, but paid revenue to no one. In 1820, Sardar Hari Singh Nalwa, Governor of Kashmir,
was put
the
in
charge of Hazara.
Sadikhanis,
successful, for
he was constantly
Turins,
He
The
Nara
Maha-
was obliged
to
hasten
to
his
assistance.
42?
conquest of Hazara, which followed under the governorship of Hari Singh, concerns the Gakhars only to
hand was raised against every between professed friends one. He refused to and proclaimed foes. Fair words were lost upon him and the mild Gakhars thus found themselves in the same bad In 1831, Raja Najaf plight as the most turbulent clans.
this extent, that the Sardar's
distinguish
Khan and
the other
leading
having been behindhand with the nazarana. Their country was seized by Sardar Hari Singh, who built a fort at Khanpur and arranged for the cultivation direct with Six years later Raja Ali Gohar, father of the the tenants.
pretext of their
present Raja
Firoz,
succeeded
in
obtaining a jagir
is still
in his
held by
senior
Chief,
was given
liberal
all
was commuted
be termed
joined with
But
this
treatment could
that
scarcely
and
it is
not surprising
in
the
Gakhars
the
Hazara Chiefs
Sikh garrisons when they heard of their reverses on the Satlaj Raja Haidar Bakhsh, father of the present Chief in 1846.
Jahandad Khan, was one of the first to rise, capturing the Khanpur Fort, and re-possessing himself of his ancient holdings.
concluded between the Lahore Government, the Hazara district was included in " all the hilly or mountainous country, with its dependencies, situate eastward of the river Indus and westward of the river Ravi, " which was to be the future kingdom of
In the treaty of 1846,
British
possession.
Raja Gulab Singh. The new ruler lost no time He despatched Diwan Hari Chand to
tract.
in
taking
collect the
to
haul
down
his colors
42 8
Early
Lahore Government
Sialkot district
below Jamu, which the Raja Gulab Singh was very anxious to secure. He would have willingly surrendered
the charge
plains
Hazara
;
to
to relieve
him of
but to receive
really
exchange
of the
rich
villages in the
was
to
than he demanded.
decision
The
details
transfer required a
Hazara
and
this
lands,
duty was entrusted to Captain James Abbott, Assistant to the Resident at Lahore, who proceeded to Hazara in
1847, and
made
summary
settlement of the
district.
Under
peace-
down
into
on the Frontier he was able to assure the Resident that complete tranquillity reigned in the valley. But it was not long to continue.
his arrival
in the name of the Lahore Darbar. In June, Sher Singh was hurried down to Multan with
Vans Agnew and Anderson. But Sher Singh joined Mulraj and headed the movement on the lower Chanab, while his
father threw off the
mask
in
party, in
Captain
events
working
Sikh
officials,
was obliged
for the
newly-made friends
safety of his
These latter rallied round him in good spirit, and for some time he was able to hold his own against the rebels and he might eventually have expelled them from
life.
;
own
429
new enemy risen up against him in the Haidar Khan, son of the Amir Dost Mahomed Khan of Kabul. This prince had been sent by his father to seize Kashmir after the fall of Attock'in January, 1848.
person of Ghulam
Ghulam Haidar
Frontier almost
joined his
forces with
those of the
Sikhs
had commenced
to
bud.
;
The
to be resisted
and most
Hazara
officer
went over
gallant
to the
He moved
back
country
passage of the
round Sherwan, determined to oppose the Duranis in the event of their making a move
towards
Kashmir.
lower
the
down upon
the
plains
of Gujrat
Almost within a year of their capture of Attock, the last of Afofhans had fled back over the Indus to their own mountains while the Sikh power was broken up for ever,
;
by the British. After an anxious waiting, Abbott found himself able to smile of months seven upon the few friends who had remained faithful and helped him in all his difficulties, believing in his assurances that the The Khanpur Gakhars stuck English must win in the end. and some of their best men went to Abbott throughout down to Multan and served at the siege under Edwardes.
and
their country possessed
;
the war,
They, moreover, paid their revenue to us regularly during when Abbott wanted all the money he could collect.
Yet the treatment they received when we took the country over was not such as we can now feel proud of. They were
merely confirmed
in their old jagirs
and
told to
wait for a
which had been snatched from them by the Sikhs, until the district should come under regular settlement. The matter
430
taken up by Colonel Wace, Settlement Yet the clan continued to serve us as occasion offered, and in 1857 behaved with marked fidelity. Colonel Wace treated them in a spirit of liberality which they had scarcely hoped for after the interval that had elapsed. They were established as owners in seventy-eight villages in the hill tract and in the Ilakas of Panj-Kata and Baharwal and of these the village of Jawalian was reserved for Raja Jahandad Khan in consideration of the charges he would have to meet as Chief of the tribe.
thus drifted
Officer,
in
1872.
The
trict is
detail of the
:
Gakhars' holdings
in the
Hazara
dis-
as follows
Number
of
Assessment,
Rs.
villages.
,.
.
31
7>643
23 24
6,737
9,020
For
their
personal
services in
the Mutiny,
Rajas Ata
Rajas
AH Khan
Haidar
Haidar Bakhsh,
perpetuity.
Bakhsh and AH Gohar Khan were appointed Honorary Magistrates within the limits of their estates. Their representatives are Raja Jahandad Khan and Raja Firoz Khan. The former is a thoroughly loyal and trustworthy official. He was appointed an Extra Assistant
1877, and is now in receipt of a salary of annum. He was present throughout the Agror Expedition of 1868 and in 1880 he acted as a Political receiving as a Officer under Sir Lepel Griffin at Kabul reward the title of Khan Bahadar and a life-jagir of Rs. 600.
Commissioner
Rs. 4,800
in
per
According
to
by the Deare
431
or
houses,
Rs.
2t,t,
in
mafis
chaJiaram dues.
of Rs. 565.
The headmen
432
Ilabilnila.
I
Samandar Khan,
b.
1844.
The Swatis
are
the
offspring
of
the
miscellaneous
set himself
Baba
collected
when he
Turk landlords early in the They inhabit almost the whole of the Mansehra century. Tahsil, and are numerically one of the most important tribes
to clear the country of the old
in the district.
At the head of the Khan Khel Swatis is Samandar Khan, Jagirdar of Konshand Garhi Habibula. They claim as ancestor Abubakar, first Khalifa and uncle of the Prophet and they allege that Abdul Rahman, fortieth in descent from Abubakar, left Madina, where he was Governor, and It is a far cry from Madina to settled at Pakhli in Hazara. Pakhli and Pakhli was such an out-of-the-way place for an
;
ex-Governor to care to
settle in that
one
is
puzzled to think
Khels them so we must accept what they say as a fact. Whether or not they came from Arabia, they no doubt migrated to Hazara with the general body of Swatis who were pushed eastwards by the Eusafzai Pathans emerging into the Peshawar plain from Kandahar, after many years of ceaseless wandering.
it
how
should have
all
come
about.
their bards
The
village of Garhi
as Garhi Both father and the adjoining Kashmir Province, and were
now known
large jagirs,
and
became
prosperous.
Mahomed
433
in
Amin Khan,
son of Habibula,
1846 to Diwan Hari Chand, agent of Raja Gulab Singh of Jamu and Kashmir, in suppressing a rising of Hindustanis and Swatis just after he had received over the Hazara hilltracts
v^as
under treaty from the British Government, and he rewarded with the jagir rights in the Konsh Ilaka,
still
which are
These were
at
first
made
Khan's Mutiny
services.
The
Garhi
Ilaka,
valued at
He is a large landed proprietor, and Rs. 9,113 per annum. he exercises magisterial powers within the limits of his
Ilaka.
He
in
various occasions
border.
services rendered
on
the
Darbar on Hazara
434
ALI GOIIAR
KHAN OF AGROR.
455
which
fell
to the
Mithrawi
Swatis,
and
Ilaka,
having
after
some
the present
Khan
is
descended
Khan, who, in the course of constant fighting with the Chiefs of Tanaul and the adjacent Hasanzais, succeeded in usurping the rights of nearly
all his
own with
while
many
lands
of the
other
up
arms
their
against the
to
gradually to resign
succeeded by Ghafar, who fought alternately against Palnda Khan of Amb and the Painda Khan ultimately caused Sikhs with varying success.
the
He was
self.
Ghafar to be assassinated in 1835, and kept Agror for himThe Swatis appealed to Sardar Hari Singh, who was
unable to help them just then
;
Ghafar Khan's son Ata Mahomed, and gave him a jaglr of Rs. 875, and the lease of the rest of the valley for Rs. 800.
Ata Mahomed was Khan when the country fell to the British Living at a great distance from after the Second Sikh War. head-quarters, and coming seldom in contact with the district officials,
Khan
for
some arrogance and a but want of confidence in the intentions of Government by degrees he became more friendly in his attitude, and
after our first occupation
indicated
when matters
His jaglr was increased which were made perpetual, on of Rs. 1,000 to Rs. 1,500, his heirs being selected by Governcondition of service
were
at their worst in
Hindustan.
was resolved to place a Thana in Agror ment. more directly under our administrative the valley bring and
In 1868
it
436
system. Ata Mahomed, incensed at this, instigated a raid by the Black Mountain clans, who invaded the Agror valley and burnt the newly-built Thana. This led to the first Black Mountain Expedition. The Khan was removed to Lahore, but after a few years he was released and reinstated on the ground that his proprietary rights in Agror had not been
and that
his restoration
tribes.
He
Hasanzai
Teri,
wife,
Ali
Gohar
fell
in
He
is
at
present
under
Khanpur
in the
south of Hazara
district.
jagir
had been conferred during the recent settlement operations, was resumed in 1888.
of Rs. 2,000, which
step-brother of
AH
Gohar, has
measure
free
from the
intrigues
which the
members of the family have fomented, but at the request of Ali Gohar he was some years ago expelled from
Agror, and he has
Tahsil.
since lived
at
Darial
in
the
Mansera
He
is
a Viceregal Darbari,
THE HAZARA
DISTRICT.
437
Mahmud Khan,
Mahomed Khan.
1
Ill
I
Ahmad
Ali Khan.
Mahomed
Ali
Sardar Azad
Ahmad
Khan.
Khan.
I
Khan.
Gohar Khan.
Khan,
b.
Abdul Rahman.
1847.
1845.
is
who
plain.
His
father, Ali
Sikhs, in
after
the
GovWar, Ali Bahadar remained staunch to Abbott, though some of his near In the Mutiny he relatives joined hands with Chatar Singh. and his brothers, Ata Mahomed and Ali Gohar, proceeded with their armed retainers and clansmen to Murree on the first intimation of the Dhund outbreak, and rendered faithful service until they were allowed by the Commissioner to Ali Bahadar was awarded a cash return to their homes. allowance of Rs. 200 per annum, and the three brothers
ernment.
During the
Second
Sikh
Sayad Mahomed Khan's jagir now yields Rs. 1,090 per annum, in the villages of Dabran, Masa Gojoi and Lasan.
He
is
a Viceregal Darbari.
of the other Karal branch,
Ali,
is also a enjoyed one quarter of
His
father,
Mir Hasan
438
CHIEFS
revenues of the
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
;
the
but he
Azad Khan holds the perpetual jagir of Rs. 1,01 1, which his father received when the country was The Karals are said to first taken over from the Sikhs.
settled in the
have been
sion of India.
feudatories of
many
years
439
440
from annexa-
been distinguished
none of the Hazara Chiefs did more to assist in the establishment of British rule than the brothers Mir Zaman Khan, Kalandar Khan and Abdula Khan. The latter accompanied
the expedition in 1852 against the tribes of the Black
tain
Moun-
and the Khagan Sayads, and behaved with great judgment and gallantry. Kalandar Khan served for some years at Abbottabad as Thanadar. In 1857 the brothers contributed
their
being raised
Hindustan.
in
men,
to
He was
first
Ambeyla Expedition.
in his
is
an
Honorary Magistrate
Afghan Campaign
of 1879-80.
Many of the family have served, or are now serving, in Bengal and Panjab Cavalry Regiments. Faizula Khan, son of Fatah Khan, was for many years a Jamadar in the ist
Panjab Cavalry
;
and Karam Khan, son of Abdula Khan, in the 17th Bengal Cavalry.
The
brothers
Ali Bahadar
Khan
are
Viceregal Darbaris.
THE HAZARA
DISTRICT.
441
Kazi
Mahomed Alam.
Kazi
Mahomed Azim.
I
(?)
Kazi Abdul
Ghafar.
.1
1846.
Sayad Alam.
Nur
Alam.
Kazi Faiz
Mahomed
Aifan.
Mahomed
Said.
Abdula.
Alam,
il
1
888.
The
They
but
settled in this
district in
in
first
came
and
to
notice
the
person of Sadula
acquired a
Khan, who
for
after
studying at
in
Lahore,
reign
reputation
learning,
the
of
During
.Sikh
rule,
of Sadula Khan,
was
grants
Ghulam Ahmad
was
killed
in
and as his sons were minors the Abdul Ghafar, a man of immense energy, who rendered valuable service to Major Abbott in the He was made Tahsildar in Hazara> critical years of 1847-49.
lead in family was taken by
Dhamtaur Pathans
and
his
branch of the
they
now
enjoy.
in 1888,
He has been succeeded by his only son Fazal Ilahi, who takes a higher place in Viceregal Darbars than his cousin Mir Alam, though the
Dheri and Sakandarpur.
latter
family.
442
who managed
child
Sikhs,
was
when
his
He
be an
a
Extra Assis-
pension. of
He
men
is
has
jagir
Rs. 500
in
Sakandarpur
the
district.
and
is
in
The
of
Sakandarpur, Dheri
Haripur Tahsil.
THE HAZARA
DISTRICT.
443
head of
one
of
the
leading
the
Tanaulis.
They
claim
descent
from
throne of Khorasan.
ria " the
one of their ancestors on the Driven thence by "the King of Assysettled in Swat.
His
Pal
decendant Amir
Khan
ruled
there
Khan and Hind Khan, fathers of the Pal and Hindwal Tanaulis, who took their name from the Tanal Pass in Swat.
Being forced
to leave their country of adoption, they travelled
Amb
and the
tract
west of the
Siran,
now
called Tanaul.
In the time of
Ahmad Shah
King on
his
Durani,
Tanaulis
who way to
Kashmir, and was rewarded with a large jagir and the title Suba Khan, by which he is still locally known. Suba Khan's name is one of the most famous in Hazara sono^ and
his wealth
and
his
unbounded generosity.
Shah,
is
His tomb
at Pahar,
in the district.
quarrellin
possessions
consequence.
did
Nawab Khan,
great-grandson of .Suba
Khan,
good service after annexation for Major Abbott, who him Chief of eastern Tanawal. He had previously marched down to Multan at the head of a body of horsemen and served under Edwardes throughout the Siege. He was
styled
again forward
rising in the
in assisting at
the
suppression
in
of the
Dhund
his
neighbourhood of Murree
effects
1857,
losing
of exposure.
1,780.
He
was rewarded
the
His
son,
present
to this jagir,
Niamat
444
Khan and some neighbouring villages. His uncle Inayatula Khan of Chamhad, also a Darbari, has a jagir of Rs. 400 per annum given for good and loyal service.
Sultan
Mahomed Khan
members
of
of
Bir,
now studying
family.
in
the
Mahomed Khan
of Puhar,
Suba Khan's
THE HAZARA
DISTRICT.
445
NAJIBULA.
leaders
of the
of old
of
Kot Najibula
This
in
tribe,
are
like
others
less
repute
than
later emi-
grants from the west, chooses to claim descent from the Kuraishis of Arabia,
where
their ancestor
was
contemporary and
call themselves and they admit that for generations they were HinChohans, The Gujars are one of the most numerous clans in dus.
friend of the
Prophet.
Nevertheless
they
Hazara,
and
out-number the
Pathans
and
Swatis
yet
political
importance.
The Maka-
dams of Kot Najibula assert that one of their ancestors became Governor of Hazara, under Mahmud of Ghazni, and In founded the village of Shekhabad on the site of Kot. the time of Aurangzeb the title of Makadam was given to
The Tarins Chaudhri Daulat Beg, then head of the clan. ousted the Gujars from many of their villages in the Hazara
plain;
and
in 1760,
Najibula
Makadam
Tarin
Masharaf,
who
for
many
years
administered
against
the
and Gujar
own
Utmanzais,
Tanaulis
and
Gakkars.
Masharaf's great-grandson Ghulam
sent
Ahmad
is
the prein
Makadam.
He
holds
a jagir
of Rs.
1,884
Kot
Najibula,
over seven
villages
of Dahdar, a grandson of
Makadam
446
THE PESHAWAR
KHAN,
C.S.I.,
DISTRICT.
AFZxAL
\usaf Khan.
I
Harun Khan.
I
Fatahula Khan,
d.
1741.
Nasrula Khan,
d.
Samandar Khan,
d.
Rahmatula Khan,
d.
Mahomed Khan,
d. 1805,
1733.
1805.
d.
I
1805.
Sakandar Khan,
Habibula Khan.
1865.
Mahomed Abas
Maho-
MahoAkbar Khan,
^.
Khan,
d.
med Zaman
Khan,
:/.
Maho- CoLOXEL Major Ataula Asadula med med Umar Maho- Mahom- Khan, Khan,
Khan,
/;.
Inayatula Ilayat-
Khan
d.
ula
MED
Afzai,
ed Aslam
f>.
1862.
d. 1872.
1887.
d.
|
Khan,
1864.
1819.
1S33.
Khan,
p.
1877.
1833.
Khan,
C.S.L,
b.
1838.
Mahomed
Asaf Khan,
b.
1835.
1885.
Maho-
Sarbiland
Klian,
d.
med
Azim Khan,
i.
Habibul
Khalilul
1870.
Rahman,
/;.
Rahman,
b.
1883.
1884.
Mahomed Akram
Khan,
b.
Maho- Jalaludin
Hasamudin
1857.
med Azam
Khan,
b.
Khan,
b.
1880.
Khan,
b.
1866.
1881.
1875.
Mahomed Ghulam
Sarwar Khan,
b.
Mahomed
Yusaf
Haidai
ed
MahomYakub
Khan,
1883.
Yaya Khan,
b.
Abdul Wahid,
b
Abdul Ahad,
b.
1
Khan,
b.
Khan,
b.
1884.
1888.
888.
1871.
1881.
1S83.
b.
Ghulam
Rasul.
b.
Mahomed
Anwar,
b.
1885.
1874.
1S79.
1S89.
Nasrula Khan,
b.
Nurula Khan,
b.
Azimula Khan,
b.
Mahomed Tahmasab
Khan,
I
1865.
1867.
1869.
d.
1875.
Hadaitula
Fatah
Mahomed
b.
Khan.
Khan,
1869.
THE PESHAWAR
Nawab Mahomed
Sadozai
DISTRICT.
447
Afzal Khan is a member of the Bamlzai family of the Kamran Khel branch, which
exiles in
Peshawar
the
The
Great, of Persia,
who
ruled early in
From him sprang Ahmad Shah Abdali and the other Kings of Kabul, afterwards ousted by
the
Barakzais. Malcolm relates how Sadula the Sadozai, and Ahmad, founder of the Barakzais, were put in as Risk
the agents of
King Abas
at
Kandahar
in
the
place
of a Persian
He asserts
impious to
who
held
it
lift
a sword
Afghanistan under
Ahmad Shah
Abdali and
his
son
annum. He died in 1741, and was buried at Kandahar, the Wazarat passing to his third son Rahmatula in the time of Shah Zaman, elder brother of Shah Shuja-ul-Mulk; while Samandar Khan, elder brother of Rahmatula, became Hakim or Governor of Kabul, and Mahomed Khan, the youngest, was appointed
Timur,
receiving a salary
of a lakh of rupees per
* " The Seedoozahis (or descendants of Seedoo) are held in such veneration that if one of them was to attempt the murder of an Ameer, or lord of another tribe, it would l>e If an Afghan acted otherconsidered wrong to obtain safety by assaulting the Seedoozahi. There is, however, an wise, he would be deemed an outcast in his own class or tribe. and the Ahmedzais may, exception to this rule in favour of the descendants of Ahmed without sacrilege, slay as above ; but a great number of the Afghans deny this privilege even to the Ahmedzais. Seedoo and Ahmed were raised to rank by Shah Abas The Great, and derived their fortunes from that fountain of dignity and splendour." (Foot-note to Malcolm's Persia, Vol. I., page 599, Edn. 1815). This peculiar reverence for the " Seedoozahis " has since worn off, if it ever really existed. The Ahmedzais, in other words Barakzais, were particularly forward in slaying Sadozais towards the beginning of the present century and the practice became quite common with Their all Afghans, Barakzais included, about the time of Shah Shuja's last visit to Kabul. sacred descent did not save Mahomed Afzal Khan's grandfather and two granduncles from having their throats cut in cold blood under the walls of the Bala Hisar in 1805.
; ;
448
Naib of Kandahar.
1805, under orders of
Kabul
in
Mahomed Shah, together with his broHis son Mahomed thers Samandar and Mahomed Khan. Usman Khan, afterwards known as the Wazir Nazamudaula,
was
then
only
three
years
father,
man
of
some
position in
Kabul
cousin
who concealed
the child
He
was
sent,
Nawab Mahomed Khan, GoKhan, who Ismail owed his position to the vernor of Dera Khan's Mahomed Khan made Usman father. of offices good
while
still
a lad, to
the child a
military service.
He
remained
in the
render of
to the
His
daughter of
marriage to
of
Ahmad Khan,
mother of the present Nawab Sarfaraz Khan of Dera Ismail Khan. Usman Khan subsequently took service under Mahomed Zaman Khan, Governor of Jalalabad, receiving a handHe was holding this post some salary as Naib or Deputy.
the British advance was made with the object of setShah Shuja upon the throne and he at once went over to his natural ally and was of the greatest assistance in keeping the country, sharing in the storming of Ghazni and all the fighting around Kabul in the early days of the occupation. He was appointed Wazir of Afghanistan with the and his sons, Mahomed x^bas Khan, title of Nazamudaula Khan, were put in as Governors Zaman Akbar Khan and
when
ting
of Kabul,
Lughman and Jalalabad, respectively. Abas Khan was afterwards transferred as Governor to Kandahar. He had to leave Afghanistan when the British retired in 1842, taking up his abode at Peshawar on a pension of Rs. 6,000 per annum. He shared in both Sikh Wars and placed his
THE PESHAWAR
services at the disposal of Sir
DISTRICT.
449
sioner of Peshawar, in
latter crisis
the
he sent
;
his
fight
before Dehli
at
while
was stationed
der,
Hoti Mardan, and helped to preserve order along the borAslam Khan (now Major), in like manner, came forenlisted
will
ward and
brave
in
the Cavalry.
The
services
of these
men
be presently detailed.
Mahomed Usman
Khan died at Peshawar in 1865, universally regretted. He was a staunch and consistent friend of the British, and never
wavered
darkest.
in his
loyalty,
at
their
An
is
still
alive.
He
acknowledged by Conolly,
Macnaghten and other was badly wounded while acting as Governor of Kandahar, and lost the whole of his property in the evacuation returning to Peshawar with his
whom
he worked.
He
father,
in
He
Wars and
;
Under
He
receives
a pension of
died
sioner.
was for Nurula Khan, son of Abas, is an officer in the Peshawar Border Militia. Azimula Khan, another son, is an accepted
in 1875,
His son Sardar Tahmasab Khan, who some time an Extra Assistant Commis,
post
of Extra
Assistant
Commissioner.
the
list
second son of
Usman Khan,
to
Kabul,
Herbert
450
Edwardes, and was with him throughout the Siege of Multan. He was appointed a Rasaldar of Cavalry after annexation, and
passed thence into the Peshawar Police.
in 1877,
He
the
died at
Kabul
having been
for
some years
in
enjoyment of a
also
fought
for
the
British
in
Wars
after
awarded a maintenance allowance of Rs. 1,200 per annum for services at Attock under Lieutenant Herbert in 1848. He was appointed a Tahsildar in 1859, and held the position for
eleven years, afterwards working
in
the
Settlement as an
He
in the
retired in
1885
on an
is
an
by
Of the daughters, one of them was married in 1869 to the Amir Sher Ali Khan, and the mother lived with her in Kabul for several years, with her sons Ataula, InayatThe latter is now a Dafadar in ula, Asadula and Hayatula. The widow receives a pension of the 9th Bengal Cavalry. Rs. 1,200 per annum from the British Government. She was expelled from Kabul with her children by the present Amir
in 1886.
Lieutenant-Colonel Haji
Mahomed
Afzal Khan,
C.S.I.,
Kabul, and was twenty-one years of His father placed him as age when the Mutiny broke out.
in
He was severely Stokes' Irregular Cavalry. Muradnagar near Dehli, and was forced to retire from the service, receiving a pension of Rs. 600 per annum. In 1864 he again came forward, and was made Rasaldar in He was selected to accompany th Bengal Lancers. the Sir Douglas Forsyth to Yarkand in 1873, and on return was
wounded
at
1 1
title
of
Khan
THE PESHAWAR
attached to the suite of his
DISTRICT.
451
He was
next
Royal
Wales, and accompanied him on his return to England in 1876 He saw service in Kabul during the as an Orderly Officer.
late
upon Sardar Abdul Rahman. On the return of the Troops to India he was presented in public Darbar with a valuable khilat, and was given jagir rights in lands close to Peshawar, yielding Rs. 1,800 annually. He was further honored with
the
title
of Lieutenant-Colonel, and he
India.
1882 British
Envoy
at the
He
to
remained
his
in
Kabul un-
1885,
owing
to failing health. to
He
Camp
time a
sil
same
gift of six
of the
Lahore
and
in
Mahomed Afzal Khan's name is still borne on the list of the nth (Prince of Wales' Own) Bengal Lancers. He has had six sons, all of whom died in their infancy.
Nawab.
It
dis-
Major Aslam Khan, sixth son of Mahomed Usman, was born in Kabul in 1838^ and was brought to Peshawar at the age of eleven. He was selected by Edwardes in 1857 for a Rasaldarship in the 5th Bengal Cavalry and he fought in many battles, and was
tinguished, of this illustrious
;
specially distinguished
for his
He
was
1879
engaged
went
to
later
on
in
He
was there
detailed as an Assistant
45
and remained
Khaibar
in this
Army
When
Aslam Khan
measure
In 1884
To him
is in
a great
accompany Sir West Ridgeway to the Russo-Afghan Border, and he once more distinguished himself by rendering valuable service. On his return he resumed his command in the Khaibar, which appointment he holds on a salary of Rs. 6,000 per annum. For political services during the Kabul War he was awarded the Order and in of Merit and the title of Sardar Bahadar
;
Commission he has received the honor of Companionship in the Order of the Indian Empire. In 1885 he was gazetted to the rank of Honorary Major. He has also been granted a special annual allowance of Rs. 600 for services in Afghanistan, and of Rs. 1,000 for his services under Sir
connection
with
his labors
on the Boundary
his
breast
seven military
Medals and Orders, bearing witness to a life spent, not in ease, rough but in service cheerfully rendered. His brave acts and loyal conduct have no doubt been generously rewarded but it was not a thirst for money that impelled Aslam Khan and his gallant brothers to risk their lives over
;
and over again in the service of a strange and foreign people. They were the children of Malcolm's Sado, real or mythical
of the
Sado whose upright ways caused his offspring to be classed as sacred amongst the simple savages whom they governed. Usman Khan and his sons deemed it honorable
to serve the British
;
lot
with our's
when
never
we were
carrying
all
us
in
Kabul,
and they
wavered when fortune more than once appeared to desert our They have richly earned the rewards that have been flag. heaped upon them and they have but to thank their own
;
THE PESHAWAR
now
DISTRICT.
453
an accepted
Commissioner.
454
ARBAB MAHOMED
IIASAIN KHAN,
Mahabat Khan.
I
MOHMAND.
Ahmad Khan.
I
Rahmatula Khan.
I
Arsala Khan.
Mahomed Khan.
Juma Khan,
d.
1879.
Arbab
Fatah
Nawab
Sarfaraz
Lashkar Khan,
d.
Sadula
.1
Khan.
Savbiland
Mahomed
Afzal Khan, d. 1887.
Khan,
d. 1871.
Khan,
d. 18S6.
Khan,
d.
1868.
Ataula.
Abdula.
Ghulam
Ghulam
Haidar Khan.
Sher Eahadar Khan.
Sarwar.
Rasul
Mahomed
Azim Khan.
Khan.
I
Mahomed
Uniar.
Zakria.
Abdul Samad.
Ghulam Nabi.
Yaya Khan,
I
Arbab
Mir
Mahomed Hasmn
Khan.
Ahmad
Khan.
I
Akbar Khan.
Usman
Khan.
Yakub
Khan.
Said
Ahmad.
Aslam Khan.
Akram
Khan.
Alam
Khan.
I
Ayub
Khan.
Zaman Khan.
Bazmir Khan.
Peshawar district between the right bank of the Bara river and the Afridi hills. The leading men are styled Arbabs,
meaning lord or master, a title of comparatively recent Mahomed Hasain Khan and Azim Khan are the present Arbabs. Their ancestor Mahabat Khan was Malik in the reign of Shah Jahan. Four generations later Mahomed Khan received the title of Arbab, by which the Khalil Chiefs on
date,
455
other
side
of the
Mohmands have
Chiefs
British,
known. and
The
their
hav^e rendered
good
Khan and
to
on many occasions. Juma Khan accompanied Kohat when he was driven out of
service
in 1848,
Juma Khan's
looted by the
difficulty to
rebels in
revenge, his
territory.
women
escaping
with
Adam
Khel
After annexation
fines
Mahomed
Khan
cattle
helped
in the realisation of
P'atah
succeeded
the
the
Arbabship,
Ambeyla Campaign against the Hindustani fanatics, and made himself useful in conducting negotiations with the
Bonerwals,
on,
in
who were
border.
in
sympathy
Sir
with the
enemy.
Later
1S70, he accompanied
Adam Khel
served
us for
He
years
died
1871,
Mahomed
faithfully
Sarfaraz Khan,
who
many
and
well.
In 1857 he
commanded
the
irregular regi-
ment under Major Stokes, and did duty for two years in Hindustan, distinguishing himself on more than one occasion by his gallant behaviour. He also fought against the Kabul Khel Waziris in i860. In the same year he was appointed Kotwal of Peshawar city, and filled that difficult post for eleven years, helping to repress violent crime, and
doing much to check the system of assassination so
common
was on
on
this
border
in the early
He
one occasion instrumental in avenging the murder of Major Adams, Deputy Commissioner, by cutting down an assassin
when
was
in
the
act
of stabbing
his
victim.
it
Tahsildarship
offered
from his
in
ment
of the
Adam Khel
456
CHIEFS
and
in the
countries,
Adam
But
of
Khel
"VVaziris
villagers
his services in
with
the
;
troubles
1876-77
to
were
conspicuous
deemed
desirable
withdraw
the charge of the Adam Khel Afridis, been unsatisfactory. He, however, retrieved his name during the Jawaki Expedition which took place in the following year.
when the Basi Khel Afridis were heavily fined for down the fort which was being built by our officers at Jala Talao, the Arbab undertook to realise the money, and did so without the assistance of our troops. Arbab Sarfaraz Khan
In 1880,
pulling
He
exercised magisterial
powers
for
many
the
years.
of the
district,
Mohmand Arbabs
had collected
in kind.
They had
in
at Rs. 6,822
per annum,
much
larger.
The
at
loss
sustained
the
by them
made up by
bestowal of
yields
to the
an additional grant
Rs. 11,156.
and
sum,
Of
this
Nawab,
and the
remainder
subject
to
loyal
of the other
branch of the
on many occasions.
This
Sanad granted him in 1877 in the name of Her Majesty the Queen-Empress. On the death of Arbab Fatah Khan in 1871, juma Khan's age and character m.arked him as the man best fitted to fill the position of Arbab but he
;
refused to press
his
claims,
his
THE PESHAWAR
willingness to
act
DISTRICT.
457
as
the adviser
ever of his
nephews Government should be pleased to Sarfaraz Khan, then in the service, was thus dulyappoint. His uncle acted up to his word, and proved a nominated.
loyal friend.
most
His death,
in 1879,
was
a serious loss
to
whom
an able
and unbiassed
councillor.
also constantly
employed worked under Reynell Taylor. In 1867 he coerced the Kalar Khel Afridis who had attempted to build a small post in the plain near Banda Bazid at the mouth of the Kohat
Pass.
At Ambeyla he
He
died
shortly
afterwards
of cholera
at
Badabir,
where he held the post of Thanadar. Another of Juma Khan's sons, Mahomed Afzal Khan, did useful service in connection with the Kohat Pass blockade of 1875-76, and the
operations in the Jawaki country which
his brother Sarbiland, his
followed.
But, like
an
early
close
by
his death,
which occurred
Lashkar Khan, brother of the late Nawab Sarfaraz Khan, was for many years an Extra Assistant Commissioner. He retired in 1883, and has since died. His sons Ghulam Sarwar Khan and Rasul Khan are Naib-Tahsildars.
It
Khan was drowned in the Bara river in March, was succeeded by his son Mahomed Hasain Khan, and 1886, who was allowed three-fifths of his father's life-jagir of
Sarfaraz
five
hundred rupees
in
addition
to
the family
assignments
in perpetuity.
He
He
of
his
Deputy
in
Inspector,
connection
with
the
blockade
1876
in
the
Hasan Khel
was
charge.
War
he served
at Jalalabad as
458
an Assistant to the
at the close of the
and
his
campaign.
the
He
sildarship,
but
preferred
appointment of Inspector of
the Magistrate.
Chiefship in
1886.
He
is
now an Honorary
His younger brother, Mir Ahmad Khan, is employed in the Border Militia. His uncle Sadula Khan fought in the Mutiny in Major Stokes' Pathan Horse, and afterwards served for
some years
in the
Peshawar Frontier
Police.
the
on
but
man
was deemed desirable to have a strong and he was therefore superseded, as already mentioned, by his uncle the Nawab Sarfaraz. He is now an Extra Assistant Commissioner at Dera Ghazi Khan.
it
in
of
of Rs.
5,000.
He
Mahomed
valuable,
Afzal Khan in 1887. His serand especially so when the Afridis gave
all
the sec-
concerning
their
movements.
The Darbaris in the family are Arbab Mahomed Hasain Khan, second on the Peshawar list and Arbab Mahomed Azim Khan, nephew of Mahomed Afzal Khan.
;
THE PESHAWAR
KAZI ABDUL
DISTRICT.
459
1773-
Kazi
Mahomed
d.
Hasain,
Kazi Aladad
Kazi Abdul
1813.
Khan.
Rahim.
1
One
son.
Two
other
Kazi
Kazi
Kazi
|
Mahomed
Najib.
|
sons.
Mahomed Mahomed
Hasan Khan,
d. 1844.
Abdul
Khan.
Kazi
Sharif.
Khan.
|
Samad Mahomed
Kazi Sadula
Jan.
!
^1
One
son.
Kazi
Kazi Sher
Kazi Maho-
Two
Kazi Badarudin.
Kazi
sons.
med
I.
.
Jan.
( I
Kazi Wazir
Kazi Fakir
Kamarudin
Kazi
Kazi.Abdul Kazi .\bdul Khalik. Malik.
Ahmad.
Ahmad.
Kazi
Sadarudin.
Abdul Majid,
Kazi
Kazi
Fazal
Akram.
Kazi Abdul
Kazi Abdul
Kazi
J Kazi
.
Rahim.
Kazi Sayad Ahmad,
b.
Rahim.
Wahid.
Umrao.
Zafar.
CLE.
Kazi
Safil
1844.
Kazi Saifula
Jan.
Kazi
Amin
Rahman.
Kazi Abdul
Latif.
Jan.
Kazi Mir
Ahmad.
Kazi Ataula,
Kazi
Mahomed
Akbar.
Kazi Tila
,1
b.
Mahomed,
1823.
I
r
Kazi Kutab Kazi Fazal
Kazi Ghulam
Four other
sons.
Alam.
I
Kadar Khan,
d.
Kadar Khan.
I
1872.
Kazi Abdul
Rahman.
|
:
I
Kazi Abdul
Kazi
Nasirula Jan,
d.
Kazi
Amir
Jan,
d. 1882.
Kazi Abdul
Ghafar.
Kadar Khan,
b.
sons.
1858.
I
1832.
Three
I
sens.
1S68.
1
_\
I
I
Six sons.
Kazi Abdul Kazi Mahom- Kazi Abdul Rauf Khan. Ayaz Khan, ed liasain Khan.
I
Mahomed
Amin.
Ata
Kazi
Mahomed
Azim.
Kazi Alxlul
Mahomed.
Rahim.
I
Abdul Wasia.
Abdula.
Mahomed
I
Amir.
Kazi
Mahomed
I
Tan.
Kazi
Mahomed
Ghaus.
46o
The Peshawar
Daulatzai branch.
They took
Kandahar
Peshawar
plain in the
time of Sultan
their head.
Mahmud
of Ghazni.
Tenth in descent Khan, who took service under Ahmad Shah Durani, and accompanied him to Panipat. He v/as appointed Minister of
education with the
a learned man,
title
of Khan-i-Ulum.
several books,
in
The
some
His
Khan was
of which,
who wrote
still
demand.
office
on was conas
Khani-Mula
guished
in the^^reign of
He
also distin-
himself as a learned
Court of Kabul
Kazi
in
the
and
on a large
years Kazi
well
scale.
of Herat
known
in
His grandson Abdul Samad was for some and Abdul Samad's grandson is the Kazi Sayad Ahmad Khan, CLE., lately an
;
Attache
Government of
India.
Kazi Sayad
the service owing
Ahmad
to
suddenly
health
while
still
the
Mission
School at
He
Eleven years
He
the
Teke Turkoman country on the north-east border. He also visited the Yamut Turkoman Obah on the Gurgan, and Astrabad and the Afghan colony of Kara Tapa on the CasFrom Persia he was recalled in 1875 to take up the pian.
post of Attache in the fourteen years.
Foreign
Office,
which he held
to
for
assist
THE PESHAWAR
DISTRICT.
at
46X
Peshawar with the was attached in the following year to Sir Neville Chamberlain's Afghan Mission, and in 1880 he accompanied Sir x-^lfred Lyall, Foreign
Sir Lewis Pelly in the negotiations envoy of the Amir Sher AH Khan.
He
Secretary, to Kabul.
He
was rewarded
for his
services
;
on
in
Khan Bahadar
and
Another son of Mahomed Ghaus Khan was Aladad Khan, for several years Khani-Mula in Kashmir. Aladi^d's
second
other
son
Najib
Khan
Afghan
rendered
important
political
unknown
regions.
He
Kazi Mahomed Hasan Khan, grandson of Mahomed Ghaus, was one of the favorite Ministers of the unfortunate Shah Shuja-ul-Mulk. His son Ghulam Kadir took up his
abode
at
Peshawar
after the
An-
member
Kadar,
His eldest
is
man
of note in Peshawar
taking the
district.
and Kabul, and now stands as head of the Kazi Khel family, fifth place on the list of Viceregal Darbaris in the
Hecommenced life
and
later
as a Naib-Tahsildar in the Panjab, on became Minister of the Amir Sher Ali Khan,
who treated him with the greatest confidence, and entrusted him with all his secrets. He deputed him on one occasion on an important mission to Russian Afghanistan, which was
considered
at the
462
Second Afghan War, Abdul Kadir came over to the and rendered important services to Cavagnari and Sir Lepel Griffin, for which he was rewarded with a pension of Rs. 3,600 per annum.
In the
British
Abdul Karim Khan, fifth son of Kazi Mahomed Hasan Khan, accompanied Sir William Macnaghten to Kabul as confidential Munshi, and he was afterwards appointed to the charge of the Treasury. His son Abdul Rahman holds a
subordinate position in the office of the
Divisional Judge at
Peshawar.
Kazi Tila Mahomed, sixth son, is an Honorary Magistrate and a member of the Municipal Committee at Peshawar.
His son
as
Kazi
appointed an
;
1882
and acted
Mir Munshi for some years. He was a member of Sir West Ridgeway's Boundary Commission, and for services rendered, was decorated with the Order of St. Michael and
St.
George.
Mention may also be made of the late Ghulam Sarwar Khan, an Extra Assistant Commissioner, whose son Abdul
Rahim is serving as a Tahsildar in the Karnal district. Ghulam Sarwar's father was third son of Kazi Mahomed Hasan Khan.
THE PESHAWAR
DISTRICT.
463
< <
<
<
O
(1
t-J
<1
K
<^
K
!^
c/:
<
w o
pq <1 pq P^ <^
464
Arbabs are one of the most important Peshawar district. They acted for many years as the intermediaries between the British Government and
Khalil
families in the
The
and the
were practically
in their
hands previous
the
last
Kabul War.
now worked by an
officer
The
on the
of
Daudzai,
bank of the Bara stream. Their western boundary is the Khaibar, and on the north and east their possessions are enclosed by the Kabul River and the Badni.
north
for
The
Mohmands and
river,
formed
settled
south of Ghazni.
They
emigrated to Peshawar
the Indus.
in
the reign of
and with the assistance of that Prince drove the Dilazaks across During the administration of the Sikhs they held
their lands
this privilege
was conRule.
tinued to them
when
the country
came under
Farid
British
Khan
men
Khan, fourth
said
have received
as
the
Mitha Khel.
The
title
of
Arbab was, in the first instance, conferred by the Emperor Shah Jahan upon Asal Khan. This Chief rendered useful service, and was granted a jagir in Tapa Khalil, said to have yielded Rs. 60,000 and he was entrusted with the manage;
ment of the Khaibar and the tribes in its vicinity. His son Arbab Abdul Rahman, in the reign of Nadar Shah, held
465
way through
Abdul Rahman was succeeded by his son Nur Mahomed Khan, but not without opposition from his cousin Faizula,
who coveted
bouring
years
;
the Chiefship.
Faizula had
large
following,
neigh-
and he gave trouble in the Khaibar for many but he was at length slain, and his band exterminated
to
the
support of
The jagir was split up on the death of Nur Mahomed Khan into equal portions amongst Khan Gul
his son,
Khan,
Kadar.
and
his
brothers
Mahomed
Said and
Abdul
Mahomed Khan
of
Mahomed Khan,
title
the only
of
He
was
killed
in the battle
death
in
Teja
Singh shortly afterwards recalled the exiled Chiefs and reinThese were confirmed in 1849 stated them in their jagirs. Abdul Majid, by the British Government as follows Mahomed Amir Khan, Rs. 6,000 and Gujar Rs. 5,422
:
Abdul Wahad Khan had been killed when Colonel Lawrence was attacked at Peshawar in 1848 by the
Khan, Rs.
2,222.
466
soldiers. His son Mahomed Abas beinof but Arbabship was conferred on Abdul Majid Khan, uncle of Abdul Wahad. In 1851 Mahomed Amir Khan,
mutinous Sikh
child, the
sent
to
Lahore
hostile
as a
punishment
of the
for
members
later.
Mohmand
then in insurrection, to
two years
They were permitted to return Mahomed Amir and Abdul Majid Khan
in
were confirmed
resumed.
in perpetuity
The two
loyal
but
that of Gujar
further
permitted
to
hold
certain
lands
Abdul Majid was succeeded by his son Fatah Mahomed on whose death, in 1879, the Arbabship devolved upon Abas Khan, the present Chief. Abas Khan has always proved himself a good and loyal subject. In 1857, on the recommendation of Sir Herbert Edwardes, he was appointed Rasaidar in the 2nd Panjab Cavalry and he was present with this regiment throughout the siege of Lucknow, and afterwards for some months in Rohilkand, taking part in many engagements, in one of which he was severely wounded.
Khan
died
in
up his son Abdula Khan receiving Rs. 1,000, while Rs. 4,000 went to Fatah Khan and Abas Khan in half shares. Abas Khan and Abdula Khan belong to different branches of the family, and it is a standing grievance with Abdula Khan that part of Shahpasand's jagir should have been bestowed on a disIn 1874 Abas Khan retired from his regiment During the late Afghan on a pension of Rs. 540 per annum. Campaign he furnished forty-five sowars and retainers, and betant relative.
came responsible
467
and Tira Bazar, where our troops were encamped. Meanwhile Arbab Fatah Mahomed Khan had died, and Abas Khan
succeeded to the Chiefship of the Khalil Tapa with a jagir of In 1886 he was made an Honorary Magistrate, Rs. 5,111.
and
at the Viceregal
Darbar held
at
Peshawar
in
November,
Bahadar Khan, brother of Abas Khan, has served as a Deputy Inspector in the Border Militia since 1883, and has Nadar on several occasions rendered assistance politically. Khan, his nephew, is also an officer in the Border Militia.
Farid Khan, brother of the last Chief and son of Arbab Abdul Majid Khan, has not hitherto distinguished himself. His complaint is that he has been wrongly deprived of the Headship now held by Abas Khan, whose claims are, however,
Khan and
his
younger brother
is
He
the
of
Arbab
on
of
Khan
in 1872,
in
recognition
good
times rendered.
to Peshawar good wishes of the many officials who have known him by his uniformly loyal and straightforward conduct, and his readiness to perform any In 1878, especiservice demanded of him, however difficult.
He returned
in 1855.
He
has
won
ally,
he was most useful in recovering the large arrears of revenue due from Tahkal and other troublesome villages of the Khalil Tapa, and in settling disputes as to liabilities for
arrears.
Afghan War he came forward with good service both as patrols and in the carriage of express letters along the line of communications. Abdula Khan, son of Shahpasand Khan, died in 1S89.
During the
late
a body of sowars,
who
did
468
CHIEFS
He
fifth
The Viceregal Darbaris in the family are Arbabs Mahomed Abas Khan, Fatah Khan, Farid Khan and Aslam Khan, They live at Tahkal in the Khali! son of Samand Khan.
country.
also a
Viceregal Darbari.
THE PESHAWAR
DISTRICT.
469
(Grandfather of Khan).
Mahomed Khan.
Yusaf
b.
Ali,
Sabz
b.
Ali,
Sher
b.
Ali,
Hasain
b.
All,
1859.
1857.
1667.
1873.
Sardar
is
a descendant of Kino-
Nadar Shah, who was assassinated in 1747. Mahomed Khan's grandfather Imam Wardi Khan came to Peshawar with Sardar Ata Mahomed Khan, half-brother of the celebrated Fatah Khan, Minister of Mahmud Khan of Kabul. He was for some time in charge of the city, and acquired great influence amongst the tribes of the valley.
Sardar
bul
Mahomed Khan
after
first
Ka-
War, and
annexation of the
He
when
retired
his
in
per annum,
the grant to
of Laram.
rights
in
acknowledged by
To
these,
in 1876,
plots close
of Peshawar,
Rs. 3,600
per annum.
in the
He
is
Darbaris
Peshawar
district.
Of his sons, Yusaf Khan served with many years, and Shahbaz Ali was for some
Cavalry Regiment.
present serving in
time
470
I^\MALZAI, OF HOTI.
Fatah Khan.
Lashkat Khan.
I
Ahmad Khan,
d.
1850.
I
Mahomed Khan,
d.
1
85 1.
1853.
I
Sarbiland Khan,
d. 1872.
1853.
Fatah
b.
Mahomed
1882,
Dost
Mahomed
Khan,
b.
Khan,
1887.
Khwaja Mahomed
Khan,
b.
Sher
b.
AH
Khan,
1866.
I
1856.
Yakub Khan,
b.il
Fatah
b.
Mahomed
1877.
Mahomed Akbar
Khan,
b.
Khan,
1884.
The family
known
Sultan
at
One
of them,
Mahmud
in his
invasion of India.
His family
have
is
settled
Hoti when the Dilazaks, who held the country, were driven
Eusafzais.
out by the
Kamal
;
is
said to
this
held
lands
but
an unsupported
probably wide
of the facts.
as
On Kamal
Hoti,
Khan's
another
Khan
of
and
two branches which have and are known as Misharanzai or Shahbaz Khan showed Torus, and Kisharanzai or Hotis. his allegiance to the Emperor Akbar in 560, and was granted
Toru, thus forming
distinct,
since
been
47
He
Khan
In 76 1, when Ahmad Shah Abdall Invaded India, Fatah Khan, a member of the family, joined him with five hundred cavalry and a large force of foot, and rendered good service. This was acknowledged by a continuance of the revenue
1
contracts In his
favor.
In
1817,
during
the rule
Rs.
of the
12,000,
Mahomed
Khan, grandson of Fatah Khan, about this time opposed the invasion of Maharaja Ranjit Singh, as in duty bound, in the interests of his masters the Barakzal Sardars, and offered battle to the Sikhs at HotI but he was defeated and driven away He returned later on and made peace, and was to Swat.
;
In 1844
Mahomed Khan
again
at
Hoti
his
home.
the
offence condoned
;
for
he was a
and he was permitted This to return and enjoy a reduced jagir yielding Rs. 2,000. was continued by the British Government in 1849; but it
foe. In spite of his ill-success
dangerous
to
split
it
up between
Mahomed
each
Khan and
his
receiving one-half.
son Sarbiland.
him, and
in
Mahomed Khan died in 1851 and was succeeded by his The allowance of Rs. 1,000 was continued to
recognition of his services during the INIutiny he
of
Rs.
250,
the whole
made
Government
of India In
472
Lieutenant
the
life
of
during the
Mutiny,
sheltering
days
in
Hoti,
when
the re-
Bengal Infantry broke loose from discipline; and he helped to drive the mutineers over the border into
Swat, by inducing the villagers of the plains to harry them and
withhold supplies.
The men
numbers shortly afterwards, while attempting to make their way from Swat into Kashmir. Sarbiland further exhibited his
loyalty during the crisis
by furnishing
for
contingent
of ten
sowars and
in
fifty
footmen
service in Hindustan.
For the
Black Mountain Expedition of 1863, and again at Utman Khel, 1 865, he supplied a small body of horse and foot which proved
useful in
many ways
to
telligence of the
movements
enemy.
For
his various
services he
was on three
different occasions
rewarded with
He
in
is
was
and
his
death
in
1872 was
Viceat the
He
had
the
honor of a seat
Darbars.
Mahomed Khan
in
head of the
Rs. 1,250.
services,
family,
He
rendering personal
and he
regarded as a
man
hundred
received an
additional grant in
Mention must be made of the Mardan branch, at the head of \vhich is Shad Mahomed Khan. The jagir allowances of Fatah Khan passed through his son Lashkar to Ahmad, who became Khan of Mardan. He also enjoyed
jagir rights in the villages of
Shahi,
Nisata,
Gango, Tarna
All
in Hashtnagar, under the obligation of mainHe sowars and one thousand footmen. hundred taining five married the daughter of Inayatula Khan, Khan of Ranizai in Ahmad Khan was succeeded in 1850 by his son Mir Swat.
Afzal Khan,
who
of
annum.
He
did
good
annexation,
died in 1853, leaving an infant son Shad Mahomed to the guardianship of his brother Afzal Khan. Shad Mahomed
He
Khan, now at the head of the family, is of weak intellect, and his property is administered by the District Court of Wards. He receives an allowance of Rs. 500 per annum.
474
CHIEFS
475
allowance
of Rs. 1,200.
fifty
and he furnished a like contingent in 1865 against the Usman Khels, His services, when the district was being settled by the late Colonel Hastings, were rewarded with a mafi worth Rs. 244 in Mauzas Shev/a Khalil and Chak Khalil. Amir Khan was succeeded in 1879 by his
son
Mahomed Umar,
the
present Khan.
1,200
in
He
him
enjoys the
to
addition
his
to
as a special loyal
behaviour.
476
UTMAN BOLAK
Shujabat Khan.
1
Zarif Khan.
I
Shah Wall.
Ahmad Khan.
I
Mahomed AH.
I
Fazal Khan,
d.
Karim Khan,
I
1864.
I
Sharif,
Rlir
Ghazan Khan,
d.
d,
1888.
I
is
at
Gadun border, in the Utman Bolalc Tahsil. His grandfather Fazal Khan was an enemy of Arsala Khan of Zaida, who held this portion of the district under the Afghans, He rendered useful services to Major Abbott in Hazara, when
the
country
was
first
Ambeyla Campaign, furnishing at his own charges. He died For his father's services, Mir Ghazan Khan was in 1864. grantedaperpetual jagir of Rs. 1,748 in the villages of Muradabad and Gurkhan of the Hazara district. He further ensowars and
fifty
footmen
joyed a life-mafi of Rs. 180 in four Peshawar villages for serOn his death, in 1888, he was vices rendered at settlement. succeeded by his son Mahomed Akbar, the present Khan of
Topi, to
whom
in
Hazara
for
and Peshawar.
former prestige
He
;
much
of their
no near
relatives, the
dies.
Khanship
when he
He
is
a Provincial Darbari.
THE PESHAWAR
DISTRICT.
477
Jalal
Khan,
Naubat Khan.
j
t
.Sardar
Khalil.
Mahnmd.
Hainiciula.
I
Amirula.
Najiliula.
Habib Khan.
Khairula.
Bostan.
Manir Khan.
Alam
Khan.
Azam
Khan.
Bahrain
Ghulam
Khan.
Khan.
Khushal Khan,
l>.
1847.
Ahmad Khan,
d.
1841
Bahadar
Sher Khan,
^.
Mahomed
1S67.
Sher Khan,
6.
1S78.
Abdul
478
shared
seized, as al-
Mahomed Khan,
son of Sultan
Ma-
homed Khan,
subsequently
Barakzai,
Habib Khan
for
made
his
escape on
who
in
try,
Abbott
Hazara.
then
known
the
time
Deputy Commissioner of
illustrious
regiment
years
after
throwing
To
St
in
while
them.
fought
must
at
suffice
to
record
that
in five
besides
having
been present
and
around Dehli
his
years of 1857-58.
For
pay.
further
;
augmented
of 1S60
conduct
Bahadar.
He
for
many
Subadar-Major in the ist Panjab Infantry and the rank was conferred upon his son Khushal Khan out of special compliment to the gallant old man shortly after his retirement from the service in 1872. He lives at Khunda, near Attock, in the enjoyment of a well-earned jagir yielding
R.S.
2,950 annually,
and
of cash
allowances
aggregating
Habib Khan's name is on the list of Imperial His family is connected Darbaris of the Peshawar district. by marriage with that of Hund, one of the oldest in Eusafzai.
Rs. 1,350.
479
MAULVI MAHOMED
JAN,
OF KAFIR DFIERI.
Sadik Khan.
Mahomed
Ali
I
Khan.
Abdula AH.
I
Mahomed
I
Jan,
I
b.
1826.
1883.
Ahmad
b.
The family of Mahomed Jan of Kafir Dheri belongs to sub-division of the Khalil tribe, clan Umarzai. Baroza the When the descendants of Khalil divided their lands, a portion of the village
whole of Kafir
allot-
Dheri
fell
to Haji
Darya Khan.
but a par-
was ultimately effected by the brothers Akik Khan and Akram Khan. To the latter fell the site of the present But he was village of Kafir Dheri which he duly founded. obliged to abandon his lands shortly after, having been
worsted
in a fight
who
He returned in Shah levelled Kafir Dheri with the ground. village. During the Sikh re-built his and reign Shuja's
occupation he had again to seek safety
pressed for revenue which he was
in
flight,
being hard
Under
rounds.
British
no longer obliged
when
the tax-collector
makes
his
Mahomed Jan
is
a prosperous
landholder, enjoying a
cash maui of Rs. 200 per annum, together with half the reve-
at Rs.
450.
of the
Khan
of Lalpura,
who gave
of Kabul.
Khan
His name
on the
list
of Viceregal Darbaris.
48o
Akram Shah.
I
Afam Shah
d.
Abdul Kaim,
/;.
Musnnaf Shah,
d.
Hasain Shah,
b.
Nuriil
f'-
Hasan Shah,
1857-
1S52,
1858.
1845.
Hamayun,
Shah,
b.
Mahmud
Shah,
b.
Shujad Shah,
b.
Sultan
Shah,
1S63.
1862.
1871.
1886.
known and most respected They and their They are great property are safe among the wildest tribes. traders in timber, floated down the Indus, Swat and Kabul In 1882 rivers from Chitral and the Upper Hindu Kush.
family of Mians in
Eastern
Afghanistan.
family,
to
accompanied
Swat,
his
McNair
in
his
survey expedition
Bajaur,
by
personal
make
a saint,
His father Papa Mian, a man locally reputed as behaved loyally in the Mutiny and put in the weight
On
his death
in
1867,
Hasain
hun-
of Walai,
Tahsil
Naoshahra.
He
is
a Viceregal Darbari.
481
1879.
I
Zahta Khan,
b.
Umar Khan,
b.
1876.
1S78.
Dost
Khels.
Mahomed Khan
family
is
now known
from
;
as the
Kapur
the
his
The
emigrated
Kandahar
with
Eusafzais
when Aman
and from
two sons are descended the present houses of Daulatzai and Ismailzai. They were brought under subjection by Aurangzeb,
who granted
their
representative
Muhal Shah
a muajab, or
render in
con-
nection with the revenue collections and the general administration of the district.
His son Kapur took military service and enjoyed allowances said to have amounted to Rs 7,000 He had revenue charge later on of the Amanzai annually.
Tapa.
He
died in Hindustan.
His son Mir Afzal Khan was the was taken over by the British. He supplied a small body of horse and foot in the Narinji Expedition of 1857, and was awarded an annual cash allowance of Rs. 120, which was increased to Rs. 250, after the
mafis aggregating Rs. 69
in
Namdar Khan was recogKhan of the Amanzais. head man when the country
Ambeyla War.
He
was granted
Mahbub
in
rendered during
settlement operations.
in
was continued
is
now
the leading
man
of the tribe.
482
AKBAR KHAN OF
ISMAILA,
AjAB Khan,
I
UTMAN BOLAK.
Nur Khan.
i
Lashkar Khan,
I
> I
Amir Khan.
Ibrahim
Ismail
Khadi Khan,
d,
Khan.
I
Khan.
1854.
Aladad Khan,
d.
Khoidad Khan,
d.
1855.
I
r88o.
Mahomed
Khan.
Akbar Khan,
i.
1846.
I
Sohbat Khan,
b.
1872.
Rahmat
THE PESHAWAR
DISTRICT.
to Rs.
483
2,670
in
Tapa.
Government and he was declared Khan of He continued his services when the
;
and
tender his
expelling him in 1852 from the was allowed to remain in the enjoyment of his old cash allowances, which were, however, lost later on by his nephew Khoidad Khan, who was punished
new comers,
Khadu Khel
lands.
He
Penal Code.
1,000 per
Khoidad received
annum on being
same
year.
released
wife, and he died His nephew Akbar Khan, now at the head of the Tapa, enjoys the grant of Rs. 1,000 which has been continued in the family. He is described as goodin
again
in prison in the
But the
family
have
and
it
is
go back
to the elder
is
dies.
Akbar Khan
a Viceregal Darbari.
484
Mahomed
Said Khan.
I
Ghulam Khan.
I
iBRAmM
Khan.
I
Mahomed
Ashraf
Khan.
d.
18S7.
I
Khan.
' I
Mahomed
Abdula Khan,
6.
1866.
Hamidula Khan,
3.
Dost
Aslam,
d.
Mahomed
Afzal, d. 1882.
Mahomed,
6.
1886.
1878.
1883.
Khan
ranzai
Ibrahim,
Khan
Bahadar,
Khan
Hoti
is
the
leading
Toru being head of the Misharanzai branch. He is a descendant of Kamal Khan who came to this country with the Eusafzais from Kandahar and founded the Kamalzai Tapa.
During the reign of Ahmad Shah Abdali, some of the MaHks rendered service and were granted niuajabs Ibrahim Khan's foreand designated Khans of their Tapas. fathers were honored in this manner. He and his brother MaHk Ismail Khan are among the present Maliks of Mardan, having sprung from Malik Bara Khan, who was first recogEusafzai
nised as such
;
while
Khwaja Mahomed
;
is
Khan
of Hoti, as
Khan
known
took service as
as the
Havaldar
in
Sherdils.
He
was pro-
moted Jamadar in the Mutiny. In 1864 he was appointed an Inspector, and served as such at Amritsar and Peshawar. Six years later he was deputed to visit Yarkand in a semipolitical capacity. He was there imprisoned for some months, and was very near being hanged as a spy. In 1873,
he was again sent
to
Yarkand with
the
Mission
under Sir
THE PESHAWAR
Douglas
Forsyth.
DISTRICT.
485
His services were rewarded with the and he was created a Khan
;
Bahadar under the Viceroy's orders in 1874, receiving at the same time a life-jagir of Rs. 800 per annum in Chak Mardan. In 1875 he was promoted Assistant District Superintendent of Police, and in the same year he received a present of
Badakhshan and was deputed to wait upon His Royal Highness the Prince of Wales on the occasion of his visit to India in 1875-76; and he received a handsome gold watch and a
Rs. 5,000 for political services rendered in
Wakhan.
He
large
sum
of
money
He
ac-
was employed on various duties of a delicate nature; receiving on his return to India a life-jagir in Chak Mardan and Jalala, yielding Rs. 1,800 per annum. In 1883 he was appointed Commandant of the Peshawar Border Milita, and in the following year was attached to the staff of the Russo-Afghan Boundary Commission. For the services then rendered he received a valuable khilat from the hands of His Excellency the Viceroy in public Darbar and he was awarded He retired from the a cash imiajab of Rs. 800 per annum. service in 1888 on a special pension of Rs. 3,600 per annum. It was at the same time settled that Rs. 2,000 per annum of his life-jagir should be continued to any heir whom he might select, under the usual conditions of loyalty and good conduct. His brother Ismail Khan is an Ala Lambardar in Mardan. Sardar Khan, another brother, lately deceased, Maserved for some years as a Deputy Inspector of Police. homed Ashraf Khan, a younger brother, is now a Deputy Inspector in the Peshawar district and Abdula Khan, son of Ibrahim Khan, is an Inspector of Police at Amritsar.
companied
Sir
Lepel Griffin
to
Kabul
in
1880, and
Ibrahim
has served
Khan
is
man
well
of very
great
ability.
He
Government
and
faithfully
for thirty-five
years,
officer
486
CHIEFS
with
whom
to
he has had
a
letter,
relations.
The
following
extract from
Griffin
addressed on
his
in
the Panjab
Government
my
"In 1880, I specially selected Ibrahim Khan to serve on personal staff in Afghanistan. Here his assistance was of
I
Mahomed
my
staff,
to
proceed to
This service,
it is
had
to pass
tribes,
many
of
them
in-
exceedingly inimical to
But Ibrahim
Khan
terest or
danger
in
to influence
performance of services to
was able
in
to
deter-
mining the
political situation.
to zealous
and loyal
distinguished
like
Ibrahim
THE PESHAWAR
DISTRICT.
487
Fatah Khan.
I
Jalal
Khan.
I
Dalel Khan.
Bahadar Khan.
i860.
Mahabat Khan,
^.1798.
Nasir Khan,
b.
Karim Khan,
b.
1849.
I
1850.
1855.
L_
|
Fakir
Mahomed Khan,
h.
1883.
Taj
Mahomed Khan,
b.
Aminida Khan,
b.
1885.
1S88.
I I
I
Hamidula Khan,
b.
Sherdil
Taj
Mahomed
Khan,
b.
Khan,
b.
Aminula Khan,
b.
1870.
1872.
b.
1876.
1878.
1885.
1887.
Mahabat Khan is a Misharanzal Kamalzai, the early hisDalel Khan, tory of whose family has been already given.* section when Toru uncle of Mahabat, was at the head of the them consigave the Sikhs first moved up to Peshawar, and he
derable
trouble
as
against them.
brothers,
He
the
enemy
finally
and
after
some
further
family
broils
Khanship
He
was
and he received
discharged his
Rs.
as
He
duties
In Sikh power lasted. 1847 he was on Major Lawrence's side and helped with horse and foot during the rebellion which immediately preceded the
faithfully
long as
the
British annexation.
He
in
Eusafzai in
the early days of our rule, and served us heartily and loyally.
* Vide
of Hoti.
488
CHIEFS
Occupying, as he
many
share,
good fortune to was natural that he should have made enemies who
for his
fall.
were anxious
They on one
been instigated by
into
on by the Commissioner, and publicly declared innocent of the charge and in proof of
however, released
later
;
He was,
a handsome Darbar by the Chief Commissioner of the Province, in presence of the whole of the Peshawar Khans. He behaved loyally afterwards in the Mutiny, and took part in several expeditions on the border. His death in i860 was
khilat
in
public
in
receipt of an allowance
of
annum
has
and of
loyally
this
is
one-half was
continued
He
served
in
occasions.
He
was with us
the
1859, in
command
He also shared in the Ambeyla Campaign of 1863 War he was employed for some months in a subordinate political capacity. He was rewarded with a mafi grant in perpetuity valued at Rs. 430 per annum. He
his father.
and
in
is
Peshawar
district.
Bahram
in
to
enjoy a
mafi of Rs. 250 per annum, and this was increased to Rs. 310
in
Afgha-
nistan and
He
is
Provincial
scale.
Darbari.
also a mafidar
on a small
THE PESHAWAR
DISTRICT.
489
Shahdad Khan,
d.
1875.
Akbar Khan.
Azad Khan.
Sher Mahomed,
d.
Mahomed Haslam,
^.
Ghulam Haidar,
6.
1876.
1S82.
1884.
Azad Khan is a Sadozai Pathan of the Balar Khel section. family came to this country with the Eusafzais from Kandahar and founded Hund.
The
Biland
thers Ibrahim,
while Latif
Khan removed from Hund with his three broRahmatand Himat Khan, and settled at Zaida, Khan remained at Hund. This family is the
family,
in
Eusafzai.
Second,
the
first
Khan
to
refused
district
The Hund
branch, though
in political
Hunds,
who own
families
Indus.
The
became more completely separated in later years when Ibrahim was Khan of Zaida. Shahdad Khan, father
of the present Khan, succeeded at settlement in ousting of the smaller owners from their lands, and he
in
many
at
was murdered
the
consequence
in
1S75,
while praying
in
mosque
Hund.
property,
little
to
keep up the
in
He
and has
in
much
490
'
litiq-ation
half-brother
Akbar Khan.
Azad Khan,
in a law-suit,
in 1887, instigated
village for
and was, by the Commissioner, deprived, under the Frontier Crimes Regulation, of
his seat in Darbar.
of Rs. 300
and mafi of
He was
also deprived of
THE KOHAT
DISTRICT.
491
KOHAT
DISTRICT.
JAN.,
SARDAR SULTAN
<i-
CLE.
S.
Mahomed
Jamhur,
</.
S.
Shah Rukh.
III
S.
Kurban AH.
|
1869.
S. Jahangir,
(i.
5th
P C,
1865,
^. 1S80.
S.
Mahomed
Taifur,
4. 1883.
S.
Sultan
Jan,
1S40.
I
Mahomed
Azim,
d.
Mahomed
Shvvaib, Inspector of
Police,
i.
Mahomed
Shahr Yar Khan, late Jamadar
in 9th B.
Gkulam
Hasain,
i>.
Agha, Jan,
^.
1868.
C./.A'.,
i>.
1843.
i860.
1848.
C,
Mir Alam,
d.
d Jan takes
the
1885.
185S.
Sardar
Shah.
Sultan
leading
in
place
amongst
He
is fifth
descent
from
Timur
His father Shahzada Jamhur was a loyal and faithful subject, whose official career is deserving of detailed record.
Shahzada
Sultan
Khawar,
grandfather
of Shahzada
Province
He
Kabul when Shah Mahmud usurped the Throne. His son Shahzada Asad fled to Peshawar in 1830, and sought the protection of Maharaja Ranjit Singh, who treated him with
consideration, assigning lands valued at
for
Rs.
2,300 annually
Shahzada Jamhur's connection with the British dates from the First Afghan War, when he attached himself to Colonel Wade, who was proceeding to Jalalabad in Having borrowed as much charge of the Shahzada Timur.
his
support.
money
as he could on the security of his jagir, he raised a bodyguard of one hundred and fifty horse and two hundred
492
foot,
own
followers,
at
On
his return to
Peshawar
at the
end of the war, he opened up a correspondence with Mr. Currie, British Resident at Lahore, and kept that officer informed from time to time of the political movements in the
Valley, being one of the
tion organized
first to give warning of the insurrecby Sardar Sultan Mahomed Khan, Barakzai, and the Sikh Sardar Chatar Singh. He was suspected by
in
correspondence with
George Lawrence, who was then a prisoner at Kohat, and he was arrested and kept for some time in confinement. But on his way to Peshawar he managed to escape from his guard, and keeping to the Jawaki Hills, reached Attock in safety, where Lieutenant Herbert with a handful of Pathans was being besieged by Sardar Sultan Mahomed Khan. He remained with Herbert as long as the place held out, and refused to listen to Sultan Mahomed, who did his utmost to induce him to betray his Commander, even going so far as to threaten to murder the Shahzada's children under the walls of the
fort.
He joined
Army, then on
its
way
Rawal Pindi
posted
to
Kohat
as
Extra
closely
until
false
in-
He
the
On
Jamhur
proved himself a staunch adherent and devoted servant of the British Government. He studied our interests with zeal and
loyalty,
493
pendent tribes, winning them over by his surprising tact, even temper and intimate knowledge of their ways. Beside every
District Officer in succession, he took his place as chief adviser
in all
and none
to
reason
to
regret
having listened
Sir
his
experienced
counsels.
The
three Lawrences,
Herbert
have
all left
in
which they
his
held him.
hospitality
district,
profuse
and kindly bearing towards all classes, his honorable nature and honest ways, gave him an extraordinary influence over the wild people with
whom
he had to
in
deal.
He
of
frequently spent
money from
in private life
;
his
own
purse
furtherance
State interests
and generous
to a fault
It is
to the sale
house
in
estate.
The
2,000
to his creditors.
Govern-
a grant later on of
Rs.
CLE., Extra
in 1869.
Assistant Commissioner,
He
and
in
his
brother
Taifur
to
Hindustan
service in the
Ferries,
Muzafarnagar district, and afterwards marching with General John Coke, their old Deputy Commissioner, into Rohilkand, where the rebels were made to feel the folly of their ways. The charge
of Sultan Jan's troop on the guns at Mirganj near
said
Baraily,
is
by General Coke to have been one of the brilliant feats of the campaign. The Mutiny services of the Shahzada
Tah-
He
took part
in
the
Utman
494
Khel Expedition of
wards
in the
supplies,
and
after-
establishment of villages
the plains, in
the
room of those destroyed by our troops. He has held the position of Extra Assistant Commissioner since 1872, and has gradually assumed the place occupied in the old days by
his
lamented
father.
His services
in
connection
with
the
a khilat of
He
in
the Jawaki
country
in 1878.
At
to the
he was deputed
Kuram
Valley
as
Political
Officer
under Mr. Archibald Christie, who entertained a high opinion of the Sardar's merits. He was afterwards selected for the
difficult
Valley of Khost.
tribes
and somewhat dangerous charge of the newly-acquired But his rule was of short duration. The
to the to
to proceed
Kuram
Khost
to the
Amir
of Kabul, while
clans.
Kuram
Sardar's
to
the
local
The
whole campaign were exemplary, Khost is in no way due to his want of wis-
dom
in
counsel or action.
Valley he was
made
an additional jagir
lands in the
services
in
the
Kuram
Kohat
Tahsil.
again
visited
Kuram
to
Turis
in settling
their
outstanding cases
with the
Amir's subjects,
who were represented by Akhundzada Abdul Rahim Khan, Governor of Khost. He was awarded a khilat
of the value of Rs. 500 by the Panjab Government, and later on the Secretary of State for India sanctioned a further reward of Rs. 1,000 for his eminent services in satisfactorily In the following year he again went settling these disputes. to Kuram, and on his return again received a khilat from the
Lieutenant-Governor.
49$
originally
Peshawar district,
In
were substituted
for
;
payments
in
kind,
but this sum was found to be below what the Sardar had been receiving under the older system of collection, and the whole was brought up to Rs. 4,000 by
assessed at Rs. 3,315
an additional grant of Rs. 685 from the revenues of Tapi and Bakizai, Tahsil Kohat on which also is charged the
;
1,000,
for ser-
the
is
Rs. 5,000
The
whole
assignment of
Shahzada jamhur. Government has the power of requiring the holder to make suitpetuity to one direct heir of the late
members
of
;
the family.
The
income
relatives.
goes
towards
the
maintenance of
numerous
Mahomed
Shwaib,
brother of Sultan
Jan,
now
an
second
serving
is
in
the
in
Burma
Police,
and a
Dafadar
is
in the
Jan,
Sardar Wali Ahmad, uncle of Sultan Jan, was a RasalHe died in 1880, leaving dar in the 5th Panjab Cavalry.
no
sons.
is
tion
Another member of the family descrying of menMahomed Shahr Yar Khan, late a Jamadar in the 9th
Bengal Cavalry.
He
died in 1885.
496
NAWAB
d.
d.
1600.
Yahiya Khan,
1620. 1641.
1658.
Shahbaz Khan,
I
I, d.
Khushal Khan,
Ashraf Khan,
I
I, d.
d.
1682.
d.
Mahomed
Afzal
I
Khan,
1741.
d.
Khan
Shahid,
1748.
Sadal
Khan
Khushal Khan,
d.
Shahbaz Khan,
ancestor of the Teri Chiefs, d. 1799.
.Sharafat
Khan,
as the
1759-
known
Naih of Gumbat.
present Akoia
Chiefs.
Nawaz Khan.
Amir Khan.
I
Hasham Khan.
Ajab Khan.
Nurula Khan.
Asaf Khan.
I
Naib
Said Khan,
Naib
Khan.
I
Mahomed
Khan.
|
Mahomed Mahomed
I
Najaf Khan.
Mahomed
Sadik
Khan,
Ghaus Mahomed.
Khan.
Khwara.
I.
Mansur.
Hasan.
Nasir,
d. 1S12.
Abas Khan,
d.
Khawas
Khan.
1828.
Nadar
Ali.
Biland.
Arsala.
I
Khushal.
Hasan Khan.
Biland Khan,
jagirdar of
Murlaza
Khan,
(/.
Karim Khan.
Shahbaz.
Rasul.
Jahangir.
Fatah
| |
Ji^ng
Sher
Mavvaz,
d.
Khushalgrrh.
Khan.
Mahomed.
A.bas
Nawab
Sir
Khwaja Mahomed,
b.
Khan.
I
K.CS.L,
1822.
Ghafar
Taj Khan,
b.
Namwar
Khan,
b.
Zakria
ipin
Khan,
b.
1856.
I
Khan,
b.
Khan,
b.
1887.
^.1843.
I'-
1S48.
1853.
1856.
1857.
1858.
Abdul Hakim Khan, I'- '876. Mahomed Umar Khan, Ayub b. 1S79. Khan,
II
b.
Ibrahim
b.
iSSo.
II
Khan,
Khan,
b.
1882.
b.
1886.
1856.
1S62.
b.
1863.
497
The
The
Akoras and Teris. The Akora Khataks are settled in Peshawar a;id the north-eastern corner of the Kohat district, comprising the Nilab, Khwara, Zira and Patiala Tapas.
The
Teris are in
subordination to the
in the
Nawab
of Teri,
who
is
In
district.
The
first
home
of
Bannu, near the Pir Ghal peak, whence they emerged in the fourteenth century, and settled on the left bank of the Kuram River near it? junction with the Indus. Thence they were pressed into the plains by a fresh exodus
from Shwal,
this
who
finally settled
in
Bannu.
the Bangashes,
whom
enriched his tribesmen by organthem into bands for making raids on their neighbours whenever this might be done with tolerable safety. It is said he had a particular aversion to Hindus, and that it was
Aku was
an able ruler
who
izing
filled
with
the
This
is
no doubt a
his-
libel;
is
torian
who
Aku had
when he
Akbar
crossed the
Indus Ferry
his
at
Bagh Nilab
in 1581.
He
on
this
occasion
made
498
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
Peshawar. Akbar accepted his apologies and placed him charge of the road between Attock and Peshawar, allowall
pack-animals
in
in return for
safe
conduct
the
possession he had
taken of a
He now built a fortified in the Charat Range. Akora near Peshawar, which gave him command of the country between the Kabul and the Kuram Rivers.
From
his people north of the
Jawaki
hills
he took produce
according
to to
;
was also a source of considerable profit to him deal. for he levied a handsome royalty on every camel, donkey and Altogebullock-load that left the mines at Jata and Mangla.
ther,
Malik
of the prominent
men
of his time in
and he is still revered by his tribe as the Chief who brought them all they have since possessed
the northern Panjab
and enjoyed.
Bolaks.
He
was
killed in
1600,
fighting
against
the
the next
Khushal Khan, who flourished forty years later, was Khatak Chief of note. He served in the armies of
in
Shah Jahan
in
repressing the
of
He
is
said to
having written a number of Persian poems of considerable merit. He received honors and rewards from the Emperor
Shah Jahan
enmity
who was
at
in
was ultimately released and sent back to look after the Peshawar Valley, which had But the relapsed into a state of anarchy after his removal.
He
THE KOHAT
hardships
to
DISTRICT.
499
spirit.
which he had been subjected, left him without had lost his power of command, and did little to His grandson Afzal ruled the tribe for sixty restore order. years. He was a clever man, with literary tastes, and was
He
home
of the
Khatak Nawabs,
Shah,
rose
to
importance
in the reign of
Ahmad
who
received
sub-
stantial assistance
he invaded
India
1748.
by the
Emperor
branch.
as
Khan
Khan
took over the southern country and became Chief of the Teri
in
Ahmad
in
was
killed in battle at
Hasan Abdal
Sadat
1759,
when Ahmad
little
Khan
so
distinguished
country as
far as Jhilam.
title
on him the
known.
of Sarfaraz
generally
The
family history
Nawab, and
is
of no interest except
to
the tribesmen
themselves.
They
the
ShahzadaMahomed Sultan, brother of Mahmud Shah, was then Governor of Kohat. He was driven out by Firoz Khan of Akora, and with him Nadar Khan of Teri. But Nadar had a strong backing amongst the Khataks, and was enabled, after a brief interval, to return to Teri and dislodge his cousin Arsala, whom Firoz Khan had set up in his place. Nadar was murdered three years later, in 1827, while saying his prayers in a mosque and the Chiefship passed to Shahbaz,
;
He
was
in his
turn
ousted
500
to
being spHt
Sikhs on
up
to the
to the
Afghans on the
other.
claimants, secured the assistance of the Maharaja Sher Singh, who sent him a detachment of Sikh troops from Bannu, enabling him to turn out Biland, after whom he held
posthumous son of Khushal Khan, who was murdered in 1S24. He was at the head of the Khataks when Reynell Taylor marched through Kohat
with a detachment of Sikhs fromPeshawar in 1848, and he has
Khwaja Mahomed
Khataks.
At annexation
he obtained the lease of the Teri Tahsil at Rs. 31,068 per annum. This amount was soon afterwards lowered to
Rs. 25,000; and in
1851
the
Ilaka
was leased
rates
to
him
at
life,
and
in
were conperpetual
;
made
recognition
late
Afghan
Nawab
The
Chief and
are
of 1848,
time to
time
received,
worthy of detailed
notice.
still
War
when
he actively opposed
the
officials
and keeping them informed of all that passed annexation he lent Reynell Taylor every possible in keeping the wild and lawless mountain tribes in then Deputy 1 85 1 he accompanied Captain Coke,
;
and
after
assistance
order.
In
Commis-
sioner, on his expedition into the Miranzai Valley at the head of over two thousand men to collect revenue from the Upper Bangashes, whose allegiance was claimed by
Sardar
Dost
Mahomed Azim of Kuram, on behalf of the Amir Mahomed Khan. The Sardar was prepared with
THE KOHAT
a large
DISTRICT.
to
501
make good
the claim
The
Khan
foot
and one hundred and fifty horse, and rendered himself most useful as a political adviser and military Chief; while
from the
fertile valley
Owing
moved
check.
to a
Waziri raid
in
in
salt
November
made
semi-indepenfor
and they
in
some
well throughout,
all
down
the
opposition.
He
assisted
in
fort
and
in
Kohat by
also
armed
followers.
The Khan
in
The military road from Kohat Rawal Pindi was practically in his charge as far as Khushalgarh, and he was always prepared to march with a force of two hundred horse and four hundred foot in any required
the Afridi robbers and raiders.
to
direction.
undertaken
1855,
Chamberlain,
in
1851.
The
Khan
number
of followers,
munication.
a third
and did good service along the line of comIn 1856 the Miranzai Valley was the scene of General Chamberlain passed up military expedition.
into the
Kuram
men and
14 guns to
502
exact compensation
in British territory.
assisted with a
Khatak
levy,
his advice
Khan
with his
own clansmen
;
Bahadar Khel and the posts of Latamar and Nari, thereby and he despatched a consetting free the military garrisons tingent of horse and foot to Peshawar, remaining himself in attendance on the Deputy Commissioner of Kohat. "It would
have been impossible," Edwardes writes, " for any Chief to He took charge of forts for us, entered into behave better. all our anxieties and arrangements as if they were his own,
punished the disaffected, repressed
false or
alarming rumours,
For these services the Khan received a khilat of Rs. 5,000, and the lease of his territory in perpetuity on a nominal The title of Khan Bahadar was also tribute of Rs. 20,000.
conferred on him.
Force of 4,000 men and 13 guns under Brigadier Chamberlain, assisting with his levies and
Kabul Khel
for
VVaziri Field
Government
of
India.
Khwaja Mahomed Khan's long and unwavering services to the notice of Government in 1871. He was honored with the much-coveted title of Nawab, and was created a Knight Commander of the Most Exalted Order
In 1876 he had the privilege of being presented to His Royal Highness the Prince of Wales, and of
of the Star of India,
When
the
Nawab
much weakened by
'
503
age to take the personal part he would have felt proud to assume a few years earlier. He, however, detailed his son
Mahomed
Zafar
Khan
to
command
the
Khatak
levies,
who
remained under arms until the final submission of the Jawakis, and did good service throughout. The Nawab and his son were publicly thanked by the Lieutenant-Governor in a
Darbar held
the
at
Kohat
in 1878.
Nawab
furnished over
During the late Afghan War two thousand workmen for the
camp defences
at Thai.
body of two hundred men under command of Nawabzada Mahomed Zafar Khan, to hold the posts on the line between Kohat and Thai, patrolling the road with sowars
also sent a
;
He
fifteen
for
transport purposes.
Mahomed
Khan
between Thai and Alizai during the Zamusht Expediof 1879, and added to the good name he had already
acquired as
commandant of
the
Expedition.
The Nawab's
third son,
was
in
months.
of the
charge of the Kohat road labourers at Thai for several A fourth son was employed with Sir Frederick
to
Roberts
Kabul on behalf
land
is
put
down
at Rs. 54,000,
Rs. 21,800
away
as ina7n
and
baj'at to relatives
and
His
in the
four
Tapas of
Seni,
Khawaram,
each
The system of collection varies a good deal sub-division. The Seni and Khawaram villages are
almost
all let out for fixed sums either to the proprietors as a body or to individual holders. The Teri Tapa lies round the Nawab's own head-quarters. In a few villages he takes in
504
kind direct
who
as soldiers
During the late Afghan War the demand for men, both and labourers on the Kuram line, was in a great measure supplied by the Nawab. They were liberally paid
very unpopular
1880, large numbers of the Barak Khataks who were thus employed entered a practical protest by running away to their homes. The movement
;
officers,
in
March,
rapidly
developed into an
Nawab's
execute
authority.
became
difficult
to
south of Teri.
Prisoners
and the
In orders of Government were practically set at defiance. the into heart marched of force the Barak small counAuo'ust a
try,
pacification of the
Lawaghar
tract
was not
more
The Baraks
insisted that
they had
been driven to rebellion by the oppressive nature of the Nawab's revenue system and as his arrangements were found to
;
be out of harmony with the settled tracts in his immediate vicinity, a fresh assessment was made by the Deputy Commissioner, which has apparently
parties.
given satisfaction to
both
The Nawab's
;
Tapa
lieu of
which he and
his ancestors
were proved
to
have
ing
in,
Nawab enjoys a percentage on Bahadar Khel and Nari Salt Mines, bringon an average, Rs. 3,300 per annum.
unfortunately finds
it
The Nawab
impossible to
reduce
in
and he remains
THE KOHAT
embarrassed
circumstances
to
DISTRICT.
the
505^^
notwithstanding
liberality
him by Government. As head of an important clan, he is expected to keep open house, and his kitchen hres are never cold. His hospitality is proverbial, even in a country where this quality is regarded almost as a religious
obligation.
aways shown
He
in
Government
an additional
had to accept a loan of Rs. 35,000 from 1870; and twelve years later he borrowed
of Rs. 60,000.
sum
Of
this
latter
liabilities
sum about go
in
all
on increasing.
within the
He
limits
He
is
aided
his
work by
ally
his
second son
Mahomed
Zafar Khan,
Zafar
regarded as the
of the
Nawab's
heir.
good
close
Afghan
War
is
of
Khan
Bahadar.
He
he superintends the revenue business of the Tahsil. Of the Nawab's remaining seven sons, the most prominent are
The former
The old Nawab has latterly given Governor's Darbar List. up attending public functions. His son Mahomed Zafar
Khan
the
most prominent
in
man who
is
Mahomed
annum
connec-
cousin
of
is
the
be-
in 1880,
and
the
disturbances
after
He
had
left his
home immediately
He was
pending.
mur-
dered by
hill
still
So6
BAIZAI
Azmat.
I
alias
Najabat.
I
Zabardast
alias
Musahib.
.1
Nawaz Jang
I
Kulj Khan.
Azizula.
I
Sher Ali,
1^.
1844.
Sher Mahomed.
I
_
|
Nawab.
Umar Khao.
I
Ata Khan
Ismail
of Mitj.
Ata Mahomed.
I.
Zakria.
(
Fatah Khan.
Haidar.
Sharabat.
Nawab Bahadar
Sher Khan,
d. 1880.
Kamar
I
I
I
Ali.
Mahar
Ali,
/
I
I
1843I I
I
I .
Saidal
i.
Jala!
i>.
Khan, Khan,
1862,
D.
I.,
Khan,
d.
1865.
1868.
d.
1876.
Khan,
1876.
1843.
^-
1848. Border
Militia,
i>.
i860.
J
Ali
^.
1853.
Mahomed
Khan,
i>.
1879.
L
i.
1887.
Jandar Khan,
d.
Ayub Khan,
1886.
1884.
Mahomed
Afzal Khan,
d.
1873.
Faiz
Mahom1870.
Yakub Khan,
l>.
ed Khan,
1885.
L
Khush
6.
Ehanan Khan,
i>.
Ibrahim Khan,
d
1884.
I
1879.
I
I
^. Taj
i.
Mahom- Aswar
Khan,
i>.
Mana-
Nasar
Zabardast
ed Khan,
1864.
I
Mahomed
Khan,
d.
Khan,
Khan,
b.
Khan,
d.
1S84.
Khan,
i.
1870.
Pir
1872
I
1882.
1882.
1886.
1S86.
Nasar
Mahomed Khan,
d.
Mahomed Khan,
d.
1883.
1887.
The Bangashes
cent from
They
claim
des-
Khalid, a
tribe of
Kureshi,
THE KOHAT
whose children
driven thence at the
DISTRICT.
507
They were
commencement
by Changez Khan Mughal, and passed through Sind into Hindustan. Ismail Khan, one of their headmen, was appointed Governor of Multan, where his oppression gained him the
roots, by which title have been known ever since. He and his people excited the enmity of the neighbouring tribes, who drove them off. They retired to the Suliman Mountains, and eventually settled in Gardez, moving fifty years later into
name
of
Bangash, or tearer-up of
his descendants
the
Kuram
Valley.
This immigration
They pushed thence and ousted the Orakzais from the country about Kohat, aided by the Khataks, who were simultaneously invading the district
zais previously held the
The OrakPatiala
country as
eastern
The Khataks
Zira
;
took
the
Ilakas of Resi,
and
of Kohat.
This acquisition had been probably completed beThe lands abandoned by the Bangashes in Kuram were taken possession of by a new tribe,
the Turis,
who
gradually obtained
are
now
The Bangash
settlement
to
tribe
first
have been divided into the Upper Bangashes of Miranzai or Hangu, and the lower Bangashes of Kohat.
The
rule of the
of the
most
intermittent character.
The
perpetually varying,
themselves.
and they were always at war amongst to have been all along
Occasionally a powerful Chief, with the
almost independent.
to the
Kuram.
of
5o8
thus said to have ruled Peshawar and Zabardast Khan of Kohat during the reign of Timur Shah was ruler as far as Biland Khel when the Hangu family were tem-
Hangu
the time of
Nadar Shah
Matani
is
far as
in
porarily expelled.
thing
Khan Sher Khan, the first Baizai Bangash of whom anybeyond his name, flourished in the time of is known
Aurangzeb, during the last half of the seventeenth century. Haji Bahadar Shah, founder of a famous shrine in the town
of Kohat, was his
and fixed a
assessment
and
this
afterwards
right in
land.
killed in the
in
Hindustan.
He was number of
fate
was
to suffer
death at the
family distinin
hands of
their successors.
would be
step by step.
Few
;
of the
the
deemed
disgraceful
is
given
in
Ahmad Shah
Abdali
to
for
Khan
good
service.
Zabardast,
who
flourished
renowned of the
Biland
Khel on the
quiet.
Kuram
into
for
some years
comparative
to follow him,
and the
country lapsed
until 1810,
This lasted
when Mahomed Sultan, brother of Mahmud Shah was appointed Governor of Kohat, and the Baizais lost their semi-independent position. Sher Ali Khan, murderer of his cousin Azizula, at one time Chief, now became the
of Kabul,
leading
man
generally
THE KOHAT
daughter
Sardar Sultan
jagir in
DISTRICT.
509
He
married
tained the
district in
had obsecured
Sher
AH Khan
in
unusual then
consideration
all-powerful
hands of the
Sardar,
who was
succeeded
1844 by his
later
fell
but
he was recalled by
in
charge
Kohat
the side of
the local
close to
officials.
In 1853 the village of JNIir Ahmad Khel Kohat, which had always been held by the Khans
of Lower Bangash, was bestowed in jagir on Bahadar Sher Khan and his brother Ata Mahomed Khan, in proportions
of nine-tenths
and
one-tenth,
respectively,
at
the
The
grant was
made
Deputy
Bahadar Sher Khan was also confirmed as jagirdar in several garden plots in the Tapa, yielding annually about Rs. 400; and the British Government
Commissioner might
He fully recognised him as Chief of the Lower Bangashes. proved of much assistance to Coke in the early days. On the occasion of the Basi Khel disturbances in 1855, he was deputed to protect the mouth of the Kohat Pass, and co-operate
with our troops at Aimal Chabutra and Fort Mackeson.
This
in
effect,
checking the
men
of
Akora
an
for the
own villages. For this service he received 300 from the Chief Commissioner of the In 1857 Bahadar Sher Khan placed himself under Panjab. the orders of Sir Herbert Edwardes at Peshawar, who
wrote of his loyalty
in
He
raised
and
5IO
Kohat
whom
it
was
essential
to
guarded the Court House, the Treasury, and other important buildings, and held Fort
He
Mackeson, Aimal Chabutra, and the line of road from Peshawar to Kohat. Sir Herbert writes " Bahadar Sher Khan is the natural head of the Bangash clan, extending along twothirds of the Kohat district, and the whole length of the Af:
ghan Valley
character
;
of
Kuram.
He
is
man
of great
;
personal
full
daring,
of
observation of public
and dexterous
for nine years
all
in
the
art
of
managing
friend
faithful
hill
tribes.
He
;
is
or
stout
foe
and as
he has been a
his
the campaigns on
has
now crowned
this
great
On Edwardes' recommendation Bahadar Sher Khan's Mutiny services were rewarded with the title of Khan Bahadar. Hisjagir of Rs. 1,400 was brought up to Rs. 3,000 per annum
and made hereditary
;
and
his
He also
received
The
payment of Rs. 350. In 1862 this latter sum was released for the life of Bahadar Sher Khan, to be treated as table-money
for the
The Khan was made a Magistrate in 1874 and he was granted the title of Nawab in 1877 in connection with his services
during the Kohat Pass rupture of 1876-77,
Expedition of 1877-78.
The Nawab
He
kept his
THE KOHAT
border
in
DISTRICT,
in
511
war when our troops could have been ill-spared to enforce the demand, collected a fine of Rs. 5,000 from the Hasan Khel Afridis without the firing of a shot. Not a single offence was committed on the portion of the line of communications between Kohat and Thai held by the Road Police under his command. He was also forward in procuring transport for the columns advancing into Kuram and Kabul. His services were duly brought to notice by the Deputy Commissioner but the Nawab's untimely death prevented any recognition
being made.
disease.
He
died in August,
1880,
suddenly,
of heart
eyes
of the
his tribe.
He
was
and inhospitable, and usually succeeded by craft rather than by open honesty of purpose. Owing to a disagreement with the Deputy Commissioner he
self-seeking,
had resigned the charge of the Kohat Pass a few weeks before his death. The duties are now undertaken by the Deputy Commissioner without any intermediary assistance from the members of the Nawab's family.
As
of Mir
the Nawab took rent in kind from the villages both Ahmad Khel and Kharmatu, his actual jagir revenues
were largely in excess of the official estimate. His income from jagirs, landed property and allowances at the time of his death, was put down at about Rs. 11,000, made up as
follows
:
Hereditary lands
SI2
To
this
may be added Rs. 2,400 from house property One half was set apart for the main-
tenance of his three widows, while the remainder was divided amongst the Nawab's nine sons. The family no longer enjoy the Pass and sumptuary allowances.
Rustam Khan,
the
was selected
and
in
to
succeed
Nawab
recognition of his
rights
in
father's services
the
Crown
lands of Kharmatu.
of the jagir and proprietary rights, have been expressly forbidden under the terms of the grant. Government retains the power of selecting an heir
;
it
and followers,
and otherwise
The
title
of
Nawab
died with
far,
Rustam Khan's
father.
The
a high place for himself and his tribe in the estimation of the
District Officers.
his services
An
attempt was
made
in
1883
to
utilize
by conferring magisterial powers upon him; but he is not given to work, and he appears incapable of performing any of the important duties which devolved upon his
father.
service.
Only two of the late Nawab's sons are in the public Sher Dil Khan is a Tahsildar in the Peshawar district, and Usman Khan holds the post of Deputy Inspec-
tor of the
Kohat Border
Militia.
Ata Mahomed Khan, brother of the Nawab, was for His services were transeio'ht years a Naib-Tahsildar. ferred to the Border Militia in 1878, and he retired four The quiet years later on a pension of Rs. 720 per annum. state of the Baizai Samilzai border during the late Afghan War is said to have been mainly due to the personal exer-
513
and hard work of Ata Khan, who had charge of the this line. He and his nephew
are
all
Usman
work
of
reported to
the
Khans
in the
wrote the
late
The
efficiency of the
Border and Road Police are almost entirely due to the perFor these services sonal supervision of the Khanzadas."
jagir
of Rs. 1,200
100
of
Mir
is
Ahmad
The
He
died
March,
1888.
question of continuance
under consideration.
sons.
Ata Mahomed
the eldest,
is
left
nine
Taj
for
Mahomed Khan,
Assistant
an accepted candidate
is
an Extra
a
Commissionership, and
of Police.
employed
to
He
is
married
Khan.
SI4
d. 1793.
Mahomed Azam
Khan,
d.
Khan Bahadar
Khan,
d.
1823,
"
I
1829.
Nakshband,
d.
Ghulam
Muhaiudin Khan.
Ghulam
Rasul
Ghulam
Haidar
1823.
Muzafar Khan.
Khan.
Khan,
Alayav
Khan,
b.
Mahomed Akram
Khan,
b.
Ghulam
Ghulam
Muhaiudin,
b.
Mahomed
Khan,
b.
1S45.
1847.
1858.
1852.
1855.
Mahomed
Abas Khan,
b.
Abdul
Ghafar
Mahomed
Ali
Bahadar Sher
Mahomed
Zakria
Khan,
b.
Khan,
b,
Khan,
b.
Khan,
b.
1877.
1S87.
1865.
1867.
1876.
Sultan
Khan,
b.
Abdul
Sher
Ali
Fatah
Abdul
Aziz
Rahman
Khan,
d,
Khan,
b,
Mahomed Umar
Khan,
b.
1871.
1877.
Khan,
b.
1876.
b.
Khan,
1885.
1883.
1873.
1887.
Sarwar
Fakir
Mahomed,
b.
Nasar Khan,
b.
1840.
b,
Khan,
1851.
1865.
1S68.
iSSi,
Mahomed
Zafar Khan. b. 1869.
Mahomed
Alam Khan,
b.
Mahomed
Ayub Khan,
b.
1875.
1877.
Mahomed
Azim Khan,
b.
Ghulam Hasain
Khan,
^-
Mahomed
Ibiahim Khan, b. i88i.
Mahomed
Unis Khan,
h,
1870.
I
1875.
1S76.
1886.
1887.
Khushal Khan,
d. l\
Mahomed
Sharif Khan, b. 1867.
Nakshband Khan,
b.
Mahomed
Amir Khan,
b.
1885.
1S8S.
DISTRICT.
515
visit
He
as
all
sent
foraging
parties
far
as
the
Indus.
he obtained.
Then he marched
up the Valley towards " Bangash." On reaching a narrow gorge, the tribes crowded the heights, raised the war-shout
At
last
they foolishly
occupied a
was Babar's opportunity. He sent a force to cut them off. About a hundred and fifty were killed and many prisoners taken. These put grass in " I their mouths in token of submission, as much as to say am your ox " a custom which Babar first noticed here. Notwithstanding, he had them beheaded at once, and a minaret
the
open.
Now
of their heads was erected at the camping place. The next day he reached Hangu. Here again he met with resistance. The Afghans held a fortified post which was stormed by
Babar's soldiers,
who
some hundreds of
us
them
for
another
minaret.
Babar
gives
In two
no
further
marches from
for
Hangu he
marched
Bannu
The
Bangash
is
tribe has
been
al-
ready given.
The Khan
to
of
Hangu
;
in
possession of several
far
Sanads given
1632, from the
his
ancestors
one dating as
back as
the
in lease
Another in 1700 from Aurangzeb confers the lease of both Upper and Lower Miranzai on a
net revenue of Rs. 12,000. The Khans belong to the Mardu Khel section of the Umarzai Bangashes of Miranzai who occupy the whole of the Hangu Tahsil. The Chiefship has remained in the same family for the last three centuries, the
5i6
Mahomed Khan died in Azam Khan, father and Mahomed was succeeded by 1793, of the present Chief When Nawab Samand Khan gained possession of Kohat, he continued Mahomed Azam as a Kardar under him but after some years they fell out. Mahomed Azam had carried off grain from Babarmela, which was claimed as a portion of his revenue by the Nawab, who marched against him to Hangu and demanded compensation. By the advice of Shahbaz Khan, Shinu Khel the Chief surthan
is
usual
on
this frontier.
Wall
was speedily broken and he and two of his sons were taken to Kohat and put to death. This was in 1823. During the period of twenty-five years between the death of Mahomed Azam and British annexation, the Miranzai Valley was generally more or less in a state of anarchy. The revenue was
collected through a succession of contractors,
also
be-
tween the family of the old Chief and that of Naib Darwaza, a Lambardarof Togh Miranzai, whose descendants still live there
as zamindars.
used to
live in Tira,
the Miranzai
The Hangu Khans when out of possession and bring down the Orakzais to raid on villages and the town of Hangu itself was
;
alternately besieged
by the hostile
after the
factions.
When
the Ba-
Kohat
battle of Gujrat,
Ghulam
Haidar Khan, the eldest surviving son of Mahomed Azam Khan, was put in by Lieutenant Pollock as lessee of Lower Miranzai. In 1851 he was deprived of the farm, but continued as Tahsildar on a fixed salary.
In
of the
1855 complications
in
murder of Ghulam Haidar, who was Khan of Hangu as well as Tahsildar. The appointment was bestowed upon a stranger by Captain Coke, Deputy Commissioner, and this
relatives of the
office as hereditary.
They had no
in
up the Samil sections of the neighbouring Orakzais, with whom in the old days they had habitually taken refuge when hard pressed by the Governors of Kohat and the
;
whole
was soon in a state of ferment. A force under Colonel Neville Chamberlain was accordand they attacked the Rabia ingly despatched to Hangu
of the Miranzai border
;
Khel
strongholds
in
the
Samana
Valley
Mountains,
while
a
the the
party of
villages
the
Khankai
behind.
After
this
Orakzais submitted.
The Commissioner, Colonel Edwardes, Muzafar Khan being appointed Tahsildar of insisted on Hangu in the place of his brother, and the title of Khan
was conferred upon Alayar Khan, minor son of the murdered Alayar Khan, however, has always remained in the background, and his uncle Muzafar Khan is practically
Chief.
Khan
by
of Miranzai.
father,
;
was continued to Alayar Khan and made perpetual and some mafi lands, now assessed at Rs, 366, were
his
Alayar
Khan
is
a Superinten-
Mines, drawing a salary of Rs. 150 Muzafar Khan, for services during the Mutiny,
500,
hereditary,
Government having
the right to
select an heir.
In 1881 Muzafar
Khan was
granted a further
allowance of
of the Govern-
assignment of
Rs, 1,200 for
Rs.
1,200,
and a sumptuary
life.
He
ment lands
greater
in
adjoining villages.
In
;
the
portion
he takes rent
in
kind
but in
some
lease
The
518
is
held during the pleasure of Government. income may be roughly estimated as follows
Hereditary jagir
Profits in kind
The Khan's
Rs.
1,564
1,500
1,200
Cash assignment
Sumptuary allowance
Profits
1,200
3,000
Salarv as Tahsildar
3,300
Chamberlain avenged the death of his brother Ghulam HaiDuring the Mutiny he used his influence to in 1855.
;
maintain order and when called upon to proceed to Peshawar he obeyed the summons without hesitation and placed a considerable body of horse and foot at the disposal of the Deputy
Commissioner.
He
took part
in
both Kabul
Khel Waziri
a settle-
effectingr
ment with the insurgents. Again, in the late Afghan War, he managed the tribes in his neighbourhood with success, and was instrumental in supplying large gangs of labourers for works on the roads and on the various Military Posts along
the border.
He
hand during General Tytler's operations against the Zamushts But of late years his conduct has not given satisfacin 188 1.
tion to the local authorities.
Muzafar Khan's second son, Sarwar Khan, accompanied in the first phase of the
as a Political Assistant.
Kabul War, and afterwards worked in the Kuram Valley Baz Gul Khan, eldest son of Muzafar
for a short period a
Khan, was
He
has recently
incurred
the
displeasure
Another son, Fakir Mahomed, has recently received a commission as Jamadar in the 2nd Panjab Cavalry.
519
Of Alayar Khan's
is
four brothers,
Ghulam Muhaiin
udin
the
district
Levies.
and Ghulam Mahomed Khan is a Jamadar of Local Mir Alam Khan was in charge of a section of the
late
Afghan War.
520
1773i
Aladad Khan.
I
Amanula Khan.
I
J793-
Shahwali Khan.
I
iSSo.
Said,
Mahomed Akbar
Khan.
I
1840.
b.
1842.
Ishak Khan,
h.
Ilasain
/;.
Khan,
1871.
1878.
Mahomed Anwar
Khan,
/;.
Amanula
Khan,
b.
1872.
1882,
1SS7.
tiahomed
521
Important duties
outside the
of his jurisdiction.
He
received a
INIahomed
to
the
British
troops
Kuram
in 1878-79,
and in Khost, rendering assistance in the negotiations with the Kabul Khel Waziris, Turis and other tribes. In the second stage of the war he accompanied Sir Frederick Roberts to
Kabul, and was present
at
Char Asiab.
He
was afterwards
deputed as
force
Political Officer
was detached
to
December 1879, he was summoned by the Deputy Commissioner of Kohat to accompany him to the Zamusht country.
His sound counsel, great personal influence and staunch loyalty
are reported to have
materially
contributed to
the
success
which attended the negotiations with the tribes. The satisfactory settlement which was effected with the Alisherzais and Mamuzais, measure
at a
and exertions.
he received the
Rs. 1,000.
of
Khan
at-
of the
phase of the
late
Afghan War.
and
his
The
three sons of
manage-
succeeded his
political
Upper Miranzai
Zamusht
Border.
During the
Afghan
War
he rendered assistance
management
of the Waziri,
322
and Orakzai
and
in the
Said Khan, served in the Bannu and Kohat districts as Deputy Inspector and was employed under the Political Officer at Thai during the Afghan War. He is a man of marked courage, intelligence and coolness, and was favourably reported upon by the Officer Commanding the i8th Bengal Cavalry when in April, 1880, a party of the regiment hunted up and successfully attacked a large band of Waziri raiders at
son,
The second
Mahomed
Mardani,
He
also did
useful
service
in
the
raid
on the
Zamusht
village
of
Dand by
the
i8th
Bengal
in
Cavalry,
Government
a compli-
mentary parwana.
Akbar Khan,
Tahsildar of
the
youngest brother,
was employed as
two years of British occupation, and was much liked by the officers under whom he served.
for the
Kuram
in
He
is
not
now
Government
service.
Having regard
to
of the services
rendered by
the unswervdisplayed,
have on
all
occasions
annum
Khan Usman
Khan, subject to the deduction of a maintenance allowance of The question of a continuance Rs. 800 for his two brothers. of the jagir after Usman Khan's death was left unsettled
;
but
it
was ruled
to
that
in
the
be continued
them
direct for
life.
Usman
son,
Mahomed
Border
Sadik Khan
Militia.
is
Deputy Inspector
Taj
the
Kohat
is
Another
Panjab
Mahomed Khan,
Dafadar
in
the
5th
523
is
Viceregal
Darbari.
Usman Khan
villages,
thousand
acres
in
twelve
and
Hangu
524
Sakandar Khan.
i
Asfandyar
Mahomed
Ali Khan.
Ata Khan.
Khan.
I
Ghulam
Haidar Khan,
d.
Fatah
I
Ali.
1887.
Mahomed
Hadi Jan.
^^
1843.
1836.
Abdula Khan,
b.
Abdul
Mir
Mahomed
Eusaf, b. 1887.
Sher
Ali.
b.
Ahmad,
b.
Mahomed,
b.
1859.
1882.
1884.
1888.
Abdul Ghafar,
b.
1882.
Ghulam Ahmad,
b.
Abdul Miran,
b.
Ahdul Wahab,
b.
1887.
1888.
1883.
Ghulam Hasain,
b.
Ghulam Hasan,
b.
1869.
I
1870.
I
Musa Khan,
b.
Ghulam
b,
1886.
Ali, 1887.
Sher
Mahomed Khan's
killed
in
grandfather,
in the reign of
and was
lad
1828
at
Zaida,
He
Sardar
Sultan
Mahomed Khan
lieu of his
services as
his
Jamadar of
body of
horse.
He
accompanied
but returned
when the country was quiet, and in 1854 accepted the lease of a waste tract lying beyond the Toi stream,
south of Kohat, in which are
now
THE KOHAT
DISTRICT.
525
Shahpur and Baman. He took up his abode in Shabpur, and in 1871 was awarded a mafi of one hundred bigas in lieu of a larger plot he had been holding without sanction in Zaramela. By his energy, influence and good example, Ghu1am Haidar Khan induced many of the tribesmen
against thieves and lawless characters.
cuts,
to settle in
tract
He
constructed water-
leased to him.
of actively display-
Fatah Ali
conduct
took service
in
promoted
before
to
Rasaldar
Dehli,
and again
Rohilkand.
Ghulam
Haidar
in
Sher
Mahomed was
sent with
Louis
Cavagnari to Kabul,
massacre by the accident of temporary absence at Ali Khel. He and his brothers were afterwards detailed to assist in laying out the new cantonments of Shalozan in the Kuram
Valley.
Sher
an
Honorary
In 188
r,
family
during the Afghan War, Ghulam Haidar's mafi grant was increased to two hundred and fifty bigas, and he received a
present of Rs. 3,000 in cash.
of the
He
died in 1887.
The
leases
Shahpur and Chambai, which were held in life-tenure by the deceased, have been continued to his The brothers are owners of about one thousand acres sons. in five villages of the Kohat Tahsil, and they are lessees of
Crown
villages of
526
same
Tahsil.
in
Sher
Mahomed
accompanied
Mr.
Udny
to
Kuram
between the Amir's subjects and the Turis, and did good
service, for
of
Rs. 400.
THE KOHAT
DISTRICT.
527
528
Shah
Coke
in
the
had great influence with the Jawakis and the eastern Afridis, whom he was often able to He restrain from committing raids upon British Territory.
early days of annexation.
also helped to re-establish
hills
He
many
the
He was government. nominally a Thanadar, and drew the pay of the appointment until 1855, when he was sent to Hangu as Tahsildar in the
old days
when
there was no
settled
room
of the
by the Chief Kabul on some special service. During the Mutiny he was employed in Hindustan with Coke's Rifles, and was killed in battle near Aligarh after having He was conserved consistently and loyally for nine years.
dered.
Commissioner
Sayad Badshah, half-brother of Mubarak Shah, was not known on this Frontier. He also v,^as nominally a Thanadar but he was practically the Deputy Comless
favourably
missioner's right-hand
man
in all
conduct
of political
cases of difficulty.
a family
much venerated by
immense advantage
whenever a complication arose. During the Jawaki Expedition, however, he was suspected of having intrigued with the section opposed to Nawab Bahadar Sher Khan, whom he wished to discredit, and he was removed in consequence to the Peshawar district. In the Afghan War he was appointed an Assistant Political Officer at Jalalabad, and in this capacity he rendered valuable service in provices were usually requisitioned
men
British
THE KOHAT
DISTRICT.
529
Government, and in advising the Political Officer and the Governor of Jalalabad in various matters. Sir Lepel Griffin
brought these services to notice as especially deserving of acknowledgment. He was given the title of Khan Bahadar.
in
and became an
Kohat.
Honorary Magiscommandant of
annum
but
He died of heart dishe did not hold the appointment long. He had succeeded his brother ease in September, 1885.
Mubarak Shah
in the cultivating possession of
a large tract
village
now forming
the
of
Jarma, Tahsil Kohat. This plot, which had been irregularly given to Mubarak Shah by Captain Coke, was in reality Crown land, and was so declared at settlement and assessed
at Rs. 2,000; possession being left with the
Banuri Sayads.
In recognition of Sayad
made over
in
proprie-
Sakandar Shah. He is a young man of some promise, but has so far had no opportunity of rendering- service. His name is on the list of Provincial
Darbaris.
530
Ajab Khan.
Hasain Khan.
Muitza Khan,
d. 1871.
Karim Khan.
Bii.AND
h.
Khan,
1835.
Sadula Khan,
b.
1870.
Muhabnt Khan,
b.
1S82.
1874.
is
Akora Khatak
Before annexa-
Murtza Khan held the villages of Khushalgarh and Khwaza Khel, Kohat Tahsil, in jagir. They were a portion of the large jagir held by Afzal Khan of Jamal Garhi, Peshawar, Chief of the Akora Khataks and previous to 1854
;
Murtza Khan had been obliged to struggle for his rights Murtza Khan died which Afzal Khan wished to over-ride. but the succession to the jagir had been previously in 1871 confirmed to Biland Khan. He resides at Amir in the Khwa;
He
holds for
life
probably be continued
in the family.
He
receives a per-
Khan was
for
Superintendent.
The
jagir
is
In 1885, Biland
Khan was
for
annum
in
compensation
Khwaza
is
He
is
man
of consider-
in a
position
to assist in
matters
He
works
He
is
a Provincial
531
JILANI.
Sayad
Sufi Ali
Shah.
Shah Mahomed
Ghaus.
I I
Chan Badshah.
I
Jafar Shah.
Sayad Kasam
Shah.
Gul
Badshah.
Sayad Ghulam,
b.
Haji Shah,
b.
1848.
1853.
Azizudin, b. i860.
Makhdum Shah,
b.
Shah Zaman,
b.
1858.
1863.
Makhdum Shah
is
a Jllani
Ahmad
Shah,
who gave
Mak-
One
of his grandsons,
Mahomed Ghaus,
district,
settled in
where the family is still influential. The other, Sayad Amir Shah, remained at Kohat, and was granted the Chach (Rawal Pindi) villages of Haji Shah, Mansara and Jamga, by King Shah Shujah while the Amir Dost Mahomed Khan gave him Mansur Khel in the Bangash Ilaka of Kohat, and the Khatak Chief later on added another village to the Sayad's possessions. One of
;
his sons, Karim Haidar Shah, was killed in a quarrel with some Sikh soldiers in his own mosque situated near the Kohat
springs.
Kasam Shah,
at the
;
revenged
serious
his
death
by putting himself
the Sikh
head of an excited
in
At
possession
of several
These
532
They
them revenue-free and are still in the family. and the sons of Sayad Kasam Shah are also in the enjoyment of Rs. 400 per annum in the shape of cash grants. Of his six sons, the most noteworthy was Sayad Gul Badshah, who had considerable influence with the Orakzais, and always used it in furthering the wishes of Sayad Makhdum Shah is his eldest son. the local officials.
were confirmed
are assessed at Rs. 172
;
He
receives an
allowance of Rs.
100 per
annum
besides his
These grants include a village in the Mishti country, and another, Resi, given them by the Khatak Nawabs. Sayad Makhdum Shah
is
a Provincial Darbari.
533
alias
(ancestor of the
Akora Khataks).
I
Narula Khan.
I
Asaf Khan.
I
Mir Hamza.
I
Najaf Khan,
I
Jafar
d.
Khan,
1883.
Fatah Mahomed
Twelve other
sons.
Khan
b.
of Nilab,
1849.
was a scion of Akora Khatak Chiefs. In the scramble that followed the Sikh conquest of Peshawar he obtained the Nilab Tapa in jagir. During the Second Sikh War he sided with the Sikhs but he was confirmed at annexation in possession of his jagir, which was valued at Rs. 2,178, and consisted often villages. Three of these, lying east of the Indus, were afterwards transferred to the Rawal Pindi district. The jagir was increased to Rs. 3,000 in 1852 by a cash grant of Rs. 822 to Jafar Khan to be re-considered after his death with a view to the grant being made perpetual during the good behaviour of his successors. In the same year the three villages transferred to Rawal Pindi were
Jafar
Khan,
jagir, a
in perpetuity.
Khan
sent
some
levies to
Naushera and Peshawar during the Mutiny, and on return was granted an additional pension of Rs. 822.
Up
to 1878 Jafar
Khan
income
in kind,
in addition.
These
534
latter
when cash
illegal.
rates
were
intro-
Compensation was afterwards awarded the owner in the form of a payment of Rs. 15,400. The annual loss suffered by Jafar Khan was
duced and the cesses declared
estimated by the Deputy Commissioner at Rs. 2,800.
Jafar
Khan
took
little
For many
Mahom-
He
the
Government
pension.
and hereditary
He
father as a Viceregal
Darbari.
535
53<5
Ahmad Shah
of Kabul (1747 to
1773),
he received
Sanad declaring
his,
Tapas of
Isa
;
the future
were to be paid him yearly as a charge upon Marwat and Bannu, on condition of assisting in collecting the revenue of those districts. From this fact we gather incidentally that Marwat and Bannu never paid revenue to the most powerful king that ever sat upon the throne of Kabul and
;
that
obliged
to give the
Khan
one-half
in
and bring
the
remainder.
When
Khan died, Ahmad Shah conKhan Zaman in the above privileges. Khan
Dalel
pre-
Zaman
ceiving a present
still in
Ahmad
Shah, which
is
Timur
Shah's
reign,
subject
the
furnishing
of
twelve horsemen
the
Nawab
;
of
of the
Khan
Zaman's son
tainship
down
to one-quarter
He
acted as a Kardar or
Agent
of the
Nawab
in
the
southern villages of Isa Khel, and increased the revenues by excavating the canal now known by his name, and bringing
new
lighdy assessed
by the
Nawab
one-sixth
the produce.
He
continued to
improve the
THE BANNU
seven-eighths of the collections,
DISTRICT.
^
little
leaving
for the
his family.
;
Ahmad Khan
de-
murred in subscribing to the terms and he was reported to the Lahore Government as a dangerous rebel by Diwan Lakhi Mai, who then had charge of the Derajat Province. A force was sent to eject him, under command of Sardar Fatah Singh Ran and Raja Suchet Singh. Resistance would
have been fruitless. He fled to Kot Chanda in the Khatak Hills, and thence to Bannu, where he was hospitably received by Sher Mast Khan, Chief of the Jhandu Khel. He died
shortly afterwards in exile.
Nao Nahal Singh had received kindness at the hands Ahmad Khan, and refused to support Lakhi Mai's policy
crushing the clan out and out.
He
insisted
on appointing
brother of the deceased Ahmad Khan, to the and privileges of the Chieftainship. But the Diwan He persuaded Shekh Imamudin, had his revenge later on. who was marching through Bannu and Marwat at the head
Mahomed Khan,
rights
full
of
a.
make
carry
Mahomed Khan away. The measure was not a comSome of Mahomed Khan's children were taken plete success.
prisoners
;
to
the
hills,
off to
Peshawar,
Nao
Nahal's
feet,
who was
subordinate
to risk
to
Nao Nahal
running counter to his express wishes. Yet Edwardes records a third attempt on the part of Lakhi
his wrath in so often
Mai
cess.
Khan,
this
He
538
Lahore by
his
father to
offer
and his arrest was actually effected as the unsuspecting youth was on his way back to his own country, clad in a dress of honor which had been bestowed on him by Prince Nao Nahal, Heir-Apparent to the throne. The Sardar sent him prisoner to the Diwan, who kept him in close confinement for over two years, at the same time confiscating the whole of the
revenues of the Chief of Isa Khel.
to
Mahomed Khan
"
all
again
fled
"
managed
Mahomed Khan had in the meantime lost his good friend Nao Nahal Singh, who on the day of his father's funeral was
himself killed by the falling-in of the palace gateway at Lahore
as he passed underneath.
Singh, however,
took up the case, and ordered Lakhi Mai to send his prisoner
Shah Nawaz
in
to Lahore.
He
home
company with Malik Fatah Khan Tawana, then about to Marwat country. start on a tax-collecting expedition in the
his
Fatah Khan's orders were to reinstate the Chief of Isa Khel on way to Bannu. But the Diwan refused to recognise the Malik's authority, and Fatah Khan returned to Lahore
Ahmad Khan
in possession.
Thither, too,
Nawaz
door
and cry ineffectually for justice. "Such," writes Edwardes, " was the state of the authority of Ranjit's successors
on the distant frontiers of their Empire " But, as Shah Nawaz told Edwardes, "It pleased God that the Raja Dhian Singh and his Royal Master should both be murdered " and
!
their
Ahmad
Khan's
restoration,
though
at
Malik Fatah
Lahore when Maharaja Sher Singh met with his death, and he was suspected of having joined in the conspiracy
Khan was
539
to get away in the Jhandu Khel, on the Kuram, where also was his friend Ahmad Khan, outlawed under the orders of the Diwan. The Wazarat at Lahore had devolved upon Raja Hira Singh after his father's murder but he in his turn was assassinated by Sardar Jawahar Singh, uncle of the Maharaja Dalip Singh, who speedily re-
He managed
moved Lakhi INIal from the Dera governorship and restored Fatah Khan to favor. But Mahomed Khan's trials were not yet over. Jawahar Singh, who would have helped him, was
murdered
at the instigation of his sister, the
Rani Jindan, by
Wazarat, and handed over the Dera Province to Lakhi Mai's son Daulat Rai. He was, however, removed shortly afterwards by Sir Henry Lawrence, to whom Edwardes had furnished a full report of the father's iniquities, of which the Isa Khel troubles were but a sample. General Van Cortlandt, the new Governor,
the
lost
who assumed
no time
in
restoring
Mahomed Khan
to
his patrimony,
which he enjoyed without further worry for the remaining six years of his life. Edwardes had championed his cause throughout; and the old Chief proved his gratitude shortly afterwards
in the
Second Sikh War, and doing his best His son INIahomed Alam was in
Khan
was killed in attempting to cut his way out. Mahomed Alam was taken prisoner and carried away across the Indus by the rebels, who did not release him until after the battle of Gujrat. His brother Mahomed Ayaz Khan
latter
them
to
abandon
their attack
on Fatah Khan
were unsuccessful. He afterwards joined Reynell Taylor with his younger brother Sarfaraz, and did good service in the
attack on Fort Lakhi
active
;
Mahomed Khan
supplies
lent
and
useful
assistance
forwarding
and
S40
The
faithful
was
killed in
Kaneri, on the
it,
at the cannon's
mouth.
awarded a pension of Rs. 500 per annum with a jagir of similar value, and the title of Khan Bahadar was conferred upon him.
Mahomed Khan
died
in
before
between
Government
shares,
but reduced
The
:
jagir
.. ..
.
Rs.
419
1,064
mem-
for special
Mahomed
Ayaz Khan placed himself under the orders of the Deputy Commissioner of Bannu at the head of a body of Sowars of his
own
raising,
and
Hariana Field Force under General Van Cortlandt, were present at the actions of Hissar, Phatauli, Mangoli and Jamalpur.
Abdula Khan's bravery was conspicuous throughout, and his gallant conduct was rewarded with the thanks of Government. He was present at the Siege of Lucknow, as Rasaldar in the 3rd Sikh Irregulars, and took part in the subsequent operations in Oudh, frequently receiving the commendations of the General Officers under whom he was serving. On one his squadron, he occasion, after being out all day with met with a party of the 6th Foot, who were returning weary and prostrated with to camp in the evening,
541
He
at
Mahomed Abdula Khan resigned his commission in i860. had been awarded the Order of British India with the and a jagir accompanying pension of Rs. 360 per annum was bestowed upon him of the value of Rs. 600. He was appointed a Tahsildarin 1868, and was promoted to an Extra Assistant Commissionership six years later. He retired in 1887 on a pension of Rs. 1,520 per annum, and now works as an Honorary Civil Judge and Magistrate. He has at all times rendered good service. During the late Afghan War he equipped one hundred Sowars for service on the border,
He
number of camels to the Transport Department. He holds the title of Khan Bahadar, and he is one of the leading Darbaris of the district. His son Ataula
besides furnishing a large
Khan
is
a Naib-Tahsildar.
Sarfaraz
Mahomed
Khan
of
resigned in
1858,
after
the
pacification of Hariana,
jagir
of
title
Khan Bahadar.
on
He was
Shahpur
man
Nar
lands,
he
had a grant
revenue.
the
yielding a
handsome
Mahomed Ayaz Khan died in 1887. His second son Hakdad Khan is a Jamadar in the 15th Bengal Cavalry. Khudadad Khan, grandson of Mahomed Khan, is a Deputy
Inspector of Police at Kohat.
Khel.
Khan Abdula, Khan Bahadar, is the present Chief of Isa His nephews, Abdul Rahim and Abdul Samand, are
;
and his brother Abdul Satar and Viceregal Darbaris nephew Abdul Rahman, have seats in Provincial Darbars. Abdul Rahim married the only child of the late Sher Khan of
542
Isa Khel,
to
be worth
Rs. 50,000, in 1884. Mr. Thorburn, in his Settlement Report, writes of Sher Khan " He is the sole surviving descendant
Khan Zaman. His father Hasan Khan was Umar Khan's right-hand man. At his death Sher Khan was a child. Grown up, he sided with the Sikhs, and did not share in the long exileof the other branch
in the
male
line of
of his house.
On
their reinstatement
Mahomed Khan's
sons
quence Sher Khan has been their bitter enemy ever since. During the Second Sikh War he was shut up in the Bannu Fort
with Fatah
taken prisoner on
In the
its fall,
but re-
Mutiny he did excellent local service as commandant of IMounted Police, and was rewarded with a pension of Rs. 600 a year. Altogether he now receives an annual pension of Rs. 1,360. He is still an active old man. His whole life has been one loni? conleased after the battle of Gujrat.
tention.
ed man.
his former
He will die as he has lived, a struggling, disappointHe has been hitherto unable to convert his pension
and in this settlement some of the misdeeds have been lost to him."
fruits of
into a land-jagir,
543
Malik
Alayar Khan,
d.
1863.
Muzafar Khan,
d.
Ambaz Khan.
18S5.
Sultan
Mahomed Khan.
Kala Bagh, the home for generations of the local Awan this part of the is one of the most ancient towns in It owes its existence to the celebrated salt quarries Panjab. close by, and the extensive alum works, which are carried on in the town itself The Indus Ferry, too, below the town,
Maliks,
on either
side, has
helped to
draw a considerable
this
The town
on the
It
hill-side, at
has the
name
of being hot in
summer and
unhealthy.
centuries ago.
The Awan Maliks are said to have come here about three They at first squatted on the barren rock of Dang Koh, a natural fortress a short distance above stream
from Kala Bagh, where the people of the neighbourhood were wont to take refuge when they had reason to dread the Band Ali, grandson of approach of a powerful enemy.
Shekh Adu,
the
first
Awan
settler,
took possession
of the
parts,
Chief
in
these
and alum, and taking tribute from the Bhangi Khel Khataks occupying the hills north of Kala Bagh. The Awans continued to hold their own after Band All's death in spite of temporary reverses. They
lived, as did their neighbours, in a perpetual
state of unrest,
544
sometimes victorious, often on But they continued to make way, and gradually acquired lands in the plain and founded vilTimur Shah, towards the end of the last century, relages.
fighting
for existence,
round
cognised
as head of the Kala and allowed him Rs. 1,200 annually for keeping his portion of the road open between Kabul and Dehli. The grant was continued by Timur's successors. Malik Ali Yar
Bagh
Ilaka,
Khan was Chief when the Sikhs annexed the district He was made responsible for the revenue, and had
an annual tribute to the Maharaja
the revenues of the
in 1822.
to
give
of
two
horses,
eleven
and
two-fifths of
Masan
The countenstrengthen
Khan
to
and
extend the hold he had lately acquired on certain Cis-Indus villages, and his family generally benefited largely under the comparatively secure rule of the Lahore Darbar. Ali Yar
made
with
at
Bannu,
He helped
men and
Muzafar Khan under Edwardes' command of a body of horse of his own raising. Muzafar Khan afterwards held the inner Bannu Fort with Malik Fatah Khan Tawana, whom Edwardes had left in charge of the district when obliged to proceed in all haste to Fatah Khan was killed in trying to cut his way Multan. through the Sikh soldiers who hemmed him in but Muzafar Khan surrendered and was carried prisoner to the main army
garh, and
orders in
at
Gujrat, where he
was allowed
to
purchase
his
liberty
During the Mutiny, the Maliks exhibited active loyalty. Muzafar Khan and his son Yar Mahomed raised about a hundred followers, and placed themselves at Edwardes' disposal in Peshawar.
the charge
THE BANNU
of one of the city gates.
title
DISTRICT.
545
Muzafar Khan was rewarded with Khan Bahadar. Another brother, Ambaz Khan, remained at Bannu with some levies under the orders of Captain Coxe, the Deputy Commissioner, who was carryingthe
of
settlement of Trans-Indus
tracts
as
if
He
;
officials
and his services were especially useful during the late Afghan War, when he furnished a number of animals for transport purposes, and helped with supplies
border matters
route. He died in 1885. His son, who head of the family, served at Peshawar as a Dafadar during the Mutiny, and he has always stood beside his father when there was work to be done. He enjoys an annual income of about Rs. 11,000, made up as follows
along the
is
Kuram
the
now
at
Rs. 6,190
Alum works
at
Kala Bagh
.,
4>5oo
Miscellaneous
,.
S^o
He
in
is
in
Bannu.
For the
each case succeeded to all the property left by his father, the younger sons taking only a maintenance allowance. This arrangement was legalised by our Courts shortly after
annexation
in
a suit brought by
some
of the younger
members.
546
MIAN SULTAN
ALI,
OF MIANWALI.
Mian Zakaria.
I
Ali
Mahcmed.
Chara_t;h
AH.
Hasain Ah,
Mahar Ah.
Sher Ali.
11
Alt.
I
Murad
Ali.
Bahadar
Ali.
Two
other
II
I
I
Gliaus Ali.
Sharaf Ali.
Six other
sons.
sons.
Sultan
Ali.
Nasar
Fazal Ali.
Abas
Ali.
Mardan
Ali.
Ali Sher.
Ali
Ahmad.
Mubarak
Ali.
Abas
Ali.
Hayat
Ali.
Maluk
Ali.
Sultan Ali.
Amir
Ali.
Mahomed
Hayat.
Haidar Charagh.
Sardar Ali.
Sher 7aman.
Mardan
Ali.
Hayat
Ali.
Fatah Sher.
in the
Gakhar
times,
is
'He gained
in the country by yoke of the Gakhars. fulfilled, and the Gakhars were His son Sultan Zakaria was
many
years,
and
is
gifts.
In 1847,
Mahomed
All's three sons, Charagh Ali, Murad Ali and Ghaus Ali, were in power, and rendered assistance to Edwardes in settling a blood feud which had until then cost
many
lives annually.
into the
holdings of the
THE BANNU
the
DISTRICT.
in
547
equal shares
be
re-considered
on the
death of
as
for
the
holder.
By
translated
many
tions,
years.
however,
the
orders
of
Government
were taken.
Sanction was given in 1879 ^^ ^^^ continuance of a jagir of Of this amount, Rs. 660 was to be Rs. 1,200 to the family.
held by all the members on ancestral shares, and the remainder as sardari allowances by the leading men for the time
Ali,
helped Edwardes
difficult
land
cases.
was much respected by the tribesmen owing to His the name he had acquired for honesty and impartiality.
only son Sultan Ali, a Provincial Darbari,
nised head of the family.
is
He
now
the recog-
He
is
and seven surrounding villages. Mr. Thorburn describes him as a man of sterling character, fond of sport, being the most successful and fearless pig-sticker in this part of the The Mians have considerable influence, due to Panjab.
their status as spiritual guides
;
and they have no tribal following. The daughters are given only amongst themselves in marriage but most of the best men of the neighbouring clans are proud to secure Mians as
;
husbands
Hasain
Ali,
thus married a
Malik Fatah
Khan Tawana.
is
also a Provincial
Dar-
Another Darbari
548
Gulbai.
I
Maljan.
I
Sohan Khan,
d.
I8S4.
I
I I
Najib Khan,
d.
1
I
Azmat Khan.
I
Mani Khan,
d.
866.
1844.
Nai'
Kamgal Khan.
Jang Bahadar.
|
Jalandar Khan.
Idan Khel,
d.
The Darwesh Khel Wazirls were the fourth and last wave of colonists from the west that settled In the Bannu plains, following the track of the Bannuchls, NIazals and Marwats, which had preceded them. The tribe Is divided into two great sections, the Utmanzals and the Ahmadzals, and has for many centuries occupied the hills between Thai Until about one in MIranzal and the Gabar mountain. hundred years ago their camps only occasionally descended into the plains during the cold season, and always clung about the mouths of the passes leading up Into their hills. Latterly their visits became annual; and between 1750 and 1775 the JanI Khel and Baka Khel sections of the Utmanzai
branch seized the MIrl grazing lands lying between the Tochi (Gamblla) and the hills. The Mahomed Khels and Ahmadzai clan next took possession
;
of the stony ground at the mouth of the Kuram Pass and soon after other Ahmadzals began to occupy the Thai beyond the left bank of the Kuram, driving off the Khatak and Marwat grazing camps they
found there.
caused.
Still
only lasted during the cold months, and no great alarm was
the country began to wane, and
Years went by the strength of the DuranI hold on by about 18 18 Bannu had
;
THE BANNU
become
practically
free.
DISTRICT.
549
finally the
Taking advantage of the general confusion, the united Darwesh Khels commenced systematic encroachments on Marand frequently sold wats, Khataks and Bannuchis alike
;
their aid to
On one
Kuram
the head-quarters
pursued back as
Latamar.
Kuram,
Latamar and Shinwa, both Khatak villages. They eventually learnt that peace is more profitable than war, and they now and again swore a truce with their neighbours, during which friendly intercourse was maintained. Thus, in 1826-27, when Masson paid Bannu proper a visit, he found Bannuchis and Waziris "on a good understanding" together.
Mani Khan
is
noted for his gigantic size and strength, was of great assist-
He
as
first and second visits to Bannu. persuading the Waziris to pay a fixed revenue on their holdings, and he put himself forward
in
men
of
of his tribe
receiving as his
reward a
Najib
grant
Rs.
in
600
per annum.
His son
Nar,
assessed in
current
settlement at
infant
Rs.
525.
his
Khan was an
when
and the Khanship was accordingly transferred to the present family representative Mani Khan, younger son of Sohan, in whose favour also the cash grant He is said to be the most of Rs. 600 was revived. influential of the Waziri Chiefs, and he has more than
died in
1866,
559
once rendered service in connection with the affairs of the Mahomed Khels and Mahsud and Kabul Khel Waziris. He
gave help during the last Afghan War in supplying baggageanimals and escorts along the Thai and Bannu road, securing for himself in acknowledgment an enhancement to his cash
allowances of Rs. 400, besides a khilat bestowed in public Darbar. His nephew Jalandar Khan has lately been recognis-
ed as a joint head of the clan. He and his uncle have each a /ujigi inam of Rs. 50 per annum. Mani Khan is a
Provincial Darbari.
DISTRICT.
551
DISTRICT.
SADOZAI.
*
Three other
sons.
Mahomed Khan,
d.
d.
Nawab
Hafiz
Ahmad Khan,
\
d. 1823.
_^
I
Abdul Karim
Khan,
d. 1886.
d. 1855.
I
iSll.
1811.
Nawab
C. S. I.,
b.
IMahomed
d. 1873.
Sarbiland
Khan,
b.
Khan,
d-
1841.
1845.
1843-
Hak Nawaz
Khan,
1
Ahmad Var
Khan,
b.
b.
1853.
1858.
Mahomed Akbar
Khan,
I
b.
1861.
r"
Aladad Khan.
Hakdad Khan.
The
history of
Nawab
is
previous to annexation
Dera Ismail
who brought the family all Khan, a Sadozai, cousin of Mahomed Nawab their fame was he had acted for a short whose room in Khan, Muzafar Nawab
Khan
district.
The
ancestor
He was invested with the government of the Sind-Sagar Doab by a Sanad under the hand of Timur Shah in 1792, in succession to Nawab Abdul Nabi, who had fallen into disgrace. But he had to commence by taking forcible possession of his province; for Abdul Nabi
refused
to
hand
near
;
over
Leia,
charge without
a fight.
A battle
and for some time Abdul Nabi had the best of it but he was eventually attacked from behind by the Labana allies of Mahomed Khan, and his forces put to
took
place
*
Nawab
Sarfaraz
Khan
552
flight.
He
his
day
to
fortunate, at the
commencement
of
administration,
in
Shah, successor,
rebel Prince
In 1793, to
Hamayun when
This
it
did the
full
confidence of Timur,
who about
this
dent Chiefshlps
all
But Nawab
Mahomed
Tawana
country, where he
defeating- Malik
In
by way of punishing them for Belot, and kept their country on the other
Many
The Province of Dera under the g-overnorship of Mahomed Khan extended from the Khasor Range to the Sagar country, ruled over by the Nutkani Chief, and Included the
Makalwad
him with-
out a blow.
He
reduce the Mian Khel Pathans, who succeeded in organising^ a combination of the tribes against him under the leadership
DISTRICT.
553
He
took
control relaxed, to
whose chief town of Kalachi was captured and destroySeveral fine villages were on
this
occasion
retained
in lieu of
payment of indemnity.
other
similar
fashion.
the
whole
the
Tank
border.
tactics.
Tank escaped by
He used
to flood the
Nawab made
his head-quarters at
Man-
He died in kera and Bhakar, governing Dera by deputy. He was succeeded by his son-in-law, 1 81 5, leaving no son.
Hafiz Ahmad Khan, a man of little strength of character, with none of the qualities which had enabled Mahomed Khan
to hold his
others.
Unfortunately, too,
with a foe far more crafty and powerful than the petty tribesmen whom his predecessor had constantly beaten.
Maharaja Ranjit Singh had been steadily feeling his way now knocked at the gates of the Dera ProThe proceedings opened with a demand for tribute vince. from the new Governor, and this was speedily enforced by the occupation of Khangarh and Mahmud Kot, within his The Sikhs had to be bought off in the usual boundaries. manner, for the Hafiz did not feel himself strong enough
westwards, and
to say no.
554
ter of course.
his
Yet
all
this
was readily found for annexation. In 182 1 the Sikhs marched through Shahpur and halted on the Indus, opposite Dera No resistance was offered. The town surIsmail Khan. rendered, together with Bhakar, Leiah, Khangarh and other The Nawab shut himself up in the mud fort of places. Mankera, and there withstood a siege of nearly a month, doing some damage to the Sikh troops, who were commandBut there was no hope of a ed by Ranjit Singh in person. successful issue for the Nawab. He surrendered against the
to
complete subjection.
pretext
impetuous followers, who were all for and was allowed to march out with his arms and property, retaining the town and district of Dera, with a Ranjit Singh lost no time in annexing the suitable jagir. Cis-Indus Tahsils and the Dera Fatah Khan Ilaka, containing the strong forts of Girang and Mankera, which were
advice of his more
fighting,
placed in charge of
his
own
trusted
kinsmen.
country was
after
in a
more or
It
annexation.
were usually non-residents, invested their agents, known as hakims, with the judicial and revenue authority which inThe hakims were constantly variably went with the jagirs. at feud with the Kardars who managed the khalsa or State
of the district, and they, moreover, fought freely amongst themselves, raiding on one another and lifting It was not until the coming of the celebrated Diwan cattle. Sawan Mai as Governor in 1837 that all this was changed,
portions
set in.
revenue ad-
DISTRICT.
555
and
his
name
is still
said to be
a household word in
in 1845 was lamented as a calamity by the many who had benefited by his benevolent rule.
the
south-west of the
Panjab.
His death
Deprived of
his capital,
his
Cis-Indus territory,
Hafiz
in
which Mankera,
took up his
was
situated,
Ahmad Khan
right
Maharaja
or the
Nawab.
Hafiz
Ahmad Khan
died in 1825.
of rupees by way of nazarana. He is said have been a man of no administrative ability, and fonder of shows and sports than of work. The country consequentsuffered during his eleven years
ly
of headship.
He
was
Khan
of Tank, and
with the Pawinda and other border clans. His revenues were eaten up by a swarm of rapacious and lawless followers, and he had further to meet the extortionate demands of the Sikhs. The cultivating and trading classes were in conse-
The
so in-
Nawab
at length
found the
life
of a purposeless ruler
embraced a proposal to surrender all semblance of kingship to the Sikhs, taking from them in lieu a
handsome
jagir
cares of government.
and a guarantee of future immunity from the This arrangement was brought about in
556
Prince
were
in the
Sikh Kardar.
to lead the
ly worried
life
But Sher Mahomed Khan was not destined of ease he had counted on. He was constant-
by unfriendly visitors from all quarters. The Tawanas were his especial aversion. They came down on him in force under their brave leader Malik Fatah Khan in 1845, and made him retire to Bhakar after exacting a ransom of Rs. 12,000 for sparing his life. But he had his revenge shortly after for with the assistance of Diwan Daulat Rai he succeeded in driving Fatah Khan back to his own country, whence he never again returned to disturb the peace of Dera. He was killed in the Second Sikh War in a vain attempt to defend the Bannu Fort against the revolted Sikh
;
soldiery.
honorary
in
Nawab Sher Mahomed Khan is better known under his title of Shah Nawaz Khan. The jagir he received
1836 from the Sikhs was valued at a lakh of rupees per annum, with the condition of occasional personal attendance on the Maharaja with a quota of horsemen. This was shortly
afterwards
commuted
death
in
continued in possession
1855.
of this jagir
Rs. 44,000, half of which was resumed, and the remainder continued to his sons in a two-fifth share to the eldest, Sarfaraz Khan, the present incumbent, and one-fifth each
to his three brothers
;
to
be held by each on a
life-tenure,
The
whole
is
shown
records, but a
private partition
brothers,
Nawab and
to
his
Nawab
is
said
officially
assigned
him.
DISTRICT.
557
jag-ir
1862,
the
made over
to the
Nawab
alone.
Nawab
to
Khan
Government.
He
did
much
Yar Khan
In
it
home, as
his presence
was
likely to
have weight
in
keeping
this
to a spread of the
insurrection on
maternal uncle
Ghulam Mahomed Khan took part in the expedition of i860 Mahsud Waziris, and did excellent work with the body of horsemen under their command. Aladad Khan Is
asrainst the
In
receipt
In
of
personal
allowance
of
Rs.
In
2,400
per
annum
recognition
of these services.
1868
Nawab
Sarfaraz
Kasarani,
Khan took part In the punishment of Kaura Khan, who had seized the person of Lieutenant Grey,
Commissioner, and
carried
then
Deputy
him
away
In
captivity.
his brothers
1879
as compensation
The area of jagir lands held by the family In Dera Khan Is about 320,000 acres, yielding a revenue of Rs. 36,887. They also hold nearly thirteen thousand acres
Ismail
In
Multan.
558
an
Extra
Assistant
The second son, Hakdad Khan, is a Magistrate, and a member of the Dera Municipal Committee. The Nawab himself is a Magistrate, a member of
Commissioner.
the
District
of the Municipal
judicial
Committee.
He
exercises
civil
and criminal
powers
of the
The Companionship
Amongst
mentioned
his
of the
Nawab may be
Ahmad Yar
Jamadar
in
Khan.
some years
is
as a
He
now
a Magistrate and a
member
by
He War
and he accompanied His brother 1883. and another in Biluchistan Inspector Police Ahmad Yar is a brother, Ata Mahomed Khan, serves in the same force as Deputy Inspector. They are joint owners of six hundred acres in two villages of the Dera Tahsil.
the
Takht-i-Suliman
Expedition
Another
relative is
He
Ahmad
Yar Khan
is
made
ist
of
Panjab Cavalry. He is a maternal uncle of Nawab Mahomed Sarfaraz Khan, and is His record of service also related to Haiiz Samandar Khan. is excellent, and he has been through many campaigns with
Sadozai, late a Rasaldar in the
his regiment.
plot
of three
addition to
his retirement in 1887 he was granted a hundred acres in the Isa Khel Tahsil, in Two of his brothers the pension he had earned.
On
DISTRICT.
559
the ist
are scattered
different
regiments.
Khan Bahadar Hak Nawaz Khan, son of Ali Hasain Khan, is also a worthy member of this distinguished family.
He commenced
worked
his .way
service
as a Police Moharir in
1859, ^-^d
up
position of Assistant
to the Governor-General's
Agent
in
Biluchistan solely
by
his
own personal
took part
title
merits.
He
joined the
Agency
in
1879, ^^^^
in
the late
Afghan War.
He
of
exercises the
powers of a
Magistrate.
Two
56o
ALIZAI.
DISTRICT.
561
yet
round Sir Herbert in his effort to check the Multan Rebellion, and later on, took service freely in our cavalry. Lind's and
Cureton's Horse during the Mutiny were mainly
them.
Bengal Cavalry.
Of all
.the
Multanis with
officers
have been
the most
way
remarkable.
killed in
Nawab
of Multan,
in 181
1,
who was
Nawab
of
and his grancifather met his death two years later when Multan was being besieged by the Maharaja Ranjit Singh. The young Faujdar was then only eight When he grew up he was given service by his years of age. kinsman Sher Mahomed Khan of Dera. In 1836, when the
Bahawalpur
mand
raja.
Faujdar Khan accepted a military comunder Diwan Lakhi Mai, Nazim on behalf of the MahaHe rendered help in subduing the Marwat country,
in the
Khan Tawana,
suppress
the
We
in
Edward es
to
Multan
1848
to
He
was present
at the battles of
Kaneri and Saduzam, and at the taking of Multan in January, The action at Kaneri is graphically described by 1849.
Edwardes in his V^ar on the Panjab Frontier, and full praise Faujdar for his splendid beis meted out to the gallant Edwardes desired to check the advance of the haviour. enemy's infantry by beating back their own cavalry upon them, and thus give time to Van Cortlandt to come up with
his guns.
men get
word to do a deed so desperate, but with set teeth I watched them mount, and wondered how many of my choicest
the
562
Spreading their hands to officers would come back. Heaven, the noble band solemnly repeated the creed of their religion, as though it were their last act on earth then passed their hands over their beards with the haughtiness of martyrs, and drawing their swords dashed out of the jungle into the ranks of the enemy's horse, who, taken wholly by
;
round and fled, pursued by Faujdar Khan companions to within a few hundred yards of the rebel line, which halted to receive its panic-stricken friends. In executing this brilliant service Faujdar Khan received two
surprise, turned
his
and
Many
Saduzam was
not less
Alizai,
Adjutant-
Kaneri on June
i8th,
took
of the cavalry
I
feel
Nawab Faujdar
Khan
shield,
received
khilat
of Rs. 4,000,
from Sir Heniy Lawrence, and a life-jagir of Rs. 4,000 per annum, with a cash allowance of Rs. 4,800 as service pay. He was subsequently employed with the force that entered
the Sharani
hills
In
1854 he was deputed on a special mission to Kabul, and succeeded in bringing the heir-apparent, Sardar Ghulam Haidar
Khan,
to Peshawar,
concluded between
For
this service
he
per
mensem
to
of Nawab, and his life-pension of Rs. 400 was doubled. In 1857 he was again sent as an
envoy
the Mutiny.
Kabul, and there received news of the outbreak of His presence at such a period was fortunate
;
563
evil influence
over the
Amir
persistently
Afghan advanceon Peshawar. Faujdar Khan's Kabul were rewarded with a Sanad confirming to his offspring in perpetuity the jagir which had previWe next find him taking part ously been granted for life. in the Mahsud and Kabul Khel Waziri Expeditions of 1859-60. In 1862 the Nawab's pension of Rs. 9,600 was converted into a life-jagir and he was invested with the powers of an Honorary Civil Judge and Magistrate within the limits of his In 1870 his troop of horse was reduced, and he was jagir. granted a money allowance of Rs. 1,200 per annum as compensation for loss of the command.
counselled an
fresh services in
;
In a civil capacity he
did
good
service
in
connection
with the
management
in the district,
which resulted
in 1866. in
in a considerable
of revenue.
The
war and peace, the life-jagir of Rs. 9,600 and the title of Nawab were made hereditary. The total perpetual jagir amounted to Rs. 13,600, of which half was to pass to the
holder of the
title,
the
remainder
amongst
beins:. '&
all
the
sons,
including the
Nawab
for
the time
The
present
his
father in 1875.
^^ commenced
as
Mutiny, and saw much service with the Multani Horse. He was next engaged nearer home against the Kabul Khel Waziris in 1859-60, and shortly afterwards retired on a pension of Rs. 300 per mensem, taking up the post of Inspector
of Police, which he held until his father's death.
loyally tendered his services to
sions,
He has since
Government on many occaand they have been more than once utilized. He
564
his
return
in
public Dar-
bar.
He
period as Assistant
district.
Superintendent of Police
the
Bannu
He
is
now
and
of the Municipal
District Board.
is
aRasalon
Bengal Cavalry.
jagirs, extending
over
Dera Ismail Khan, Muzafargarh and Multan, may be put down at Rs. 20,000, shared by the brothers in the proportions already detailed.
villages
in
the
districts of
Another distinguished member of this family was Nawab Kale Khan, who died in 1876, after a life of exemplary One of his sons, Muazudin, is a Rasaldar, and service. two others are subordinate officers in the 1 5th Bengal Cavalry. They own thirteen hundred acres, including a grant of nine hundred acres made them in 1884 in the Multan district.
Rasaldar Muazudin has married a daughter of the late
565
NAWAB
566
CHIEFS
by
Ranjit Sing-h, who g-ranted him a jagir in when the Nawab Sher Mahomed Khan surrendered his Dera possessions in 1836. But he had to hold his own by constant fighting, and his body was covered with wounds. He was ultimately murdered by Malik Fatah Khan Tawana, together with several of his relatives, in a treacherous attack made upon them under circumstances which were
the Maharaja
the
Tank
Ilaka
regarded as disgraceful, even under the code of honor recognised in those days by the Tawanas. Ashak Khan's son
years.
Later on,
a long and honorable public career, he proved himself a splendid type of a perfect gentleman, a loyal subject,
and a devoted servant of his Queen. Among the many good of his family who worked heart and soul in our interests, none holds a higher place in the memory of every Englishman who knew him than does Nawab Ghulam Hasan Khan. In our
men
His brave spirit and cheerful ways lent courage to those who lacked it, and converted the wavering into fast friends. His services were richly rewarded but he deserved every honor and largesse the Government from time to time bestowed upon him and his children have
;
now eating
when the
was
fairly
won
for
them by a worthy
in
father.
the
Tank
fort
father's death.
He
into a state of defence, and was able to hold out until the news of Sher Mahomed Khan's advance caused Fatah Khan to fall back upon Dera. He then marched out, and joining hands with his kinsman the Nawab and Diwan Daulat Rai, had the satisfaction of taking part in the battle of Babar, which resulted in the utter defeat of the Tawanas, who were sent back in disgraceful flight to their homes. This was in In the following year we find Ghulam Hasan at 1846.
567
Lahore as one of a deputation sent to represent the grievances of the Multani jagirdars ousted under Edwardes' advice from the Tank Ilaka. But just then the Multan Rebellion fully occupied the attention of the Resident, and there was
minor questions. Ghulam companions were despatched by Sir FredeThey came up with Bhai rick Currie to the seat of war. Maharaj Singh, the Impostor, in the neighbourhood of Jang,
no
Hasan and
and broke up his following, forcing him to cross the Chanab and conceal himself in the wilds. They were allowed by way They then of reward to loot his camp on their own account. joined the force under General Whish, and took a leading Ghulam. Hasan's services in part in the siege of Multan. this campaign were favourably noticed by Major Becher and
the present Lord Napier of Magdala, then a
ant of Engineers.
fallen they
had
back
to hold the
Bannu
against
Having
killed
marched
off
battle of
Guj rat.
He
used every
;
effort to
Edwardes'
thought
it
orders to the
prudent to
little
retire after
a short tenure of
disturbing
the
at
Bannu, seeing
chance of
hold the
commemding the road to Multan had been in charge of Ghulam Hasan and his kinsmen, whose duty it was to prevent a junction of the Bannu rebels with those of Multan. They
were employed under Lieutenant Taylor^in the capture of the Lakhi fort from the Sikh garrison, and did useful service in
568
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
For
NOTE.
main army
genecash
had
rally
passed out
of
the district.
his services
annum
allowance of Rs. 2,400 granted in lieu of his jagir rights He was appointed an Extra Assistant in the Tank Ilaka.
Commissioner at Bannu, and held the rank for three years. But the work was not congenial to him, and he resigned and The Rebellion of 1857 again went back to his home.
brought him
to the front.
He
raised a large
body of horse-
men
for service in
Com-
mandant under Colonel Charles Cureton of the regiment now known as the 15th Bengal Cavalry. So well did the new
soldiers
behave
was
a
Commissioner, Sir John Lawrence, for Ghulam Hasan. He further decorated with the Order of Merit, carrying with it
liberal life-pension.
in
four-
it
to
send an
envoy
ferred
to reside at the
Court of Kabul.
The
office
accompanied the Amir in his expedition against Herat and Kandahar, and was instrumental in stopping a raid upon Michni,
important duties with wisdom, tact and loyalty.
within
He
the
Mohmand,
Sultan
father-in-law of the
Mahomed was
Kabul.
envoy,
kept for some time in friendship with our real of on terms The Amir was
whom
Nawab
569
life-jagir
Rs.
6,000,
and
In
his
of
perpetuity.
1867 the
Nawab
of the
took service
troops.
in
commander
Later on.
Staff as
Rs.
of
which
and the
title
of
Nawab was
made hereditary. He was allowed to hold the rank of Native Commandant of the 15th Bengal Cavalry, receiving pay withWhile at his home in Dera out any obligation as to service. Ismail Khan he constantly made himself useful to the local
officials in
administration.
He
took
checking feuds between our own subjects and the tribesthe border.
men beyond
nection with
Nawab was again deputed to Kabul in consome difficulties which had arisen in our dealings with the Amir Sher Ali Khan, and which led up to the Second Afghan War. He returned to India in October of the same yetir, and was shortly afterwards attached to the Kandahar Column of invasion under General Stewart. He was appointed Governor when Kandahar was occupied by
In 1878 the
in
the
The Kandahar
civil
by
Sir
Donald
as mainly
due
to the
Nawab' s judicious
administration.
summoned by
difficulties in
Cavagnari to help him over his But he had only proceeded as far as Ghazni when the news of the massacre reached him. His own life was in danger for some time, as a servant of the
Sir Louis
Kabul.
Christian Empress
but he
managed
to escape
through the
S76
Mahomed
Afzal
He was
Roberts' Force which marched iJid the Shutar Gardan, and was present at the battle of Charasia and re-occupation of Kabul. His son Abdula Khan was appointed Kazi of the city. On the Nawab's return he received the honor of Knighthood in the Order of the Star of India, and a khilat of
the value of Rs. 5,000.
Further honors,
all
well deserved,
would doubtless have been showered on this worthy old servant were it not that death claimed him before there was
time for consulting his own wishes as to the form they should Government, however, was not slow to mark its sense take.
of the loss
sustained.
The
perpetual jagir
was raised
title,
for the
younger sons.
The Nawab was succeeded in 1881 by his son Abdula Khan, a gentleman who has done good service with fewer He assisted the Deputy opportunities than fell to his father. Commissioner of Dera Ismail Khan in quelling the Waziri
and Pawinda disturbances
year was instrumental
in in
1878-79, and in
five
the following
procuring
work
in
As Kazi of Kabul
during the British occupation, he performed his duties to the satisfaction of Major-General Hills, to whom he was subordi-
and he was selected later on to accompany the ex-Amir Yakub Khan to India, in which latter duty he is described as having shown much tact and judgment. He remained with He the Amir until recalled to his home by his father's death.
nate
;
tion in 1881,
had charge of the Shirani border during the and acquitted himself well. In pointed Honorary Commandant of the 15th He is a Magistrate and Civil Judge within own jagir, and he has magisterial powers in
Dera
571
He
is
member
and
District Board.
The Nawab's
Viceregal Darbari,
brother,
is
Niaz
Mahomed Khan,
also a
He
border.
yields a
in
little
twenty-nine villages
Tahslls
Khan.
brothers also
own land
twenty-four villages,
41,000.
is
giving an
Rs.
Khan
of the
His son
Is
572
1782.
I
Sarwar Khan,
d.
1836.
Aladad Khan,
d.
Sahibdad Khan,
d.
Khudadad Khan.
1844.
1843
Daulat Khan.
Nawab
|
Ghulam
Sarwar
Mahomed
Akbar Khan,
d. 1877.
I
Mahomed
Afzal
Khan,
d. 1S76.
I
Khan,
b.
1S57.
Mahomed Nawaz
Khan,
/;.
1869.
1874
Pawlnda tribes were in the habit of trading between Hindustan and Khurasan by the Gumal Pass. Most of them had their homes in the hill counMany then, as now, were graziers of Ghazni. try east In the beginning of the cold weather rather than traders.
early times the
From very
they
moved
down
to the
pastures
of the
Daman, reSomeits
unable to return to
the time
own
The
of
in
Shahabudin Ghori in the beginning of the thirteenth century. The tribes of the Suris and Pabis, of the Prangis and Dreskhels,
belonged to
this
They
the
Khan
Tahsil.
great Akbar,
homes
in the
573
commenced
to settle in
Tank.
The leading
the Prangis
and the Suris, and under their ]\Ialik, Khan Zaman, defeated and dispersed them, so that these tribes are heard of no more. The Lohani clans are said to have afterwards quarrelled
amonsT themselves about the lands taken from the Lodis, but eventually they settled down in the countries which they
now occupy
district
;
the
Marwats
Bannu
Tank and
;
the Mian-
Draban and IMusazai in the Kulachi Tahsil. The Daulatkhels include a number of smaller tribes, the leading among which is the Katikhel, to which the Chiefs of Tank
khels at
belong.
The Tank Tahsil of Dera occupies the north-western Daman, and now includes the whole country lying in the corner between the Bhitani Range on the north and the Suliman Range to the west. The greater portion
corner of the
forms a semi-circular plain, stretching round the town of Tank, and open to the south and east. It comprises the territory formerly ruled by a family of Katikhel Pathans, and
been under the management of Nawab Shah Nawaz Khan, who, though holding a position entirely subordinate to the District Officer, and by no means that of a semi-independent Chief, still, as the local head of the revenue, judicial and police administration, retained to some extent the Consifeudal authority formerly exercised by his ancestors. dering, however, the democratic constitution of these Pawinda tribes, it is improbable that they exercised much power except over their immediate followers. Khan Zaman, who lived about the time of Akbar, appears to have been a man of note, and to
has, until quite lately,
in the management of Tank and also of Marwat and other adjoining countries. Katal Khan, his
574
man, who took part In the DiiranI expeditions Into Hindustan, and acquired a good deal of power in his tribe by means of Under him the the wealth he brought back with him. tribes in their other small and the Tators reduced Daulatkhels
neighbourhood, and several of the largest of the Jat villages The Daulatin the Tank circle were founded in his time.
khels under Katal
Khan were a numerous and powerful tribe. was murdered, probably about 1782, by his own tribesmen, who resented his action in hiring a body of Biluch and His Sindi mercenaries to preserve order in his territories.
He
Sarwar Khan, then sixteen years old, fled to the Court of Timur Shah, who despatched a force to reinstate him, and he thus secured a position considerably stronger This he improved by grathan that held by Katal Khan.
eldest son
all
the leading
its
men
He
built
absolute
had
commenced under Katal Khan, now went on rapidly, and numerous villages were founded. The whole Gumal valley
was
at
in subjection to
built a large
fort
Dabra, where the Gumal valley joins the Tank plain, to facilitate the collection of tolls from the Pawinda caravans
passing along that route.
ture
He
in agricul-
and
irrigation,
and
cultivation
extended greatly
his rule,
his rule.
During the
latter part
conquered the Kundis, who held the country north of the In this way he Sohali, and located garrisons in their midst. present Tank whole of the of the possession gradually got
Tahsil except Mulazai.
less in
He was
border warfare with the Gandapurs and the Nawab of Dera. He was allied by marriage with the Waziris, but in
DISTRICT.
575
some
ten miles
up the
Kotkhirizi.
Katal
Khan does
not
have paid tribute to the Durani Princes, but was proappear bably made to supply a contingent for service in Hindustan in
lieu of tribute
lish his
;
to estab-
made
to
pay a cash
During
advan-
the earlier years of the present century, this was paid with
tolerable regularity as the
to take
tage of their expeditions against Sind to collect the revenues due from the Chiefships along the Indus. In i8og, the Durani
Monarchy was broken up, and for some years Sarwar Khan remained practically independent. A short time before the taking of Mankera by the Sikhs In 1821 he made his submisThis at first sion to Ranjit Singh, and agreed to pay tribute.
,
amounted to Rs. 12,000 or Rs. 15,000, but before his death in At that 1836, it was gradually enhanced to Rs. 40,000. time Nao Nahal Singh was engaged in an expedition to Bannu, and took advantage of the opportunity for settling
the affairs of Tank.
He
Aladad Khan, who had succeeded his father Sarwar Khan, unable to meet the Sikh demands, fled to the Waziri hills, whence he made perpetual raids on the
Tank
to
one lakh.
Tank
villages.
placed
under Badri Nath as Kardar. The constant attacks of Aladad, however, made it an unprofitable acquisition, and after a year or two the Sikh Government assigned the whole province in jagir toPalnda Khan, Khajikzai, Ashak Mahomed
Khan,
the
Alizai,
and Hayatula Khan, Sadozai, leading men of To them were allotted nine-tenths of
the remainder being
Tank revenues,
divided in
smaller
grants to Sahibdad
younger sons of
Khan and Khudadad Khan, Katikhel, the Sarwar Khan, to Shah Nawaz Khan, son of
576
Nawab of Tank, and Mian Khan Kundi and other leading men of the Ilaka. The revenue of Tank was then valued at one lakh. After Sarwar Khan's death the circumstances of the country changed owing to the insecure state of the border and the In spite of this, constant internal warfare that was going on. the Multani Khans are said to have made about a lakh and a half a year out of Tank but their administration was oppressive, and they appear to have squeezed out of the country all The Tank jagirdars had to keep up a that they could get. certain number of horsemen and camel guns, and to pay for
the refugee Aladad Khan, afterwards
to
;
They held
1847;
the
till
but their
Aladad Khan was by no means conciliated by the miserable pensions to his son and relatives.
fully to
and Bhitanis
How
was frustrated by the gallant KhudaBakhsh Khan Khatak, is related at length by Edwardes. Aladad Khan after firing the town had to retire to the hills. This is
that attempt
many
by
this
restless spirit
some of
effects of this
Tank during the rule bound up with the history of is the quarrel between Fatah Khan Tawana and Diwan Daulat Rai. When Fatah Khan was put in as Governor of Dera, it was arranged that Aladad should be restored to the government of Tank on an allowance of Rs. 20,000 a year, but he died on the road as he was marching down to take possession. The Multani Chiefs, when ordered to give up their jagirs, refused, and sided with the Diwan Daulat Rai. Sahibdad Khan
political state of
The
closely
577
He was
confined
in
the
fort of
Akalgarh, where he was murdered along with the other prisoners after the defeat of Fatah Khan at Babar. On the return
of Daulat Rai, the rule of the Multani Chiefs over
Tank was
and the allowances of the partisans of at once confiscated. Shah Nawaz Khan, the son oi Aladad Khan, in this way lost his pension of Rs. 3,000. He left the country, and hung on as a dependent on the fallen Malik until restored a year or two later by Edwardes. Mian Khan Kundi, one of the chief men of Tank under Sarwar Khan, had also taken the losing side; he was killed at Dera in the murderous attack on Ashak Mahomed Khan. The Multani Chiefs now retaliated on his family, the principal members of which had to fly the country, while the allowances enjoyed by them were confiscated.
;
Malik Fatah
Khan were
among
other retrenchments,
resumed the Tank jagir enjoyed by the Multani Chiefs, and on Edwardes' recommendation, the management of the Ilaka was entrusted to Nawab Shah Nawaz Khan, the fugitive grandson
of the great
Sarwar.
When making
over the
province,
Edwardes
tion
Shah
and administration.
five years.
He was
given
a lease
on these
On
On
made
village
Nawaz Khan
nized Shah
Shah Tank Khas and two or 1854 Government recogTank, and granted him
Nawaz Khan
as Chief of
578
a third of the
to
meet the
owing
to the large
reduction in the revenue, was rather less than the Rs. 25,000
summary
settlement
Shah Nawaz Khan, who had in the same year been given the title of Nawab, was continued in the enjoyment of a third of the increased revenues, which by the revised
assessm.ents, were raised to nearly Rs. 70,000.
The
villages
were farmed as before to the leading zamindars, though a great number of holdings changed hands owing to the old
lessees having broken down.
in Tank had been treated in a vasfue manner in settlements, and except in the Kundi villages summary both to the north and those of the Gumal valley, the proprietary
Rights
s ark art
or h[on^tracts
ing to Government.
In the
the
been extin-
no doubt that
Khan was
as
much
that of a proprietor
On
Khan was
the Ilaka, the position held by him was based merely on the pleasure of the Paramount Power. At the recent settlement, Nawab Shah Nawaz Khan was
put in to
manage
recognized
as
proprietor.
that
1855,
recommended
;
the
Government considered
all
the
in
the Tahsil
in
favor of the
persons
with
whom
could not
Nawab.
cir-
from a combination of
which he
is
579
of the
district.
He
latterly
in
much
been
tribe,
position
it
neighbouring Waziri
and
of
was found
were of
little
use
when matters
of importance
were on hand.
his kinsmen who were said to have tampered with the tribes But Government held him resto bring him into disgrace. ponsible, and it was deemed advisable to modify the existing
arrangements connected
with his
position.
The
question
Deputy Commissioner's hands were greatly strengthened by giving him direct control over the Waziris, hitherto worked through the Nawab. He was also given charge of the water-cuts, which had been a constant source of dispute between the Nawab and his people. The Nawab was granted his own seven villages
was
dealt with in 1874-75,
when
the
Rs.
7,574,
of
Rs.
25,000.
He
and
and
powers were
at
the
same
time increased.
living at
some years
weighed
down
He
the title and jagir by his grandson, young man of some promise, now un-
The
estate
is
in
the
hands of the Court of Wards. The debts left by the late Nawab have been extinguished, and the property is in a thriving
state.
The
Nawab Ghulam Kasim Khan Mahomed At'zal Khan, second son Shah Nawaz Khan Two widows of Shah Nawaz Khan
Rs. 18,000
of
Nawab
.
.
5,000 2,000
58q
Baikhurdar Khan,
(i.
1836.
1
Muazudin Khan,
d.
1S55.
I,
1S69.
Navvab Ata
Gl 111 lain
Mahomed
Khan,
b.
Mahomed
K
b.
li
an
1S28.
1836,
Ahmad
Khan,
b.
Haji
IMnhomed Nawaz
J\lian,
b.
Haniid Yar
/'.
M ah mud
Khan,
a.
Mahomed
Khan,
b.
1S48.
1S55,
Klian, 1862.
i
1887.
1853.
Rahini Var
Khan,
Ghulam Hasan
Khan,
/'.
Kasim Khan,
b.
b.
888.
1S7S.
1872,
IVIahomed
Ramzan
Khan,
b
Ahdula Khan,
b.
Mahdmed
Akbar Khnn,
b.
Mahomed Azam
Khan,
b.
b.
1S85.
18S7.
1S70.
1879
1887.
Mahomed
Khan,
b.
Sadik
1877.
Mahomed Hashim
Khan,
b.
Mahomed Hayat
Khan,
b.
1884.
18S7.
Hafiz Abdul
Mahomed
Baran,
b.
Rahim,
b.
1863.
1S70.
1872.
1882.
Barkhurdar
Khan,
great-grandfather
of
Nawab Ata
in the service
son Muazudin
after him.
of
Muazudin, left his country on and served Mir Ali Murad of Sind
many
DISTRICT.
581
command
help
in
in
He
returned to his
home
to
be of much assistance. When the broke out he was appointed a Rasaldar in the local levies and accompanied Edwardes down the Frontier Edwardes held him with thirty sowars of his own raising. He in the highest esteem for his many acts of gallantry.
but arrived too late to
Multan
War
at the battle of
Saduzam and
incapacita-
Ghulam Sarwar Khan was granted a life-pension of Mahomed Khan succeeding him as Rasaldar. He was afterwards deputed with Colonel LumsRs. 2,400, his son Ata
den's Mission to Kandahar.
was rewarded on
grant of Rs.
a perpetual jagir
1,000,
and a garden
Shujabad, Multan.
Mahomed Khan and Ghulam Mahomed Khan on Ghulam Sarwar' s death in 1869. They hold three-fifths and two-fifths shares respectively.
This property passed to his sons Ata
stan on the outbreak of the Mutiny,
Mardan.
of his
He engaged
men
the
*
in action,
in
Nicholson's tracks to
Gurdaspur and
fall
on to Dehli.
He was
detached after
action
at
In the
terms:
Edwardes describes the incident in his Vear on tlie Punjab Fjoiitier in the following " Of all the wounded in my force, the one who caused me the liveliest sorrow was Ghulam Sarwar Khan, Khagwani. This noble officer had not the rare abilit)' of his
fiiend Faujdar Khan in either Camp or Council, but for grandeur of stature, personal strength, skill as a swordsman, and reckless bravery in the field, he had no equal among Vet I have thousands of brave men ; and might well be called the pride of the border. When our guns at Saduzam already recorded the close of his active career as a .soldier. emboldened come out right were to the Mulraj's infantry on canal, by the up brought were and taunt our cavalry on the left. Sarwar Khan called on his fifty men to follow him and, baci< upon their and drove them body, into the foremost canal, charged leaping over the He was in the act of cutting down one of the last, when an infantry soldier raised line.
his
musket and
it
.shot
Sarwar Khan through the right arm, breaking both bones and render-
ing
582
Narnaul he was instrumental in saving the life of an officer of Engineers at the eminent risk of his own. For this gallant conduct he received the Order of Merit. Thence his regi-
ment marched
rebellion in
to
in
a series
much by his brave example to encourage and give heart to the young soldiers of the regiment. Sir Sidney Cotton remarked of him that he had never seen a He was honored in 1859 with the smarter squadron-leader.
title
of
Khan Bahadar,
in
of Rasaldar- Major
Multanl
Cavalry.
His brother
Ghulam Mahomed was made a Rasaldar. On the breaking up of the Irregulars in 1861, Ata Mahomed Khan was granted
a gratuity and a perpetual jagir of Rs.
pointed an Extra
Assistant
1,000,
in
Commissioner
in
Panjab.
This
office
he surrendered
in
Ghulam
Mahomed Khan
1865,
selected to
He
return
per annum, of which Rs. 4,000 were in perpetuity. The title of Nawab was also conferred upon him. He was attached to
the Kabul Field Force in 1879 ^^
3.
services
were rewarded
The Nawab
mittee
is
member
of the
and
District Board.
His jagir
his
two
vilhiges in the
rights,
and he has
in
ownership
with
brother,
about
ten
thousand acres
in districts
annum,
thirteen
years
as
DISTRICT.
583
Akram
Khan,
Khagwani,
district
;
also Rasaldar
Dur Mahomed
584
Mahomed
Fozil
Khan.
Mahomed
Ilayat
Malik Khan.
I
Khan,
Salah
Mahomed
Khan.
Ghulam
Saiwar Khan.
Mahomed
Sadik
Khan.
Cihu'am Muiiniudin
Ghulam
^'asin
Klian,
Khan.
Mahomed
Painda Khan.
Shall
Uafiz iMir
Mahomed
Khan.
I
Fatah Din
Hafiz
Khan.
Ghulam
Haidar
Khan.
Ilafi/.
Hakiz
Sakandar
Khan
I
Samanoar Khan.
Sadula
.Saifula
Khan.
Khan.
Ghulam
Mahomed
Afzal Kiian.
Mahomed
Khan.
Ahmad
Khan.
Ghulam Mahomed
Khan.
The
under
described.
which they
Dera,
have
already
been
Samandar,
after
serving
of Mankera, was, in
1845, cruelly
Khan.
the
He
was succeeded
incumbent,
share
present
who was later on awarded a cash per annum in lieu thereof, on the resservice in
Tank
connection
Again,
in 1857,
he came forward
585
command
of a
small
foot,
raised
by
himself,
and placed them under Edwardes' orders at Peshawar. Thence he was despatched to Sirsa and Hissar, to act with
his
men
He
employment
for
as an Extra i\ssisretiring
is
tant Commissioner,
and served
twelve years,
on Tah-
in
two
thousand
rupees
per
and he owns land, yielding about one annum, in the districts of Dera,
586
CHIEFS
Dadu Khan,
d.
1S15.
I
Sardar
Mian Khan.
Khan.
Mahomed
d.
Zafar
Mahomed
Khan.
Ali
Khan,
1836.
Mahomed
Giildad
Sardar
Ala lad
Wall
.
Khan,
d.
Khan,
d.
Mahomed
Khan,
d.
Chandan Khan,
b.
Mahomed
Kalu Khan,
b.
Khan,
i>-
1S76.
1872.
1826.
1829.
1870.
Saifiila
b.
1828.
Khan,
1848.
Muazam
Khan,
b.
Umar
Khan,
b.
1861.
1S70.
Ayaz Khan,
b.
Umar
b.
Daraz,
1864.
1868.
Mahomed Afzal
Khan,
b.
Dost
b.
Mahomed
i860.
Atal Khan,
b.
Khan,
1877.
1851.
The
district
hundred and
on the south.
Bannu
country
On
west
only
it
hills,
and
originally a poor
Pawinda
tribe,
mainly dependent on their flocks. They lived in the hills east of Kandahar, but were driven out by the Kakars. For some time they led a wandering life, until, eventually,
about the beginning of the seventeenth century, they were persuaded to settle at Rori by Khan Zaman, Chief of the Daulatkhel,
and gradu-
DISTRICT.
58;
Miankhel border.
in
constant
feuds
The
Gandapurs and Miankhels, however, would often join together to oppose Sarwar Khan of Tank or the Hot ruler of Dera Ismail Khan, and sometimes to resist the Wazir sent by the King of Kabul to collect his outstanding revenues. Their independence was first disturbed by Mahomed Shah
of Dera,
tribute
to
and again to Rs. 30,000, at which figure it remained till the Nawab's possessions passed into the hands of the Sikhs, when Prince Nao Nahal Singh at once brought
Rs.
15,000
the
demand up
to Rs. 50,000.
When
country
Sir Herbert
Edwardes
visited
this
part
of the
he found the Gandapurs much oppressed, and gave them relief by an immediate reduction in the demand. Guldad Khan was then their Chief. His allowances were rein 1847,
duced
to Rs. 7,000
the
Guldad
made
He was again left at peace and order of his own district. home during the Mutiny but of his loyalty there was not
;
In the slightest doubt, and his cousins did excellent service. i860 he took part in the Mahsud Wazlrl Expedition with a
He
afterwards assisted
the
which
services he
Darbar with a valuable khilat. He, however, fell into disgrace by purchasing a plot from the On Shiranis, about four miles beyond the ZarkanI border. was presented
In
this land
fort
588
which ensued, fifteen of and eleven wounded. The blame was cast upon Guldad. He was deprived of the Chiefship, which passed to his son Mahomed Afzal Khan and his cousins,
Guldad's
men were
killed
fined for
neglect
in
Mahomed
at the
Afzal
Khan has
Lahore University, and is now an Assistant CommisHe afforded sioner under the Statutory Civil Service Rules.
when the Mahsuds and Pawindas created a disturbance on the Tank border in 1879, and was instrumental in stopping the Pawindas and Shiranis from raiding the British villages. His men occupied the military posts of Jata and Manjhi, and proved themselves
assistance to the local authorities
amenable to
the late
discipline.
Khilats
for
these services
were
In
Khan.
a Political
and was
title
rewarded,
of
on the
Khan Bahadar.
was summoned from Dehli in 1881 to take part in the Mahsud Waziri Expedition. He again assisted on the occaMahomsion of the Shirani blockades of 1883 and 1886-88. ed Afzal Khan is privileged to appoint sixteen sowars to the
Border Police.
lages of the
Fie has ownership rights in twenty-four vilIlaka,
He
Gandapur
with
an
aggregate
several
area
of
He owns
houses at
family
is
Khan,
a gallant soldier in
Mutiny.
His
father,
Gandapur Chiefs
Edwardes' time.
Mahar
Dil
Khan
annum, and he has a small jagir yielding Rs. 434. his cousins and nephews are soldiers.
Many
of
589
Shah Alam Khan of Kalachi is another conspicuous member of the Gandapur family. He and his brother Ahmad Khan did good service in the early days of British Rule.
He
enjoys
a small
pension, and
Kalu Khan is an uncle of Mahomed Afzal Khan. Edwardes-had a great liking for him, and describes a brave feat, when on one occasion with only fourteen companions he dashed into a large body of Nasir Pawindas, who were encamped across the Luni, and seized a number of their camels with the object of forcing them to pay grazing dues, which Kalu received six or seven they had attempted to evade.
sword-cuts in the affray, and was
left on the ground for dead. wounds were neatly sown up by the Nasir women with hairs plucked from his own horse's tail, and it was not long He was, however, before he was able to get about again. kept prisoner by the Nasirs, and Edwardes was obliged to
But
his
of those
raided
before
release.
The
Mulraj,
Kalu Khan did good service during the rebellion of Diwan and received as a reward a pension of Rs. 3,000 per annum. Again, in 1857, he furnished two hundred men to garrison the posts under the Deputy Commissioner on the
Suliman border, and himself proceeded to join his old friend Edwardes at Peshawar, where he remained throughout the
crisis in
of his
of horse
and foot
khilat,
valuable
of
in
Khan Bahadar.
helping the local
He renderKaura Khan,
and again,
in 1868,
when
590
Kasrani.
Khan
He
is
member
of the District
in local
improvements.
He
is
Lambardar
in
Border
Militia.
in
in Rs.
four
and Dera
He
also
DISTRICT.
591
Khan.
I
Khudadad Khan.
I
Sher
Mahomed Khan.
\ I I
I
Haidar
Ali
Ashak
'Hasain
Alayar
Khan.
Abdula Khan.
Sadat Ali
Khan.
Khan.
Khan.
Ali
Mahomed
Akbar Khan.
Sadik
Ali
Yar
Ghulam
Murtza.
Fida
Hasain.
Hasain Khan.
Mahomed
Khan.
Khan.
Ala Wardi Khan's father, a Kazalbash, accompanied Shah Shujah to India. He himself obtained a command of sowars locally raised in the First Afghan War, and was afterwards made Rasaldar in the 17th Irregular Cavalry. regiment behaved well during the Mutiny. He led a
liant charg-e against the
His
bril-
mutineers of the
9th
Cavalry,
and
were also
Khan with his own hand. His services conspicuous in the Mahsud Expedition of i860. He
in 1862, of
which one-fourth
acres
The Sardar has acquired about one hundred and seventy by purchase in Mauzas Hazara and Bahal in the Bhakof three
thousand
hundred acres at Pak Patan, Montgomery. He exercises He is a magisterial powers within the limits of his jagir. member of the District Board, and has lambardari rights in
two
is
villages, besides
Ilaka.
He
the
decorated with
three
War
Medals,
and he
wears
is
Many
Army.
592
CHIEFS
DIWAN
JA.GAN NATH.
Diwan Lakhi
Mai,
d.
Rai Rup
Chand,
d.
1843.
1S78.
1878.
Diwan Daulat
Kai,
d.
1885.
I
1S81.
Parma Nand,
d.
Takht
Bhaja
Ram,
b.
Ram,
b.
Diwan Jagan
Nath,
b.
1S82.
1841.
1858.
1S74.
Ganga Ram,
b.
Jaswant Ram,
b.
Sewa Ram,
/'.
1S57.
i860.
1867.
In 1765 Rai Tek Chand was Hakim or Governor of the Khichi Ilaka under Mahomed Hayat Khan, the ruling Jaskani His son Lakhi Mai held a similar post under Nawab Chief.
of Mankera, who took Khichi from the and was given the title of Diwan. When the Nawab surrendered his rights to the Sikhs, Lakhi Mai was put in as
askanis, J
Mahomed Khan
He was
succeeded
in
Diwan Daulat Rai, who was supplanted by Malik Fatah Khan Tawana but again reinstated on the death of the latter under circumstances already detailed. The
;
Diwan' s rule was oppressive and unpopular. He was disoffice on the advice of Lieutenant Edwardes, who visited this frontier in 1847 on behalf of the Resident at
missed from
Lahore
in his stead.
and General Van Cortlandt was appointed Governor The ex-Diwan proceeded to Lahore to adjust
and was so engaged when the Multan Rebellion able to furnish a body of horsemen, who were of some use in helping to disperse the rabble that had flocked round the Pretender Maharaj Singh. When the
his accounts,
broke out.
He was
595
of the
high position
The jagir assets have since fallen to The Diwan was a Magistrate and a member of the
He
died in 1885.
the
Dera
His son, Jagan Nath, a minor, is receiving education at city School. He has been allowed to retain two-
and he
is
hundred and
fifty
594
Mahomed
Sadik Khan.
I
Mahomed
d.
Saifula
I
Khan.
Sarbiland Khan,
b.
Sakandar Khan,
b.
1820.
1830.
Hafiz.
Mahomed Amin
Khan,
b.
^^o^-
1865.
1868.
Sarbiland
Khan belongs
is
of the
Nawab Ghulam
memas a
Hasan Khan.
He
Jamadar
in the
Mounted
At
the
out-
in 1857, he was at Kandahar, where he had proceeded on escort duty with Colonel Lumsden. Sir Herbert Edwardes summoned him to Peshawar, and he there remained in command of a troop of Multani Horse. He was He was afterwards transferred to the 15th Bengal Cavalr}^ made Rasaldar-Major in 1876, and retired in 1887 on a penOne of his sons, Mahomed sion of Rs. 1,596 per annum. Amin Khan, is a Rasaldar, and another, Ghulam Yasin Khan, a Dafadar in their father's regiment. Many of his
in the 15th
Bengal Cavalry.
Sarbiland
Khan owns
2,230 acres
in six
villages in
the
595
GHULAM SARWAR
KHAN," SADOZAI.
Khudayar Khan.
1
Hayatiila
d,
Khan,
1873.
\
1826.
1847.
I
Ilafiz
Mahmud Khan,
b.
Abdula Khan,
b.
Khan,
b.
1873.
1876.
This Darbari
is
Nawab
Sarfaraz
Hayatula Khan, did good service when He was the Sikh Army revolted at Bannu and Multan. awarded a pension of Rs. 4,000 and a perpetual jagir valued atRs. 1,000 per annum, partly in recognition of loyal services and partly in lieu of the Tank jagir rights which he was
Khan.
His
father,
made
to surrender with
the
other
Multani
grantees.
He
his brother
Ghulam Kadar
succeeded to the family jagirs on the death of their father in Ghulam Sarwar's services to Government since an1873.
He was constantly if not brilliant. employed with his father in assisting the local officials, and he was more than once entrusted with an important indepenHe served for two years in dent command on the border.
nexation have been sound,
the Irregular Cavalry before the
formation
of the existing
Bengal Regiments, and was awarded a pension of Rs. i ,000 on the disbandment of his corps. He remained at Peshawar
with Edwardes during the Mutiny,
furnishing a
contingent
596
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
jagir of
in perpetuity.
office for
He took
twenty-
two years,
He has acquired
three villages
ownership
of about six
hundred acres
in
of
Dera and
Bhakar Tahsils.
DISTRICT.
597
DISTRICT.*
The history of the Dera Ghazi Khan district may be commence with the irruption of the Rind Biluches
middle of the fifteenth
is
century.
tradition as a guide.
of
kingdom of the Sultans of Dehli, and was included in When the Langha dynasty the government of Multan. established their independence at Multan, this district no
the
doubt continued under their rule but practically the tribes The inhabiting it must have enjoyed a rude independence. of south and Nahars the the been have to seem important most
;
Somra in the central and northern parts of the disThe latter were a Rajput confederation whose members had probably already adopted the Mahomedan creed. They were sufficiently powerful to retain a good deal of their influthe Satha
trict.
by entering
into
The tribe which Biluches and by joining their brotherhood. sprang from this union was named Dodai, said to be derived
mother.
from Doda, the son of a Satha Somra father and a Rind One of the first Biluches, whose name is known,
was Malik Sohrab Dodai, who, according to Farishta, entered into the service of Sultan Hasain Langha of Multan,
from
whom
the Indus, including Sitpur, now on the left, but then on the Two important off-shoots from the Dodai tribe right bank.
will
be found alluded to in the family histories which follow, namely, the Miranis of Dera Ghazi Khan and the Gurchanis.
territory
598
now
tract
of
Jampur. They also spread into the northern part of Sind, now comprised in the Upper Frontier district. The origin
unknown, but they were probably Rajputs in Harand Dajal was destroyed in the fifteenth century by the rising power of the Miranis, supported probably by the Biluches, who were pouring into the
is
of the Nahars
or Jats.
Their rule
country.
To
for
as
is
related
in
the
history
of that
tribe.
They now
In the
latter
zamindar families in Harand and Bhagsar. place they have retained some slight local
importance.
The
Biluches
continued
to
during the
and commencement of
to
their
in
According
for
traditions
the
war with the Lasharis, and they also came into collision with the Mughals This was coor Turks, as they are more correctly called. incident with the invasion of northern Sind and the establishment of a dynasty there by Shah Beg Arghan. The leader of the Rinds was Mir Chakar, who is represented in the legends as having allied himself with the Emperor Hamayun and accompanied him to Dehli, Certain it is that at this time the Biluches spread all over the south and west of the
Rinds had been engaged
thirty
years
element
of
in the population,
Khan
but
Dera Ismail, Muzafargarh, Multan, Jhang, Montgomery and Shahpur, as well as of the Bahawalpur territory. Mir Chakar' s tomb stands at Satgarha in Montgomery. All the tribes now occupying the Dera Ghazi frontier trace their settlement to this period. Some, such as the Mazaris, Gurchanis and Lunds of Tibi, first confined themselves to the hills, but they gradually spread down into the plains and
DISTRICT.
in
599
extending themselves
some
or
The
original
;
owners,
Jats
in
others they
held
They
still
whereas the Biluches own only about two millions, of which But the Jats became entirely a large part Is barren waste. dependent on the Biluches even where they retained their
lands
;
and
Is
shown by the
district
fact
of the
belongs to
Most of the tribes acknowledged the suzerainty Dera GhazI Khan, who themselves were in Mughal Emperors of Dehll and when the to subordination show signs of decay at the close of to began Empire the
of the Miranis of
;
Aurangzeb's reign, the Miranis tried to establish their IndePrince Muazudin, afterwards pendence, but without success.
Jahandar Shah, suppressed this attempt, as also a similar It marked the rising headed by the Kalhoras of Sind. beginning of a long period of invasions and rebellions, culminating In the expeditions of Nadir Shah and Ahmad Shah.
The
Kingdom found the much weakened by the persistent attacks of the Kalhoras, who were themselves shortly afterwards obliterated by the rebellion of their Talpur Wazirs. Mahmud Khan Gujar, Wazir of the last Ghazi Khan Mirani, rose to power
final
Miranis very
during these disturbed times, and held sway for man}/ years, In nominal subjection to TImur Shah and Zaman Shah.
of the Sarai
Brahol
Nasar Khan, the Khan, was rewarded by Ahmad Shah for his services by a grant of the Harand Dajal country, which remained under the Khans until and southern parts of the
district.
Khan
present
In
1827.
This tract
6oo
included
whole
Gurchani and
TIbi
Lund
holdings.
The
under
their
northern
Mahmud
neighbours,
fell
which had been first Khan Gujar, and afterwards under gov-
and the
in
country
of
the
Mazaris and
Dreshaks
has
left
traces
still
The Sadozai and Popalzai families of Dera Ghazi Khan and the Bozdars of Naharwala settled in the district during the Durani Rule.
first made themselves felt in Dera Ghazi Khan Between that year and 1830 Nawab Sadik Mahomed of Bahawalpur farmed the revenues from Maharaja General Ventura was the first Governor after Ranjit Singh. 1830, and he was followed in 1832 by Diwan Sawan Mai who The wild independence which held charge for twelve years. had reigned among the Biluch tribes was not put down withNawab Sadik Mahomed had a long struggle out difficulty.
The Sikhs
in
8 19.
Mazaris.
their
profit in
Chiefs
of the
with their
as
if
nazarana payments,
all
and got
into as
much
trouble
the
When
which had been most opposed to the Sikhs naturally took the lead in joining Edwardes, and of these the Khosas were foremost. The Lagharis and Nutkanis, as might have been
expected, held back and waited for the
result
;
but
all
sub-
DISTRICT.
6oi
There"'
~i
the Biluches of
present day.
602
NAWAB
SIR IMAM
K.C.LE.
Milha.
I
Gulsher.
Shah
Ali.
Dost
I
Ali,
Hamal
d.
I
1801.
Bahram.
Nawab
Rahim Khan.
Sher
Mahomed Khan.
Dost
Mahomed
Khan.
Mmad
Tilu
Jalab
Taj
Mahomed
Khan.
Bakhsh.
Khan.
Khan.
Bahram Khan,
Sobhdar Khan.
Ghulara Hnidar
Khan,
lately
tribe is one of the largest, and was until one of the most turbulent of the Rind Biluches on the They occupy the whole of the Sind-Panjab frontier.
The Mazari
southern
part
of
the
;
Dera
Ghazi
Khan
district
from
their territory
and lands on both banks of the Indus up to the Sind and Bahawalpur borders. A large section of the tribe also
lives in
Sind
in
Trans-Indus,
and
the
Ubaro Taluka of the Shikarpur district. The office of Tumandar of this important tribe is vested in the Gulsherani
branch of the Biluchani section, the present head of which
is
Nawab
Sir
The Biluchanis are said to have been originally separate from the Mazaris. They trace their origin to Hot, the eponymic
DISTRICT.
603
great
branches of the
in the general
end of the
Sahak setded
now
included
in
made any
settlement in the
The Mazaris were Mount Bambor, and had not plains. Kashmor was their onlyalready settled there,
their
market, and here they used to resort to barter their cattle for
corn and cloth.
Sahak,
who was
made
in the
disposal of
produce and
the
hills,
and
all
who was
then at their head. On one occasion, when four Mazaris had been imprisoned by the people of Kashmor, Bizan
sent four
women
their release.
to Sahak to ask him to assist in procuring Sahak used his influence with the Governor,
to
their
tribe.
visit,
On
this,
and when he
came the Mazaris hailed him as their Chief. Bizan himself bound the turban of office round Sahak's head, and gave him his daughter in marriage. Sahak had two sons, of whom the elder was named Biluch (whence the name Biluchani), and the
younger Shadhen.
sion,
tribe.
but on
his
to a
want of
discipline
elective.
in
It
the
was offered, in the first instance, to Radho, son of Biluch, who was willing to accept it; but just then a high wind arose, and Kadho's keri or hut collapsed and fell down. This was regarded as a bad omen, and the Mazaris determined to give up Radho, and choose a Chief from among the descendants of Shadhen, There were three brothers, sons of Bhando and grandsons of
Shadhen.
The
Chieftainship
was
evidently
The
eldest of these
To him
6o4
the
first
turban.
He
his
accept
it,
saying he
must
consult
mother.
"
be
dis-
The
first is,
{i.e.,
that
if
one Mazari
another,
or
by eloping with a woman), he and his go forth from their homes and be wanderers on the earth for a year; and they are only to return if they have made peace with the injured family. The second comes for hospitality and the is, that if a guest or stranger Chief takes a sheep from the Mazaris and slays it to entertain his guests, the people shall make no claim for it, nor ask any
graces a family
to
price.
And
is,
shall
willingly
Mazaris agree
it."
take
the
laid
Chieftainship
these
if
not, refuse
Thereupon
Badhel
tribe.
once accepted them, and he became Chief. The showing the growth of the feeling that a setded government with the power of raising taxes and suppressing feuds was a necessity for the tribe, and it also brings
They
story
at
is
interesting, as
still
strong
among
is
was
in Badhel's
into
the
Central
One
faction,
headed by
hills,
stayed in the
he reached Talamba with the Emperor Hamayun. any one would whether asked in the Multan district, he no one else As Haivtan. volunteer to return and attack the Mazaris take would he that offered, Badhel Khan said
When
back
Khan, one
and with him went Mir Chakar's son Sahak, and Bijar of the old Rind leaders in the war with the Lasharis,
605
Haivtan surprised
killed.
this force,
and
long
both Bijar
Haivtan thereupon
;
and
Bijar's
After this
he
lest
and shaved
off his
own beard
Bijar.
the
defeated Haivtan,
over the
into
chasm
Sargani
called
Gogar,
and was
killed.
Mazari,
who was
it
pursuing him, went down and cut off his head and brought
skull.
and the Chandias, caused by the protection given by the Mazaris to Nindav and Motan, two Maghasi Chiefs, who had Badhel been driven out of their country by the Chandias. Khan raided on Kach and carried off great booty but the Chandias pursued and overtook the Mazaris at the Mazardan
;
torrent.
The result was disastrous for the Mazaris, for Khan was killed by an arrow discharged by Hamal Khan, the Chandia Chief. The Chandias also suffered Badhel Khan's heavily, and Hamal Khan himself was killed.
Badhel
eldest son
assumed the Chiefship. He made war against the Maris, and in battle with them was killed, with his second A series of petty wars followed which it brother Biluch.
would be
profitless to describe.
In the time of
in the plains.
Hamal
II.,
the Mazaris
first
began
to settle
The
Nahar
tribe,
made Bhagsar their capital. The Mazaris, who brought their cattle down every winter to graze near the Indus, entered
into an alliance with the
Kin Nahars.
6o6
When
Nahars, the Kin section called on the Mazaris for assistance. Mir Hamal Khan brought the tribe down, and with his help
Bhap-sar was taken.
is still
which Hamal gained possession of the Pachadh country lying immediately under the hills, and began to encroach on the Sind or riverain
lands occupied
known as Hamal Wah, from a canal Khan dug through it. The Mazaris also
by the
;
earlier
Biluch
colonists.
Perpetual
and the Chandias were eventually pushed across the Indus, their lands being seized by the Mazaris. War next broke out between the Bughtis and the Mazaris,
result
and there were several fights and reprisals. the Mazaris had carried off a quantity of
retreating by
It
On
cattle
way of
Teghaf stream under the Zen Koh. who were separated from down to gamble, and became so engrossed
the
game
that
force
which
was on
killed.
their track.
When
a
this
They were consequently surprised and was reported to Mir Hamal Khan, he
would slay any Mazari
made
vow
that he
whom
he found
gambling in future. Shortly afterwards he came upon his son Mitha Khan engaged in the favourite game. Mitha Khan,
seeing his father, leapt over a wall
fly
;
but Mir
Hamal Khan
Chief was
let
it
son's
in
thigh.
earnest,
The Mazaris
in the
present day
prevalent in
many
Mir Hamal Khan's time between and this may be considered as the
lasted to the
commencement of
present
the place of
607
on the slopes
attacked
killing
Mount Gandari
do.
The Drishaks
them and
them
at
same time
in
Hamidpur,
killing fifteen
Asni
Khan, the Drishak Chief, made a counter-attack on Rojhan. The two forces passed each other unperceived, and the assaults
were made
almost
simultaneously,
The
and plunaccount,
wife and
dered Rojhan
Hamal Khan's
this,
but
say
it
fight.
Soon
killed.
Khan's death, he was succeeded by his in whose time there was almost perpetual war between the Mazaris and their neighbours the Kaizais, Drishaks and Gurchanis. The whole country was devastated,
son Mir Mitha Khan,
On Mir Hamal
and large
eventually
tracts
cultivation.
Peace was
made by
to
this,
Chief's family
Soon
after
Jamal Khan, grandson of Mustafa Khan. Mitha Khan died and was
Up to
this
no sovereign.
The
and that of
Ahmad Shah
place.
He bestowed the Harand Dajil country on Nasar Khan, the great Brahoi Chief; and the latter, wishing to extend
authority
his
over
all
The
6o8
country,
post at Kashmor.
;
The
and
killed.
He
was succeeded by
son Mir
Shah
to the ever,
Ali
Khan.
The Mazaris
hills,
Shah
attack
tribe
on the
alliance with
them, probably
order to
make head
against the
Brahois.
The
possession of the
fertile
prise
Chandias, but
Shah
of the
who
occu-
by seizing
all
the
ferry boats
the
left
guard by
making a feint of attacking the Bughtis and accordingly marched into the hills from Jatroh, but secredy turned back, and came by way of the Sori torrent to await their chance of Meanwhile Jaurak Lulai and Gyandar crossing the river. Kird had discovered a boat at the Kin ferry on the left bank, Gyandar came to in charge of Sohna, a Chandia Makadam.
the river's edge, pretending
called
to be a
peaceful
traveller,
out to be
ferried
across.
Sohna
told a
and boatman to
to the left
Gyandar, when he
got close
bank,
He
messenger
was sent
boat
to the Mazaris, who arrived in hot haste. The made seven trips during the night, taking over a hundred men each time and before morning a large body of
;
DISTRICT.
609
bank.
They
attacked
and
killing
him and
sixty Chandias,
and obtaining great plunder, including three pairs of large still in the possession of the Mazari
Chief
The whole of the land belonging to the Chandias was annexed by the Mazaris, and is known by the name of Chandko.
Ali
Mir Shah Ali Khan was succeeded by his brother Dost Khan, and on his death his son Mir Hamal Khan III. In his time Nasar Khan of Kalat renewed his followed. attempts to annex the Mazari country. He was joined by a
body of Bughtis under
their
They
and
stormed Rojhan, killing forty-four Mazaris carrying off a large number of camels
Brahois established a military
hold the country.
to the
fort at
in the attack,
and
cattle.
The
Umarkot
in
order to
number
Mihan Khan and Sanjar Khan, were killed. was made by the Khans of Kalat
independence of the Mazaris.
No
to
further
interfere
with the
Khan
of
some powerful ruler, and tendered allegiance accordingly to Rustam Khan, the Talpur Amir of Sind, He attended the
at
Amir's Darbar
all
They were
then
formally
bestowed on him, and half the revenue remitted in /caszi?^, an arrangement which has been upheld ever since as regards the
lands situated within the limits of the Panjab. This was in 1791.
Syahaf between Syahaf and Lanjsila. They collected great in cattle, and were driving it down to the plains when they were overtaken by the Bughtis, who attacked them
6io
said
black ox
at
the
a local
Saint,
if
he
it
night
into
day
The Mazaris
and ultimately
on the Bughtis. Hamal Khan died and was succeeded by Mir Bahram Khan, father of the present Chief Wars with the Brahois and Drishaks followed, in which the balance of success was in favour of
80 1,
the Mazaris.
But the Mazaris had now to deal with a more formidpower of Maharaja Ranjit Singh was Dera Ghazi Khan had been begrinnino; to make itself felt.
able enemy, as the
annexed in 18 19, and the administration made over to Nawab Sadik Khan of Bahawalpur. His province nominally included Rojhan but it was not until after the Harand Dajal province was conquered from the Khan of Kalat in 1827, that Diwan Sawan Mai the Sikh supremacy became a reality.
;
seven thousand
men
to
Badli
near
hills,
and had
make
Kot and looting the down and occupied the marched The Diwan then
of Khairpur.
Finally, terms
;
Amir
were arranged
through Rahim Khan, Laghari Diwan Sawan Mai agreeing to restore the confiscated kasur allowances and the jagirs
held
by the Mazaris. Mir Bahram Khan attended the Diwan' s Darbar at Multan, and was presented with a khilat. This was in the cold weather of 1833-34.
6ii
Mir Bahram Khan died in 1837, and was succeeded by Dost Ali Khan. Shortly after his accession and
were once more driven into Sind. But fortune again favoured them, for Diwan Sawan Mai was murdered at this period,
and
Ali
Then followed
fallen
the annexation
into dissipated
of the
habits,
and the management of the tribe was practically in the hands of his energetic younger brother Imam Bakhsh Khan,
He
vantages of the new rtW;;2f of law and order, and threw himself heart
Mazaris.
in the
He
way
of justice
among
all
has
occasions.
In
made Rasaldar
of the
of
regular
cavalry
He
the criminal
work
arising in the
Mazari country.
enforced
in
;
his
Crime word
who have
entire faith
his
justice.
His and He was Bughtis, with whom he has considerable influence. of the greatest assistance to Sir Robert Sandeman when, as Deputy Commissioner, he had to bring these troublesome
excellent feeling of loyalty prevails in his territories.
services have been conspicuous in dealing with the Maris
tribes
tory.
An
under
control,
and prevent
their raids
on
British terri-
Khan
of Kalat, extending
in
bringing
6i2
He
received the
title
of
Nawab
services generally.
He
was made a Companion of the Indian Empire in 1884, and four years later was raised to the rank of Knighthood in the same Order. The Nawab is unquestionably the best and most worthy of the many excellent Chiefs whose aid is so
valuable in watching our western border and keeping
it
free
Every
of kindly
aspect
of his
character
is
;
admirable.
dignified in
dis-
He
is
his bearing
gentle in
position
Dost Mahomed Khan is the eldest son of Sardar Sher Mahomed Khan, son of Sardar Dost Ali Khan, who was the
nominal Tumandar.
ber, 1883, the
On
in
Novem-
Nawab
Mahomed
Khan
desire the
and at his special Tumandarship boy was invested with the turban by Sir James Lyall at a Darbar held at Dera Ghazi Khan in March, 1888. He and his younger brother Murad Bakhsh are treated as
as successor in the
members
Nawab who
own
sons.
is
Sardar Bahram
Khan
Nawab
Sir
He
is
man
He
in
every way
of the
Mazaris,
Tilu
ther of
Khan is the son of Rahim Khan, the younger broNawab Sir Imam Bakhsh Khan. He is a young man
and gives
great
assistance
in
DISTRICT.
613
and suppresDarbar in 1887. He has two brothers named Jalad Khan and Taj Mahomed Khan.
and
in the detection
He
received a seat in
6i4
ALIANI LAGHARI.
Mahomed
Khan.
I
Mahmud
Khan.
Hasan Khan.
Dad
Klian.
Lai
Fatah
Ahmad
Khan.
Khan.
I
Khan.
I
Jamal Khan.
Mahomed
Hasan Khan.
Ali
Mahomed
Khan.
I
Dad khan.
I
Sayad Khan.
Rahim Khan,
Hasan Khan.
I
Lai
Khan.
I
Chakar Khan.
Sahib
Khar,
I
Hayat Khan.
Sayad Khan.
Masu
Khan.
Fatah Khan.
I
Bahram
Khan,
Gul Mahomed Khan.
Dost Maho-
Gulam
Haidar
Aladad Khan.
med Khan.
Khan.
Gohar Khan.
Ghulam
Hasain Khan.
Ahmad
Khan,
Mahmud Khan.
Nawab Jamal
Khan.
I
Mahomed Khan.
Lashkar Khan.
Jalal
Khan.
Tagia Khan.
183S.
I
Phulu Khan.
1889.
The Tumandars
Aliani section
;
of the
Lagharl
or sixteen
tribe
belong to the
and
the
Chieftainship
has
been
held
in
fifteen
generations.
They
half
their
present location
during
the
first
of
DISTRICT.
615
they accompanied Mir Chakar when he joined the Emperor Hamayun on his expedition to Hindustan against Mir Chakar ultithe Afghan successors of Sher Shah. mately settled down near Satgarha in the Montgomery The Lagharis, under district, where his tomb still exists. their Chief Mir Rindo Khan returned to the Trans-Indus
country, where the
the
Khan Dodai was in power, now held by them, Ahmadani Biluches who still exist, scatfirst
Ghazi
territories
throughout the
district,
but are
not
organised
as a
style
Rindo Khan's tomb, a ruined domed building in the of the early Mughal period, still exists near Choti.
In the
Tumandarship
of Biluch
off
northern Sind.
Khan
in 1772,
fled to
the Derajat.
Murad
of Khairpur.
From
been
ino;
Khan
the
Aliani
family have
in
the
Khetrans.
it
This
from
is
tract
is
known
in
as
Laghari
It
Barkhan
to distinguish
Khetran
Barkhan.
the
was
until lately
independent, but
times
now
included
new province
During
the
of British Biluchistan,
district
Thai Chotiali.
of
troublous
ensuing on
the break-up of
when
late
Laghari
born
The Lagharis
their
afterwards became
in
of the Sikhs,
and reaped
reward
Diwan
Sawan Mai
and the
6i6
Khosas.
Khan
his
nephew
but the
latter surprised
and
killed him,
and recovered
his rights.
The
Lagharis,
who
made over
is
to
old grudge was seized and sent to Multan, and the Lagharis by whom he was slain. The
He
for
some
and the recent murder of Aladad Khan, son of Rahim Khan Laghari, in Bahawalpur terriagain active
;
now
tory,
is
said to
have
in
Rahim Khan,
Tumandarship
finally
cousin of the
present Chief,
usurped the
but
after the
death
of
Mahomed Khan,
was
to
abad
Khan
grant.
Nawab at RahimHis sons, Ghulam Haidar Sadikabad Tahsil. and Mir Alam Khan, still live there and retain the
the
attack
marched down the Frontier in 1848 to Dera Ghazi Khan, the Lagharis naturally sided with the Sikhs, while the Khosas and Gurchanis went over to
Edwardes.
Sind
Jalal
When Edwardes
Khan
Laghari
joined
Mulraj
his
in
the
at Dera Ghazi under Ghulam Khosas Khan. They were Haidar Khan and Kaura Khan, and suffered heavy losses. After the occupation of Dera Ghazi Khan by EdBut wardes, Jalal Khan came over to him with eighty men. he proved rather an embarrassing ally owing to the enmity between the Lagharis and Khosas. At this time Jamal Khan was Tumandar but Jalal Khan was the more influential man in the tribe and his reputation was widespread among the
Doab, and five hundred of assembled under Longa Mai, the Kardar
Sagar
tribesmen
defeated by the
617
His enterprise
in
peaceful matters
was shown by
schemes, and
at con-
Dhundi, the
Canal-extension
latter
work he executed
district.
No
his
him too far, as in the matter of certain frauds relating to canal management, in connection with which he was for a time
deprived of his magisterial powers.
Subsequently, however,
the
interests
of
Government.
invested
He
and
the
accompanied Sir
in recognition of
title
Robert Sandeman
his loyal
to Kalat in 1875-76;
behaviour was
with
of
Nawab,
and restored
In 1881 he went on
Dera Ghazi
to reach his
home
is
at
Choti.
The
of
pre-
The
title
Nawab
a very
on the occasion of
Her
Majesty's
is
He
is
man
specimen
exercises
of a Biluch Chief.
magisterial
He
is
well
educated,
and
he
functions within
the limits
of his
Tuman.
An inam
villages,
of Rs.
2,000
is
of one-fifth,
in
the Darkhwast
In
and
Ganehar.
The
is is
Darkhwast
one-sixth.
Ganehar the
making
a
rate
estimated at Rs.
Rs. 40,000.
per
annum,
total
of
He
1,300 for
6i8
Ahmad Khan is brother of the late Nawab Nawab Mahomed Khan, the present
Tumandar, and in the absence of male issue of the present Nawab, is heir to the Tumandarship. He is now an old man. His eldest son Tagia Khan stands next in the order Nur Ahmad's income from all sources is of succession. He is not able to read and about Rs. 4,000 per annum.
write, but his sons
DISTRICT.
619
Abasij.
Nur Mahomed.
Ghulain
I
Sh-ah.
Abdul Nabj.
Mahomed
Saifa^az
Khan.
Taj Mahomed,
i/.
Mahomed
Araf.
Fazal All.
1815.
Yar Mahomed.
Azad Yar.
Nur Mahomed.
Jau Mahomed.
Ghulam
D,,st
lidar
Khan.
Mahomed
Khan.
Ghulam
MiAX
Lalif
Mahomed
I
Mahomed Khan.
Khan.
Lutnf Hasaiii
Lutaf
Ali
Ill
|
Khan.
Khan.
This family is usually known by the name of Sarai, which apparently means a native of northern Sind, now known as Sira, to distinguish it from Lar or southern Sind.
The
Chiefs,
calling
Sarais are the direct representatives of the Kalhora and claim descent from Abas, uncle of the Prophet, Captain Goldsmid, in his Memoir themselves Abasi.
jam
sons,
of
whom
and the
Sciid to
of the
however, do not trace their descent from Jam that their ancestors were the Abasi Khalifas
for
o( Baghdad,
and ruled
620
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
that
after
;
It is said
leaving
Baghdad the family lived for some time at Aleppo and then a jump is taken to A. H. 1068, when Adam Shah entered
Sind with three thousand men.
who
He
to
is
said to
have been a
religious leader
death at Multan.
The
Multan,
but
all
at
Sakar.
to
assume tem-
But it was in the time of Nasar Mahomed that the family first became historically Towards the end of Aurangzeb's reign, Nasar's important.
son Yar
defeated the
Khan
of Kalat,
in
Meanwhile Jahandar Shah had ascended Yar Mahomed made his formal subthe throne of Dehli. was invested with the title of return in and him, mission to of Sevi. This was in The governorship 71 2. and the Nawab upon bestowed him, and was he Abasi Khan Khudayar of title
northern
i
Nur Mahomed,
extended
his
who was an
able and
enterprising Chief.
He
power over the greater part of Sind, partly by conquest and He commenced by attacking Shikarpur, partly by purchase.
and obtained possession of a portion, and afterwards attacked the Khan of Kalat, who purchased peace by giving his
daughter
in
marriage
to
Mahomed
Murid,
son
of
Nur
Mahomed.
During Nur Mahomed's Chiefship, India was invaded by Nadar Shah, and the authority of Mahomed Shah of Dehli was effaced. Nur Mahomed took advantage of this anarchy to secure possession of Thata by giving a bribe of three
DISTRICT.
621
He
Amarkot,
Nadar Shah would not follow him into the surrounding wilds. Nadar Shah, however, on his return from Dehli, marched southwards from Dera Ghazi
thinking probably
that
Khan with the object of attacking him. Nur Mahomed submitted at once, and was allowed to retain Thata on paying a fine of a crore of rupees and promising an annual tribute of
twelve lakhs
;
Shah were
carried
assassination,
his sons Mahomed Murid and Ghulam away as hostages. On Nadar Shah's Ahmad Shah Durani obtained possession of
and
He
received
title
of
family.
Khan, which has been ever since borne by the head of the During one of Ahmad Shah's expeditions to Dehli,
rebelled, but he
Nur Mahomed
ed by
Ahmad
where
he died.
in the
winter of 1748-49,
Manu
to
at
Pass
Ismail
Ghulam Shah.
to
HyderChoti
abad with
branch.
his followers
who had
separated
from the
tribe
were
at that
time disciples
their spiritual
whom
they regarded as
well received
by the
Kalhoras,
and was granted a jagir. On his death Mir Bahram, his son, became Chief of the Talpurs, and was made Wazir by Mian Ghulam Shah. It was probably through the support of this powerful body of Biluches that Mian Ghulam Shah was enabled to extend his territories,
sentatives, " from
in the
language of his repreto Kala Bagh in the power was widely felt.
Kach
in the
south
his
north."
There
is
no doubt that
622
Mir Bahram had already come into collision with the Hot Biluches of Dera Ismail Khan, and his authority over the Jistkanis of Leia seems to have been to some extent admitted. Mian Ghulam Shah governed at Dera Ghazi Khan and the last Ghazi Khan Mirani and his powerful Wazir, Mahomed Khan Gujar, acknowledged him as their Chief.
;
Ahmad
in
Shah,
however,
interfered.
The Kalhoras
were
of Multan,
final
Nabi, brother of
Ghulam Shah, demanded in marriage the Khan Talpur, who refused, as being
This was
in
Biluch usage.
effect equivalent to
this
insult.
He
caused
Mir Soon afterwards Mir Bijar Khan, who had obtained great power and influence, revolted For a time he was successful, and against the Kalhoras. Mian Abdul Nabi was forced to take refuse in Marwar. Thence he sent an agent to treat with Mir Bijar Khan, who unsuspiciously visited him with only a few followers, and was treacherously murdered. But Abdul Nabi's success was short-lived. Mir Sobhdar Khan, son of Bijar, raised the Talpurs and other Biluches, and drove him from the country in 1772. Abdul Nabi, now known as Abdul Nabi Khan
to
be murdered,
and made
his son,
Khan, Wazir
in his place.
jagir, said
Ahmad Shah, who granted him a have been worth Rs. 40,000, in the Rajanpur country, and promised to assist him with troops. But Ahmad Shah was in the last year of his reign, and Timur Shah, his successor, had sufficient to do in consolidating his own power so the promised help was never given. Abdul Nabi settled
Sarai,
at
DISTRICT.
not,
623
Durani King-.
his
howto
The
province of Leia
offer
offered
field
for
energies,
it
and he made an
him,
for
and the present, and bestowed upon him a Sanad of governorship whereupon he invaded the country, and defeated and drove out Mahomed Khan, Jistkani, and held the
;
province for a
period
of three
years.
But as complaints
were made against Abdul Nabi's tyrannical rule, the Shah appointed Mahomed Khan, Sadozai, governor in his place.
to
surrender his
office,
and
point
:
encountered Mahomed Khan near Leia. At first had the advantage, and Mahomed Khan was on
of retreating
;
the Sarais
the
who urged
Abdul Nabi's son Mahomed Araf was just then killed by some Labanas, who crept up from behind through a hemp field and as he was the real leader of the Abdul Nabi took Sarais, they were obliged to give way. refuge for a time with Maharaja Bhim Singh of Jodhpur, He took but retained his jagirs in Rajanpur and Hajipur. up his residence later on at Hajipur, where the family now He was succeeded by his son Taj Mahomed Khan, live.
" Better die than fly."
;
who
born
died in 181
5.
Shah Khan,
in 1841.
better
The present head of the family, Ghulam known as Mian Shah Nawaz Khan, was
with certain fluctuations, has been
said
to
1772.
It
;
is
have been
then
worth
40,000 per annum and in addition the family received One-third of one-third of the revenues of Hajipur in kasiir.
the jagir was confiscated by the
1830.
Nawab
fixed
of
Bahawalpur
nazarana
in at
Maharaja
;
Ranjit
Singh
the
Rs. 4,500 but Diwan Sawan Mai raised it British Government continued the jagir
The
fixing the
624
nazarana
3,000
Rs.
in
and
it
It
which
at
were assessed
has been
at
13,715.
lieu
The nazarana
3,000
commuted
in
of the
Tumandar
ducting
all
inam.
charges
Rs.
10,224.
By
kind
cash
or
was left to the villages. At present seven villages pay in cash and twenty in kind. Those paying in kind give one-fifth,
and
in
produce.
some cases one-sixth and one-seventh of the gross In addition to his jagir revenue, Mian Shah Nawaz
of the jamas of
Hajipur and the adjoining Mahals, aggregating Rs. 1,100. He also enjoys two small mafi plots in Sirkiwala and Haji-
and his personal holdings in Hajipur 300 per annum. Allowing that the collections in kind from the jagir produce something more than the nominal assessment, his total income from every source may be taken
pur, valued at Rs. 72
;
yield Rs.
small
or
sum
is
also
derived
from
offerings
family.
made by
the Murids
religious
followers
of the
No
always
title
fam.ily
Ahmad Shah
Durani, the
borne
the
as
popularly
known
name of Shah Nawaz Khan, and is Mian Sahib. He also claims the titles
The
liar
For customs which are not unlike those of the Sikhs. instance, they never cut the hair, which is tied in a knot on
the crown of the head
peculiar style, forming
top.
;
and their turbans are fastened two angles at the sides, being flat
regal
in
at the
The head
forms.
DISTRICT.
625
He
sits
on a gadi or cushion, and never rises when any one He is spoken of as the Gadi-nashin. Until
Mian Sahib a
pair
of kettle-drums was
a daughter of Fazal
Jan
of
Latif
Mahomed Khan
are
Viceregal Darbaris.
626
Eusaf Khan.
I
Barkhurdar Khan.
Ghulam Haidar
Khan.
Kaura Khan,
d.
Jahan Khan,
|
1871.
I
Sahib Khan.
Ahmad
627
The
first
Ghazi Khan
free.
of country
revenue
day
his
and wide.
Raja
The
reward
for their
bravery, were loaded with presents by the Raja, who gave Ghulam Haidar his daughter in marriage. It seems likely that the Khosa tribe fell into anarchy during Eusafs absence,
for the Isanis
showed
bitter
his return,
His son Ghulam Haidar sucand eventually poisoned him. Ghuceeded him but he was also treacherously murdered.
;
lam Haidar's son Barkhurdar was at the time a minor, and in order to provide for his safety he was sent away by his mother
brought up among the Khosas settled at Tibi Lund. On coming of age he returned, and determined to attack the Isanis, and obtain revenge for the murder of his father and The majority of the Khosas rallied round him, grandfather. and the Isanis were subdued and their leader taken prisoner.
to be
in
the revolt by
These
were Khan Mahomed Khan of Yarn, Jawanak Khan of Dalana, Barkhurdar Khan then entered into and Hot Khan of Hot. an alliance with Masu Khan, the Nutkani Chief, and in return for his
services the
the
villages of Mati
waterto the
ed by the Mahoi
These
estates
still
belong
territory
un-
successful
war with the Talpurs, already described, and was wounded in one of the engagements.
He
was ultimately
slain
in battle
Masu Khan,
Nutkani
628
CHIEFS
AND FAMILIES OF
NOTE.
He was succeeded by his eldest son Ghulam Haidar Khan, who prosecuted the war against Lai Khan Nutkani with success. Lai Khan was defeated at Pahar, and Asad Khan was recognised as Tumandar. Lai Khan
Chlefship.
took
refuge
in
Afghanistan and
allied
himself with
the
now become
powerful, by marry-
half-brother
of the
Amir
Dost Mahomed. Jabar Khan was made Governor of Dera Ghazi Khan in Zaman Shah's time, and he gave Lai Khan a Sanad appointing him Chief of the Nutkanis. Thus supported, he returned to Sangarh and slew Nur Mahomed and Yar Mahomed, the Chiefs of the Mati and Mahoi Khosas.
This raised the
second time.
tribe against
On
this occasion
Nawab
of Bahawalpur.
Dera Ghazi Khan was conquered by Maharaja Ranjit in 1819, and was farmed to the Nawab of Bahawalpur, Lai Khan, the expelled Chief of Sadik Mahomed Khan.
Singh
the Nutkanis,
now sought his patron's aid in attacking his old The Nawab gave him an army of
two thousand men, and there was a fight at Dalana near the Vador Pass. But the Khosas were victorious, and Lai Khan His death was regarded as ample satishimself was killed.
faction for
all
on the
tribe.
This
Bahawalpur Nawab
to resolve
on the humilia-
Haidar Khan should give him his daughter in marriage, knowing he was almost certain to meet with a refusal. Ghulam Haidar, supported by the Laghari, Gurchani and Nutkani
Chiefs,
refused
with
scorn.
The
Nawab
was,
however,
determined to enforce submission and laid siege to the fort of After two years Ghulam Haidar Khan and a few Gujri.
followers were surprised on the
killed
by the
Nawab's
troops.
He
was succeeded by
brother
Kaura
DISTRICT.
;
629
necessary to submit
marriage to
son.
He, however, induced the Nawab to demand a similar who had backed up Ghulam
Haidar Khan in his refusal, and the Chiefs of the Lagharis, Gurchanis and Nutkanis were obHged each to give a daughter.
In 1830 Ranjit Singh took over the direct administration
of
to
Lahore
to
make
per annum.
In 1832 Diwan Sawan Mai became Governor. Kaura Khan gave him active support against the Bozdars and Khetrans, whom the Diwan was anxious to subdue. The
wars with the Khetrans were not attended with much gloryto the Khosas, for Mir Haji, Khetran, who was the most
powerful Hill Chief of his day, invaded their country and took
Yaru by storm, inflicting great loss. Kaura Khan was not latterly on good terms with Diwan Sawan Mai, who supported In 1848, after the murder of his old enemies, the Lagharis. Agnew at Multan, Vans when Edwardes was and Anderson marching down the frontier with his Pathan levies, Sardar Kaura Khan joined him and sent his son Ghulam Haidar Khan to meet him at Dera Fatah Khan. Edwardes gave him a letter to General Van Cortlandt, who sent him on with Nasi Khan, Populzai, to attack Dera Ghazi Khan. The city was held by Longa Ram, Kardar, under Diwan Sawan Mai,
assisted
by the
Lagharis.
The Khosas,
led
Longa Ram was taken prisoner, and the city was handed over to Edwardes on his arrival. Kaura Khan accompanied Edwardes to Multan with three hundred Khosas and joined in the siege. After the war his pension was increased to Rs. 2,200; and the Rakhwala garden at Dera Ghazi Khan was given to him rent-free. Ghulam Haidar
630
do
He
was unable
behave with
due subordination, and it became necessary in the end to Throughout life he was dismiss him from his appointment. fond of roving and adventure, and he had wandered over the He was present at greater portion of Northern India.
Lahore in 1843, when Maharaja Sher Singh was assassinated by the Sindhanwalis, and took part in the fighting that On one occasion when some one repeated in his ensued. admin phir aega kann, he presence the proverb Jo jaega
announced that he would both go to Nadaun and return at He started off, making no provision for the journey, once.
and was forced
maintenance.
to sell his
own and
his
followers'
horses for
His unstable and passionate disposition made him incapable of managing the tribe and as his father became old and infirm, a disorganization set in which has lasted ever
;
since.
Sardar Kaura
Khan
He is said
to
have
incapable of managing
the
tribe.
Ahmad
intoxifor
unfit
Khan had
the
also
Tumandarship, lived mostly in Bahawalpur. Sakandar Khan, son of Ahmad Khan, representing the elder branch, claimed the Tuman, as Ghulam Haidar died while his father was still alive. But the Chiefship ultimately passed
to
Ghulam
Haidar's
Khan, then a
The
grandfather Kaura
Khan
ment with the turban of the clan, and died in the following year. Sakandar Khan, who stood first in the order of succession, was passed over as his abilities were not considered
DISTRICT.
631
dence of the
tribe
by
his
when he displayed
body of
his
command
of a
Sakandar Khan is of a suspicious and impracticable disposition and his want of tact and common sense has left him very few friends in the family. He was, however, appointed guardian and manager during Sartribesmen.
;
dar Bahadar
render
Khan's minority.
This
office
he had
in
to sur-
of age
1879;
and
Regarding himself
as rightfully en-
eight years, he
and having actually held the Chiefship for maintains an attitude of opposition which
has done
much harm in the tribe. Sardar Bahadar Khan was made a ward of the District Courts, and was educated His youth and inexpeat the Wards' School at Ambala. rience, and the opposition of the party headed by Sakandar Khan and his brother Dost Mahomed Khan, have caused
;
him some difficulty in the management of the tribe but the Khosas generally now cordially admit his authority, and he enjoys a fair amount of popularity. He has lately built a new fort and a house two miles from Batil, called
Bahadargarh.
Khan
Dhori Canal was made by Sakandar It was part of the same system as the Fazalwah, dug by the Lund Chief Fazal AH Khan, and was dependent on the Fazalwah for its supply of water.
In 1862-63 the
at his
own
expense.
In
by Government.
:
The
price paid
by Government was
as follows
To Sakandar Khan,
of land from
hundred acres
land-grants
for the
Rakh Chabri
and
to
from Rakh
Chabri.
The
were
free of
term
of settlement.
. .
632
CHIEFS
Sardar Bahadar
AND FAMILIES OF
is
NOTE.
Khan
an Honorary Magistrate.
are
He
payable
Sakandar Khan.
In addition to
this,
to other
members
Rs. 200
200
100
DISTRICT.
633
634
He gave Rodhen Khan Driunder the Mughal Emperors. shak the lands around Asni and the country near the hills
lying
north of the
later, in
tract,
occupied
by the Mazaris.
Four
generations
betv/een the
Daud Khan, a war broke out Drishaks and jistkanis, who then occupied part
the time of
of the country
in
under the
hills.
hot encounter
took place
when
hundred men were killed. The Jistkanis ceased shortly afterwards to exist as a Tuman in this country; but fractions of
tribes.
They
only.
Gujar,
the powerful
Dera
Ghazi Khan, sent an expedition against the Drishaks in the Azmat Khan. His troops inv^ested the fort
but were attacked and routed
forty
hundred and
locks
men.
Some
still
of the
then
taken are
in
possession
Drishak
Tumandar.
When
Sardar Azmat
Khan
one-twentieth
of the revenue
his
Khan
of
1811 was
was
in
recognized
Dajil
Khan
but
his
Rahim
Khan,
the
the
Harand
country, declared
independence
obtained
and
killed
his brother
Mustafa Khan.
He
on Dajil. The town was taken, and the Kardar Khan, with a hundred men, was killed. Ultimately,
Khan's forces regained possession of Harand
Dajil,
Mahmud
and Ra-
killed.
635
Kingdom was
its
falling to pieces,
Every
own
land
tov/ns
to work.
When
Khan
in
1848,
Sardar Bijar Khan, father of the present Chief, sent his cousin
Bakhshan Khan, with one hundred men, to join him. They were present throughout the siege of Multan, and at the conclusion of the
war
their leader
Asni, the
had been selected after annexation as the site of a cantonment for a regiment of cavalry. When the Mutiny broke out this regiment was
sent
to
cantonments were
In August,
to the
unprotected state
plains.
of the
frontier,
made
raid
in
force
on the
They
immense number of cattle, killing the herdsmen, and drove them towards the hills. Hearing of what was happening, Sardar Bijar Khan, who was patrolling the country at the head of some mounted Drishaks, went In pursuit and
collected an
came up with the Maris, over two hundred In number, at the Khatu Khan Bughti here joined him with Bhagiarl Pass. and some levies, under Musa Khan Laghari fifty sowars But the latter were not from the Drigri Post, also came up.
;
Maris,
who
alighted
from
their
and evidently
his eldest
meant
fighting.
The Drishaks
also
Sardar Bijar
comparatively
booty.
Khan and
son Drehan
;
Khan were
hills
lost
with the
father,
In of
of
his
pension
6^6
Sardar Miran
later life the
Khan
fulfilled in
popular, but
one time His long and expensive law-suit with the Mazari Chief, regarding some lands on the Phitokh torrents, has been the bane of his existence, and has occupied
promise
of his youth.
at
is
He
was
not so now.
his
an extent that he has been led to Tumandar. The dispute has recentlybeen settled amicably on the intervention of the Deputy Commissioner. Miran Khan has also been on bad terms with his brother Salim Khan and his cousin Daud Khan, He enjoys a with both of whom he has had litigation. Tumandari inam of Rs. 3,217 in addition to his life-pension of Rs. 1,000, and the revenue of Darkhwast Miran Khan held rent-free, subject to a payment of Rs. 285 to the Rajanpur Jagirdar, Mian Shah Nawaz Khan, Sarai. This latter
attention to
such
charge has been set-off against certain kasurs in four of the payable by him to the Tumandar
Khan
annum.
637
Jalab Khan.
I
Gluilam
Mahomed Khan.
Khakhal Klian.
Lai Khan.
I
lalab Khan.
Chuta khan.
Jamal Khan.
Mahomed Khan.
Nasir
Khan.
BiUich Khan.
Chuta Khan.
Bijar
Masu
Khan.
Ghulam Haidar
Khan.
Khan.
Nahal Khan.
Gulan Khan.
Bud a Klian.
I
Mewa Khan.
Hasan Khan.
Bijar
Khan.
Lai Bakhsh
Khan.
The Gurchanis
who appear
to
to
An
The
The Gurchanis
say that
he was ruler of
his tribe
Hyderabad
in
Sind, but
by an
Makran with
in
Mir Shahak, the Rind leader, who gave him his daug-hter marriage. She bore him a son named Gorish, the ancestor of
name
is
often pro-
nounced.
in
the
way
638
down the Gurchanis took possession of the plains called Sham and Phailawaorh above the Chachar Pass, and of Mount Mari between the Chachar and the Kaha river, driving out the
Afghan tribes who held these tracts before. In this ment they were joined by several families of pure Rind
settle-
origin
who acknowledged the Chieftainship of Gorish. The Gurchanis proper, who are supposed to be descended from the
sons of Gorish,
are the Shikanis, Khalilanis,
Alkanis, while the pure
kanis,
Pitafis,
wanis.
The Tumandar's
the
Shikani
branch.
of
Harand outside
In the time of
Lai
Khan, four generations later, when the conquest of the Panjab by Ahmad Shah Durani, took place, Lai Khan made his submission, and in return received charge of the Harand Dajil
Ilaka,
of the
kafila
route
Pass towards
Kandahar.
In
and a
fee of eight
annas on each
Lai
camel
every
kafila
as
escort-fee or badraka.
plains,
Khan
and
built
live.
himself a
now
and
the
this
in 1763, Ahmad Shah upon Nasir Khan, the Khan of Kalat, who had given him assistance ; tract, which included the territory occupied by
Gurchanis,
Ranjit
under the
in
1827.
DISTRICT.
of
639
to the
in
field
Panipat,
for
and was
ren-
possessions
reward
services
Lai Khan's death his brother Jalab Khan became and entered into an alliance with the Lagharis, receivinor in marriao-e the daughter of the Tumandar. The Gurchani Chiefship afterwards devolved upon Jalab Khan's younger son Ghulam Mahomed Khan. He met with his death at the hands of the Maris, who invaded the Gurchani
On
Chief,
fort of Lalgarh, which was held by Ghulam Mahomed Khan and only forty men. The Chief with two of his sons Lai and Khakhal, and all the men with him, were killed and the place plundered, though women and children were spared.
General Ventura was invested with the government of in 1830 by Maharaja Ranjit Singh, who
had just annexed the Harand Dajil country. Chuta Khan, grandson of Ghulam Mahomed, went and paid his respects to him. His jagir and all the privileges he had held under the Khans of Kalat were continued to him. Shortly afterwards,
under Diwan Sawan
killed a
Mai's
administration,
the Gurchanis
The
his
In the
mother was
Lunds.
just
The
by the
not
Tibi
The
great fort
built
Sikhs
at
Harand had
been
finished,
put up.
fort,
The
killed
Gurchanis,
therefore,
were able
to storm the
the garrison.
Harsa Singh and aboutforty Sikhs who formed The Diwan immediately marched on the Gurchanis and Lunds, who had to take to the hills. After some time they were pardoned. Chuta Khan went to Multan and
paid a fine of Rs.
and
Meanwhile
Bijar
5, coo, and his jagirs were restored to him. Khan, son of Jalab Khan, had grown up and
640
Khan refused to surKhan and his followers came down from the hills and surprised Chuta Khan at the village of Lundi Bijar Khan then beSayadan, near Lalgarh, and killed him. came Tumandar. The Lagharis were against him, as Chuta Khan had married a daughter of their Chief and the Sikhs
claimed his right to be Chief; but Chuta
Bijar
as they
Between the Sikhs and the Lagharis, therefore, Bijar Khan and his brotake their usual refuge in the hills, where they led
and Durkanis. His excursions spread even beyond the Indus, and he became the terror of the country up to Multan. Diwan Sawan Mai did his best to capture him, and on one occasion decoyed him into the Harand Fort on pretence of making terms, and sent him under a guard to Multan but the Gurchanis attacked the escort on the road and rescued their
Lasharis
;
beloved Chiefs
Bijar
Khan
but he was
pursued by Pir Ali Khan, the commandant at Dera Ghazi Khan, and driven off, not, however, without inflicting a heavy
At last treachery was resorted his enemy. Kiladar of Harand that he by the informed was he and to, He fell into the trap and returned could return to his home.
punishment on
to Lalgarh,
for
about
three
But he was eventually seized while visiting Harand, and sent in chains to Multan. Here he was kept by the Diwan for two months, and then made over to the Lagharis,
months.
who
paid a heavy
sum
They
The
murder, and
ther
Khan, who had no son, was succeeded by his broGhulam Haidar Khan. He was the son of a slave-girl,
DISTRICT.
in
641
establishing
very particular
his
in their Chiefs,
hills,
at night
But when
made
their submission to
Diwan
Mulraj, he was
condition of paying a
nazarana of
Shortly afterwards
Edwardes marched down the frontier from Khan, calling on the Biluch tribes to join him. The Gurchanis seized the opportunity of revenge on the Sikhs and Lagharis and Ghulam Haidar Khan with two
took place, and
Dera
Ismail
men accompanied
was held
for
hini to
Mulraj by
Mohkam
message
tunate
to
Edwardes.
Dera Ghazi Khan, The Harand Fort Chand, who sent a defiant The latter remarks that it was for-
that
the Gurchanis,
"whose
equals
for all
kinds of
violence and
were with him, and not on the side of the Sikhs. He says they were burning to distinguish themselves as Kaura Khan Later on, as Harand still held and the Khosas had done.
force was sent against it under Lieutenant Ralph Youn^, who was joined by Ghulam Haidar Khan. The fort was then taken, and this last relic of Sikh Power disGhulam Haidar Khan was also appeared from the district.
out, a
present for
some time
at the
siege of Multan.
At the con-
clusion of the
and received a
,000.
The Gurchanis had the very worst reputation at this and for many years after annexation they were conThe sidered one of the most turbulent tribes on the border. wild clans living in Mount Mari and the Chachar Pass,
time
;
chiefly
Lasharis
cattle-lifters;
and Pitafis, were inveterate raiders and and Ghulam Haidar Khan's authority, as already
642
noticed, was weakened by the defect in his pedigree, and he was not able to repress these disorders with a firm hand. The
and abetted the depredations of the Maris, Mutiny of 1857 guided them in their attack on the deserted cantonment of Asni. But they were ultimately brought under subjection, chiefly by the grant of lands in the
Lasharis aided
in the
and
plains to members of the hill sections, and partly by an improvement in the position of the Chief, which enabled him to exercise to some extent the traditional duties of hospitality, without
which a Tumandar can possess little influence. The hisur made by Ahmad Shah Durani was converted soon after annexation into a cash payment of Rs. 532 per
grant originally
annum, and the Chief was at the same time left liable for the nazarana payment of Rs. 400 per annum put on him by Diwan Sawan Mai. Soon afterwards the whole jagir was
confiscated by General
Van
Cortlandt.
as
In 1867 an
attack,
known
the
made upon
British
territory
by the Bughti
Hasain Khan,
at the
Ghulam Ghulam
Haidar Khan mustered his tribe to the number of about three hundred and was joined by the Tibi Lunds and with the
;
assistance of a
at
British
Harand,
they
attacked
Ghulam Hasain Khan and twenty-five men. The excellent conduct of the Tumandar and his tribe on this occasion caused the Deputy Commissioner to apply to Government
for
the restoration of
his confiscated
privileges.
Accordingly
the
jagir
of
the
villages
mentioned above,
to him.
known
was restored
This was
The behaviour
good.
has since
been
uniformly
make
his
felt.
DISTRICT.
said to be
643-
cannot be
tribe,
now
more out of
is
given to robbery, and the Durkanis must always be difficult to manage by reason of the inaccessible nature of their
country.
Sardar Ghulam Haidar Khan died in 1884, and was succeeded by his son Jalab Khan, who had been previously acting as Deputy Inspector of Police at Harand. Jalab Khan is an Honorary Magistrate. His brother Mewa Khan succeeded him as Thanadar of Harand. Sardar Jalab Khan is a well educated man of great ability, and has made his
authority
felt
throughout the
tribe.
He
is
unfortunately sus-
this
suspicion
has done
much
to
A
in
feud
Government,
it
Mewa Khan is the second son of Sardar Ghulam Haidar Khan. On his brother's accession to the Tumandarship he was made Deputy Inspector of the Harand Thana. He is a man of good character and ability, and is very popular in the tribe. His son Bijar Khan is a fine spirited lad.
644
Manak.
I
Mahomed.
Karam Khan.
I
Khan.
e '. Sardar
Imam Bakhsh
Khan.
Ghulam
Hasain Khan.
I
'
'
Barkhurdar
Sadik
Umar
Khan,
Ghulam
riaidar ^li-n-
Khan.
Khan.
|
Usman Khan.
Naurang Khan.
1
Sardar
Mahomed Khan.
Hasan Khan.
The Lund
stated to
tribe of Biluches
have
end of the
fifteenth
inhabitants.
;
They
occupy the
take the
tract of
of
country
known
as Sori
name
Tuman.
after the
The
country
is
believed
be called
The
Tumandars belong
to the
head of the family is a lineal descendant of Sori. His son Haidar is said to have been a contemporary of the Emperor
Babar.
The
Lunds
have been so much disturbed by wars as the tribes to the south and north. They were not so powerful as the Khosas, who were their neighbours on one
and they do not appear
side
and the Nutkanis on the other. After the power of the Durani Kings was established, the Lunds began to give
Afghan Governors.
himself from
Sardar
Mahomed Khan,
in
order
to secure
DISTRICT.
^45
one
in
of which one
;
still
the
to
Lund
him.
have defeated The Lunds, however, were ultimately forced to take refuge in the hills, and the Sori Pass fort became the Chiefs
three
residence.
said
against
At
last, in
Alam Khan
usual
Durani.
revenue to
re-
Mahomed Khan
who
ultimately
became one of the most influential Chiefs in the country. He began by repelling two Bozdar raids, inflicting great loss on the enemy. Shortly afterwards Maharaja Ranjit Singh conquered Dera Ghazi Khan, and the Nawab of Bahawalpur
received the
district in
farm.
his
Diwan Sawan Mai in an expedition against the Bozdars, who were In reward for this service the Diwan soon forced to submit. freed the Lunds from the payment of /mzz or grazing dues, and restored the arrangements made in the time of the
submission and was taken into favour.
assisted
He
revenue due on
Fazal
AH Khan
joined
He
was rewarded with a valuable khilat, and a rent-free grant of In 1857, when General twenty wells in Jiwani and Paki.
Chamberlain's force attacked the Bozdars, Fazal Ali
his son
Khan
sent
with a
ant
Lunds to assist our troops, and again, in 1868, when LieutenGrey was carried into the hills by Kaura Khan Kasrani, a body of four hundred Lunds assisted in blockading Fazal Ali also distinguished himself by the rebel Chief.
developing the agricultural
resources
of his
country.
He
646
made the Fazalwah Canal a most successful undertaking, which Government afterwards acquired at a cost of Rs.
5,0^0 and
a grant of
five
hundred acres of
his time
in this
irrigable land.
of
the
the Biluches.
Under
management
the importance
and wealth of the family increased, and he was believed to be one of the richest men in the district. He accompanied
Major Sandeman to Kalat in 1875-76 with a body of Lund horsemen, and made a good use of the influence he possessed.
An
him
fall
t;ia?;i
of Rs.
4,000,
He
died in
1877,
from the
fort at
Kandi-
wala.
He
was succeeded by
Mahomed Khan,
He
He
was
murdered
in
was on bad terms with him, and considered himself insulted by some harsh words used by the Chief He attacked Mahomed Khan, who was lying in his bed on the roof, and at one blow with a talwar almost severed his head from his body. Hasan Khan was convicted of this murder and hanofed.
to the
Ahmad Khan is now Tumandar, and has succeeded inam and estates attached to the Chiefship. He was made an Honorary Magistrate in 1886. Naurang Khan and Usman Khan for a time headed a party hostile to the Chief, but they have since been reconciled.
Sardar Sardar
uncle
is
He
has no issue.
DISTRICT.
647
settlement
2,405,
is
for the
Rs.
one-fifth.
collected
Rs, 1,595,
.. ..
.
made up
..
Rania
93^
Pasu Pirhar
475
to
about
Rs,
6,000
648
SARDAR FAZAL
Saitlar
I
Khan,
Dilshad Khan.
Sardar Mitha
Khan,
d.
Barkhurdar.
I
Nur.
1S62.
Atar
i
Ala Dita.
Ahmad Khan.
Sher
Mahomed Khan.
I
Alayar Khan.
Miisa Khan.
Khan
Mahomed
DISTRICT.
649
to Mitha Khan, and called on him to assist in exChatan JNIal. " Mitha Khan," Edwardes says, " was reckoned a wise man in his g^eneration, and justified his good report. Called upon to do what no Asiatic leader likes to do,
He
sent
drum round
sooner
he evacuated
Mangrotha the
in
The Governor
to
Edwardes' men,
allies.
continued to hold
Mangrotha for some time, and was the medium through whom Asad Khan Nutkani endeavoured to
negotiate with Edwardes.
He ultimately joined
was divided
Ismail
livinof in
Edwardes, and
holdings.
districts
in all his
The
Kasrani country
between the
the
hills.
of Dera Ghazi
waf;
This made
to a
administration
and the
tribe
became
great
Many
and serious offences were committed, and the people were Officers. Eusaf Khan, leader of
factions, raised the Kasranis,
in
one of the
cattle.
a large number of They were opposed unsuccessfully by a small force of who lost five men killed and three wounded. But the
1852, carrying
up,
to
the
He
who
by the cavalry
and border
wounded.
without
levies,
cessfully, losing
an
officer
Some
further raids
enemy bravely but unsuckilled and six men made by the Kasranis were
result.
650
Khan had
;
not
taken part
in the
attack
on
Dera Fatah Khan but his conduct was not considered satisfactory by Major Nicholson, Deputy Commissioner of Dera Ismail Khan, as he had neither given warning of the
raid nor attempted to secure the offenders.
It
for their
misconduct,
hundred men, under Brigadier-General J. S. Hodgson, was sent into the Bati Pass in April, 1853. The town of Bati was taken and destroyed and amongst the loot were two za77iburas originally taken by the Kasranis from
;
After this
res-
by During the expedition against the Bozdars in 1857, the Kasranis behaved well and Mitha Khan with a
his
;
and
party of Kasranis
1862, and was
assisted
in the
operations.
He
died in
present Tumandar.
Kaura Khan, of Tibi Kasrani, became very powerful after Mitha Khan's death, and usurped much of the Chief's authoHe was assisted by Ahmad Yar Khan Lashkarani rity. Mukadam, father-in-law of the youthful Fazal Ali, who had offended him by marrying a second wife contrary to his Tibi Kasrani, and the villages attached to it at that wishes. time, formed part of the Dera Ismail Khan district. In 1868 Kaura Khan's son Jahangir Khan was accused of murder, and Lieutenant Grey, the Deputy Commissioner, came to Basti Azim to investigate the charge. Kaura Khan resenting such proceeding, seized Lieutenant Grey and carried him off to the After detaining him a day he released him and took hills. refuge with the hill Kasranis and the Musakhels. The tribal levies of the two Dera districts were called out to blockade these tribes, and after a short interval Kaura Khan was duly
surrendered.
He
was
tried
and sentenced
to
seven
years'
DISTRICT.
in
-51
the
down, and the Tumandar's authority became more generally respected. The bulk of the Kasranis have since been placed under the Deputy Commissioner of Dera Ghazi Khan, and are
a quiet and orderly people.
In the regular settlement an
mam of Rs,
1,200 per
annum
was bestowed upon the Tumandar. Kaura Khan also received an mam of Rs. 300 per annum, but lost his right of collecting
in
Khan
is
is
popular
in his tribe.
He is
and
an
Civil
He
is
man
of retiring
He
takes an interest in
edu-
fairly
with
Persian
His income
about
Rs.
3,600 per
annum.
652
653
Mukan.
were
also
Dharmarth of Mankera was commuted and a jagir of Rs. 1,000 in Two wells at Multan and two at Dera Ghazi Khan released to them. The cash allowance was stopgrant of Rs. 500
;
on the understanding that the lands are to come under a light assessment on Ala Bakhsh Khan's death. The Dera Ghazi well-lands have been already
lightly
assessed.
In 1874, a
lease
of one
thousand
acres
was granted
to
in
consideration of
He
but in 1878
it
was renewed
Ghulam Mahomed Khan, free for ten years. The now held by the sons of Ghulam Mahomed. Ghulam Mahomed Khan served in the Police and held the post of Inspector for some years. One of his sons, Karimdad Khan, is Octroi Daroga in Dera Ghazi Khan.
land
head of the family. He Ghazi Khan, although he is He is a member of the District Board and not wealthy. Municipal Committee, and is an Honorary Magistrate.
is
now
at the
654
TIBI LUND.
Lashkar Khan,
I
I.
Fatah Khan.
Karam Khan,
I.
Mubarak Khan.
Lashkar Khan,
I
II.
Alam Khan.
I
Mazaru Khan.
Karam Khan,
1
II.
Mahomed Khan.
1
Bakhshan Khan.
Masu Khan.
Mitha Khan.
1
Alam Khan.
I
Nasar Khan.
I
Mahomed Khan.
Lashkar Khan.
Sardar Khan.
Masu
Khan.
Gulzar
Khan.
Bahadar Khan.
Pir
Bakhsh.
The Lunds
the
hills
of TIbi, so called
to distinguish
them from
in
location
Jaru
Khan
the
Mir Chakar,
mentioned.
The
consists
of three sections
Lunds,
Rinds and Khosas, who have coalesced into one small Tuman, which has managed to keep itself independent of the Lagharis
belongs to the
lands they
first
proper.
The
whence they gradually spread into the plains they now occupy as far as the town of Tibi, and began to plunder the people of Harand. They were on this account frequently attacked by the Governors of Harand, and would take refuge in the hills, issuing forth and reoccupying their lands when able to do so. At last, in the time ot Sardar Mewa Khan, peace was made through the
Sigri, Gati
torrents,
and Chani
DISTRICT.
655
of Sultan
Taib
of
Panah
Ali,
Lunds
obtained a rent-free
perennial
stream from
the
Kaha
river
In return,
Mewa Khan
It is
exerted himself
repressing
to the
Government
emigrated to
In
punishment.
their former
means
in
of livelihood thus
stopped,
Hyderabad
Khan's time a raid in force was made into the plains by a Pathan tribe. They collected a large booty and made Mewa Khan with three hundred their way back to the hills. men pursued and defeated them, killing one hundred and
sixty,
Mewa
and
recovering
the stolen
number of arms.
bestowed on
In reward
Governor
Mahomedpur and half the perennial waters of Harand. Mewa Khan then founded the present town of Tibi Lund near Harand. In Lashkar Khan's
the jagir of
Mewa Khan
of the
Lund
ter fifteen
hundred
defeat
all
told
but
remain behind
a severe
walls,
on them, and
of
and was spared with three hundred men. They were hospitably entertained in Tibi Lund, and their wounds dressed, after
to the hills.
The
Bughtis
cherish the
memory
the theme
Biluches.
This victory made Lashkar Khan famous, and he became of warlike ballads which are still sung by the
On
his
of
Gurchani,
,656
his
II., in
Lagharis
in
Lashkar Khan, rivalHng the action of his grandfather and namesake, salhed out and attacked them in the open but without the same success, for he and a hundred men were killed on the spot, and his brother Mazar Khan, grandfather of the present Chief, was severely wounded. Lashkar Khan's son Karam Khan, II., was then a minor, and Mazar Khan
;
administered the
tribe,
broke
The smouldering animosity of the Gurchanis soon again Ghulam Mahomed Khan, the Gurchani Chief, out.
to
who had given his daughter in marriage Nawab of Bahawalpur, instigated the
Lunds.
Sadik Mahomed,
to
latter
attack the
He
six
accordingly sent an
Mahomed
but
Karam Khan
of
submission and
soon
broke out again between the Lunds and Gurchanis and Karam Khan applied to Mir Bahram Khan, the Mazari Chief,
who came to his assistance with an army of two thousand The Gurchanis retreated into the hills, and were followed by the Mazaris and Lunds. Bahram Khan, who was
men.
connected by marriage with the Gurchanis, wished to arrange
terms of peace
his
tribesmen,
who
Masu
Khan, cousin of the Chief, with seventy men. The Mazaris and Lunds plundered the Gurchani country and then separated.
Masu Khan,
uncle of Sardar
Mazar Khan.
On Karam Khan's death his cousin Mahomed Khan was made Chief In his time Maharaja Ranjit Singh seized
657
Harand Dajil country from the Khan of Kalat. The Lunds joined with the Gurchanis in attacking the fort of Harand, kilHng the Governor Harsa Singh under circumstances already narrated. The Lunds after this were
driven to the refuge in
hills,
and
forced to take
Mitha Khan, son of Karam Khan, then became and after some negotiations the tribe made peace with the Sikhs, and received back their jagir from Diwan Sawan Mai. Mitha Khan and his cousin Alam Khan were killed on the slopes of Mount Mari while pursuing a band of Mari and Lashari thieves. On their death Bakhshan Khan,
Nawab.
Tumandar
He
was present
at the
He
the
Harand Raid,
described
in
another chapter.
Sardar Mazar
Khan and
number of three hundred men, assisted in repelling the attack, and Sardar Khan, brother of the Chief, received severe wounds, In from the effects of which he died shortly afterwards. reward for their services Government bestowed on Sardar
of Sardar
to
Khan
the jagir of
Mauza
kind.
800 per annum, with the This sum of Rs. 800 was conRs.
mode
of realisation recorded.
Sardar Mazar
Chief.
He
is
Khan is a fine specimen of a Frontier man of keen intelligence and will, and in He is acquainted with Urdu typical Biluch.
is
and
the youngest,
Bakhsh,
is
being
educated
at
658
CHIEFS
659
He was
constant
at
On
Ali
Akbar
his
between
son
his brother
Lai Khan,
by the majority of
his
own
tribe
Asad Khan
Lunis. Lai Khan was at first successful, and defeated the Khosas in the Sangarh Pass, killing their Chief Barkhurdar Khan. Ultimately, however, the Khosas won a victory and drove him out of the country, setting up Asad Khan as Tumandar,
Lai
Khan
fled in
in
him
as
Tumandar.
Sangarh
and for a time re-established himself there. A second time he had to flee the country, and Asad Khan again became
Chief; and as he was allied by marriage with the
Khosa and
Laghari Chiefs,
his position
became
a strong one.
When
the
Maharaja Ranjit Singh took possession of Dera Ghazi Khan, and Nawab Sadik INIahomed of Bahawalpur held the farm of
the district, Lai
Khan made
in
friends with
the
Nawab,
whom
he persuaded
Khan
rival.
He
bought
in
off the
Nawab by
marriage.
He
himself
had married wives belonging to the chief families of the Laghari, Kasrani, Kulachi and Luni tribes, and his sister
was married
to
Kaura Khan.
These numerous
alliances
66o
When
the
the
farm
away from
put
in
Nawab
charge,
come
in,
or
as
the
Nutkanis
say, delayed in
case,
them,
In any paying the nazarana due by him. Sikh army under Kharak Singh marched against and Haji Masu Khan, son of Lai Khan, was ento claim the
hills,
couraged
Tumandarship.
the Bozdar
for
Haji Masu
Khan
The arrange-
ment, however, broke down, for the Haji would not undertake Thus, no one to pay the heavy annual nazai-ana demanded.
was recognised as Tumandar of the Nutkani tribe, which has ever since remained without an acknowledged Chief.
he
son Zulfakar
Khan
after
some
He
was sent as
a pri-
shortly
afterwards
at
and while there was arrested and sent to Lahore. When Diwan Sawan Mai became Governor he called him to Multan, and granted him an annual allowance of Rs. 4,000.
When
the
into negotiations
Multan.
At
who were Masu Khan had joined EdMahomed Khan was in consequence
at
Harand.
Later on
Asad Khan
return to
Nawab
of Bahawalpur,
After the war he did not Dera Ghazi Khan, but remained with the Nawab, to whom he was related by marriage, receiving a pension of Rs. 3,600 from the revenues of Bahawalpur. His eldest son Azim Khan went to Khairpur and obtained a jagir from Mir
66
Murad
Haji
Masu Khan died childless in 1882, and thus left Mahomed Masu Khan, son of Azim Khan, as the undoubted head of the family. The other sons of Asad Khan remained
garh.
in the
Bahawalpur
State,
posts.
Ali
Gohar Khan was Mas/iiri Mai or Finance Minister. Ali Akbar Khan held a mafi there, but has lately died, and his son Ahmad Khan has recently returned to Dera Ghazi Khan. Mahomed Masu Khan was appointed a Deputy Inspector of
Police in the district in 1870, and has lately been
to the rank of Inspector.
ter
promoted
charac-
He
is
is
man
of excellent
and
intelligence,
and
district.
He
late
of
Rs. 360.
The
district.
Haji
man
of great shrewd-
showed his enterprise by digging a canal, now Masuwah, in the north of his llaka, which was ultimately purchased by Government for Rs. 25,000 in
He
known
as
the
addition
to
the
proprietary
rights
in
him
free of
In
1870 he
Biluches
title
made
Haji.
among
of
to
He
left
it
his
property by
will
to Ali
Akbar Khan,
whose sons
now
belongs.
662
Abdul Wahab.
I
Mahomed
.
I
Ibrahim.
Mahomed
I
Zakaria.
Abdul Rahman.
I
Mahomed
I
Suliman.
Kadar Bakhsh,
d.
Gul Mahomed.
I
18S7.
Khair Bakhsh.
Ala Bakhsh.
The
family of the
Mian Sahib
of
Taunsa
are said to be
been known as
Afghan
tribe of that
plains.
name
resident
in
Mahomed Suliman
came to Taunsa in 1766, and became the disciple of Shah Khwaja Nur Mahomed, He secured a great reputation for
holiness,
He
Nutkani Chiefs, and afterwards by the His shrine at Taunsa was built by the
Rs. 85,000, and
ings,
it
visitors
The
or
Mian Sahib of
Taunsa
Sharif,
is
man
He
has
and
around
tiles
it.
He
dome
built
of yellow
a
Multan
little
beautiful
life,
mosque
He
lives
a retired
seldom
always
But he
is
66 v>
He
member
of his family
until lately
to
by
664
MAHMUD KHAN,
MIRANI.
665
Hasain Langah of Multan, about 1480. The country along Kot to Karor is said to hav^e been given and no doubt
their possessions really
extended
much
Among
his
followers
was
Haji Khan,
who obtained
city of
Dera Ghazi, which was extended and who gave it its present name. Mr. Fryer states that Ghazi Khan, I., died in 1494. There are still some inscriptions in enamelled tiles on his tomb at Churata, from which we know that it was built in the reign of Akbar and this is confirmed by the style of the architecture. It is octangular with towers at the corners, and
and founded the
enlarged by his son Ghazi Khan,
;
is
tiles
of fine quality.
The
tomb was probably erected by the Ghazi Khan in power at the commencement of Akbar's reign, who, in company with Ismail Khan and Fatah Khan, made his submission to Sultan Sher Shah at Bhera in 1540.
In addition to giving his
is
name
to the
city,
Ghazi Khan
Khanwali mosque, and to have dug The the Kasturi Canal, which waters the lands around. commenced him, was by remain, still fort, of which traces and he laid out the Naulakha Bagh, the site of which is now He is also reputed to have occupied by the District Courts. He was sucfounded the town of Kinjar in Muzafargarh. ceeded by his son Haji Khan, founder of the town of Hajipur,
said to
have
built the
in the
Dajil
Ilaka,
now
his
family.
Jahan Khan,
garh.
his son,
gave
name
to a village in
Muzafar-
Sanjar Khan,
in
successor,
Sanjar
the
Sangarh country.
Alam Khan
founded
Khan
Daud Khan
Kot
Daud, and Gadai Khan, the large village of Gadai. All these Ghazi Khan, villages are in the Dera Ghazi Khan Tahsil. Pir Adil-^and saint at the of tomb II., built the still existing
his
own tomb
exists also
On
the death
666
CHIEFS
of
Chakar Khan the power of the Miranis decreased. Kamal Khan succeeded him but all his sons appear to have enjoyed possession rather on the left than the right bank of
;
the Indus.
Sultan
Kamal Khan is the reputed founder of Leia Khan of Kot Sultan, and Adu Khan of Kot Adu in Muzafargarh. The majority of the Miranis are now settled They are also to be met with in the in Dera Ismail Khan.
;
is
on the whole, peaceful and The country was developed, and canals were prosperous. extended by them. Up to the time of Nadar Shah's invasion
The
they were undisturbed, except towards the close of Aurangzeb's reign, when they rebelled and were punished by Prince
Muazudin, afterwards Emperor Jahandar Shah. At that time the Kalhoras, who were destined to supplant the Miranis,
were
establishing their
in
power
in
northern
Sind.
Nadar
1737 annexed the Derajat to his dominions, but maintained the Miranis as governors and the same course
Shah
was followed by Ahmad Shah Durani, until the capture of Dera Ghazi by the Kalhoras in 1769. Mahmud Khan Gujar, who had been Wazir of the last Ghazi Khan, was continued as governor, and had power for upwards of thirty years, both He bore the title over Dera Ghazi Khan and Muzafargarh. Khan. The last Ghazi Khan died in 1772. of Janisar He was an incompetent man and given to drink, and the real power was wielded by Wazir Mahmud Khan.
The
as their property
still
res-
Haji
Khan
Mahmud Khan,
DISTRICT.
667
hakim or physician in the city of Dera Ghazi Khan, and enjoys of Government land. His son Ala Bakhsh is a Sergeant of Police. Another son, Mir Alam Khan, has been
a small lease
converted to Christianity.
668
CHIEFS
MUZAFARGARH
DISTRICT.
Kadam Khan.
I
Abdulahad Khan.
Aladad Khan,
d.
Sakandar Khan.
1885.
I
1862.
I
Abdula Khan,
b.
1886.
Saifula
Khan
is
who
tury.
settled in
cen-
Their
has
been given
in
another chapter.*
They were
far
Muza-
Khan, Sadozai Afghan, who held the Multan Nawabship Aladad Khan, father until the coming of the Sikhs in 1818. of Saifula, attached himself to Edwardes, and did good
service during the Sikh Rebellion.
Again,
in 1857,
he be-
haved
to
loyally,
and helped
in
Hindustan.
in public
On two
Darbars
occasions
khilats
generally.
He
a
was a Magistrate
own
in
garh,
Tahsil
is
Muzafargarh.
Magistrate, and
He
is
died
Saifula
cipal
Committee.
is
He
is
and
said to be a
careful
in his affairs,
and given
on a large scale
in corn,
cotton
in
and indigo.
He owns
Vide
Nawab
Faujdai
Khan Aluai,
of Dera Ismail
Khan.
THE MUZAFARGARH
DISTRICT.
669
670
is
Thata Gur-
mani
Alipur Tahsil.
He
is
sports,
Panjab with
forward
and a celebrated shikari, who roams all over the his hawks and his dogs. His local influence is
considerable.
;
He
is
bluff in
manner,
honest
and straight-
extravagant.
He
;
is
a Magistrate
title
and a Viceregal Darbari. of Khan Bahadar was conferred upon him in 1884
in public
The
on two occasions
services rendered.
He
and Darbars he has received khilats for enjoys an inatn of Rs. 200, and his
Mian Mahbub is in temporal charge of the shrines of Mian Habib and Mian Mahbub, where rest the remains of
his grandfather
and great-grandfather.
These are
;
visited
by
and
his disciples
are numerous in
all
INDEX.
A.
Abdula Khan, Rasaldar-Major, Rajauri, Kangra Abdul Kadar Khan, Kazi, of Peshawar Abdul Rahim, Kazi, Peshawar Abdul Rahim, of Isa Khel, Bannu Abdul Rahman Khan, of Phalera, Feudal Tanaul, Hazara Abdul Samand, of Isa Khel, Bannu Ahmad Khan,' Sardar, Sorilund, Dera Ghazi Khan Ahmad Shah, Sayad, Banuri, Kohat Ahmad Yar Khan, Sadozai, Dera Ismail Khan Ahmad Hasan Khan, of Kunjpura, Karnal Ahsan Ali Khan, of Maler Kotla
.
.
Page.
423
541
644
5"7 558 180
Sardar Bahadar, Jalawalia, Jalandhar (the Agror Family (Hazara) Akbar Khan, Mandal, Karnal
Ajit Singh,
late)
Akbar Khan, of Ismaila, Utman Bolak, Peshawar Akbar Khan, Bangash, of Hangu, Kohat Aladad Khan, Sadozai, Dera Ismail Khan
Alawalpur Sardars (Jalandhar) Ala Wardi Khan, Kazalbash, of Hazara, Dera Ismail Khan Ala Bakhsh Khan, Sadozai, Dera Ghazi Khan Ala Bakhsh, Mian, of Taunsa, Dera Ghazi Khan Albel Singh, Sardar, Lidhran, Ludhiana Amb Family THazara)
.
Ambala
Amar Singh, Sardar, Mansurwal, Firozpur Amar Singh, Sardar, Shahkotia, Jalandhar Amar Singh, Sardar, Naugaja, Jalandhar Amar Singh, Sardar, Makandpur, Jalandhar. Amar Singh, Sardar, Baloki, Jalandhar Amar Chand, Raja, of Nadaun, Kangra
.
Ali Bahadar Khan, Kalabat, Hazara Ali Gohar Khan of Agror, Hazara Ali Hasain Khan, Rasaldar-Major, of Hazara, Dera Ismail Alizai Sadozai Family (Dera Ismail Khan) Amirudin Ahmad Khan, Nawab, of Loharu
.
Khan
591
560
91
Anup
Singh, Sodhi, Anandpur, Hushiarpur Aliani Laghari Tribe, Dera Ghazi Khan
Aslam Khan, Major, Sadozai, Peshawar Ata Mahomed Khan of Dahdar, Hazara Ata Mahomed Khan, Nawab, Khagwani, Dera Ismail Khan Atar Singh, Sardar, K. C. S. /,, of Badhaur, Ludhiana
.
Ataula Khan, Colonel, Rajauri, Kangra Autar Singh, Sardar, of Manauli, Ambala Azad Khan, Karal, Hazara
Azad Khan of Hund, Utman Bolak, Peshawar Azmat Ali Klian, Mandal, Nawab, of Karnal
. ..
B.
Babhaur Family (Hushiarpur) Bachatar Singh of Shahabad, Ambala Bachatar Singh, Indaura, Kangra Badan Singh, Sardar, Malod, Ludhiana Badhaur Sardars (Ludhiana) Badhwal Family (Kangra)
Baghal State Baghal Rajas (Simla Hill States) Baghat State Baghat Ranas (Simla Hill States) Bagrian Bhai Family (Ludhiana) Bahadar Khan, Khalil, Peshawar Bahadar Khan, Khosa, Dera Ghazi Khan
Page'
99
ib,
loi
ib.
Bahawalpur State
Balbir Sain, Raja, of Keonthal Balbir Singh, Tika, of Faridkot Balbir Singh, Raja, Mankotia, Kangra Balsan State Balsan Ranas (Simla Hill States) Baizai Bangash Family (Kohat) Bahvant Singh, Sardar, Malod, Ludhiana Basawa Singh, Sardar, Laroa, Jalandhar Baloki Sardars (Jalandhar)
.
402
ro8
ib.
of Rojhan, Dera Ghazi Barthal Sardars (Karnal) Basant Singh, Chaudhri, Indaura, Kangra Bararu, Mian, Kotwal, of Bir Bhangahal, Kangra Bashahr State Beja State Beja Thakars (Simla Hill States) Bhagat Singh, Sardar, C. I. E., of Kapurthala Bhagwan Das, Lala, Mir Munshi, of do. Bhaji State Bhaji Ranas (Simla Hill States) Bijapur Family (Kangra) Bijai Sen, Raja, of Mandi
.
Khan
44
ib.
106
ib.
415 45
57 75 41 530 52 108 417 122 124 273 401
Bije Chand, Raja, of Kahlur Bikrama Singh, Raja, of Faridkot Bikrama Singh, Sardar, C. S. 1., the late, of Kapurthala Biland Khan, Khatak, of Khushalgarh, Kohat Bir Bikrama Singh, son of the Raja of Sirmur
Bir Singh, Rana, of Balsan Bir Bhangahal Family (Kangra). BiSHAN Chand, Rana, of Koti BisHAN Chand, Thakar, of Madhan BisHAN Singh, Guru Harsahai, Firozpur Brijrai Singh, Badhwal, Raja, of Trilokpur, Kangra Bur Singh, Sardar Bahadar, Mukerian, Hushiarpur Buria Sardars (Ambala) Butar Sodhi Family (Firozpur)
. . . .
349
215 276
Ill
c.
Page.
79
.
Chamba
State
.
Charat Ram, Chaudhri, member of the Patiala State Council Chatar Singh, Rasaldar, Lidhran, Ludhiana
255
D.
Dalawar Singh, Mian, Kishtwaria, Tilokpur, Kangra Dalip Singh, Rana, of Baghat Dalip Singh, Dhandowalia, Shahkot, Jalandhar Dalip Singh, Rai, Kulu, Kangra Daljit Singh, Kanwar, of Kapurthala
. . .
403
lOI
304 386 44
115
ib.
Darkoti State Darkoti Ranas (Simla Hill States) Dalthi State Dalthi Thakars (Simla Hill States) Dava Singh, Sardar, Bahram, Jalandhar Davi Chand, Mian, of Bijapur, Kangra Dera Ghazi Khan District (Introductory Note) Dera Ismail Khan, Sadozai Family Dewa Singh, Sardar, K. C. S. I., the late, of Patiala
121
ib.
Dhami State Dhami Ranas (Simla Hill States) Dhanaur Sardars (Karnal)
Dhandowal Sardars (Jalandhar) Dharamsinghwala Sardars (Firozpur) Dhian Singh, Raja, of Baghal Dhiru Mazra Sardars (Ludhiana)
.
.
no
ib.
197
303 283 99
257 227
Dost Mahomed Khan of Shingri, Hazara Dost Mahomed Khan of Garhi Daulatzai, Peshawar Drishak Tribe (Dera Ghazi Khan) Dujana State Durji Chatan, Nono, of Spiti, Kangra Durga Singh, Rana, of Bhaji Dur Mahomed Khan, Rasaldar, Khagwani, Dera Ismail Khan . DusHT Nakandan Sen, Raja, of Suket
.
F.
Faiz Talab Khan, Raikot, Ludhiana Fakirula Khan, Mirza, the late, of Rajauri, Kangra Faridkot State Farid Khan, Arbab, Khalil, Peshawar Fatah Singh, Rana, of Dhami
258 399
75
Fatah Khan, Arbab, Khalil, Peshawar Fatah Mahomed Khan, Khanzada Khatak, of Nilab, Kohat Fazal Ilahi, Kazi, of Sakandarpur, Hazara Fazal Ali Khan, Sardar, Kasrani, Dera Ghazi Khan Fazal Ahmad Khan, Navvab, of Panipat, Karnal Firoz Khan, Raja, Gakhar, of Hazara
.
. . . , .
. . . . . . .
. . . . .
IV
Gajindar Singh, Sardar, of Jarauli, Ambala .. Gajindar Singh, Sodhi, Anandpur, Hushiarpur Gakhar Family of Khanpur (Hazara) ., Ganda Singh, Sardar, C. 5. /., of Patiala Ganda Singh, Sardar, Dhiru Mazra, Ludhiana Gandapur Family (Dera Ismail Khan) .. Garhi Habibula, Swati Family (Hazara) .. Ghairat Ali Khan, Mandal, Karnal .. Ghulam Ahmad Khan, Kunjpuria, Karnal
.
^.
,.
..
.. ..
.
222 335
..
.
424
14
.. ..
..
..
,. ..
..
..
..
..
Ghulam Ahmad Khan, Rajauri, Kangra .. .. .. 400 Ghulam Haidar Khan of Agror, Hazara ,. .. . 436 Ghulam Ahmad, Makadam, of Kot Najibnla, Hazara 445 Ghulam Sarwar Khan, Mohmand, Peshawar. ,. 457 Ghulam Sarwar Khan, Rasaldar, Alizai, Dera Ismail Khan 571 Ghulam Kasim Khan, Nawab, Katikhel, of Tank, Dera Ismail Khan. 572 Ghulam Mahomed Khan, Khagwani, Dera Ismail Khan .. 582 Ghund State .. .. .. .. ,,125 Ghund Thakars (Simla Hill States) ib. .. ,. .. Gopal Singh, ex-Raja, of Chamba 80
.
Gulab Singh, Sardar, Katgarh, Hushiarpur Guler Family (Kangra) .. Gurchani Tribe (Dera Ghazi Khan) Gurmak Singh, Diwan, of Patiala
.,
.,
.
,.
..
..
.
..
.
..
..
,.
H.
Habib Khan, Sardar Bahadar, of Khunda, Utman Bolak, Peshawar Hafiz Abdula Khan, Alizai, Dera Ismail Khan Hafiz Samandar Khan, Khwajikzai, Dera Ismail Khan Hakdad Khan, Sadozai, Dera Ismail Khan
.
.
..
.
.
Sadozai, Dera Ismail Khan Rasaldar, Sadozai, Dera Ismail Harcharn Das, Lala, Magistrate, of Kapurthala Hardit Singh, Sardar, of Dayalgarh, Ambala Hari Chand, Thakar, of Theog .. Hari Singh, Sardar, Lidhran, Ludhiana ., Hari Singh, Mian, Nadaun, Kangra .. Hari Chand, Thakar, Wazir, of Lahaul, Kangra
Khan
.. .. .. .,
..
44
227
..
..123
..
.,
.
'
..
.
Hangu Bangash Family (Kohat) .. Harnam Singh, Kanwar, C. I. E., of Kapurthala Harnam Singh, Sardar, Bheri, Ludhiana
.
,,
.
.
,,
.
llarnam Singh, Sardar, Moron, Jalandhar Harsarup, Munshi, of Jind .. Harsahai Guru Family (Firozpur) Hasain Shah of Walai, Peshawar Hazara Gakhar Family Hindur (Nalagarh) State ..
,
.
.. ..
.
.. ..
.
..27
..
.
273
480 424
65
.. .. ..
..
..
..
...
..32
105
.
..
..
.
,.
.
..118
..
. .
Chand, Rai, Babhaur, Hushiarpur Hira Singh, Mian, Nurpur, Kangra .. Hira Singh, Mian (Kulu Family), of Sangri, Kangra Hira Chand, Ghamrang, of Gondla, Lahaul, Kangra
..
.
.
410
I.
Page.
1 68 484
Ibrahim AH Khan, Nawab, of Kiinjpura, Karnal Ibrahim Khan, Khan Bahadar, of iMardan, Pesliawar Ilahi Bakhsh, Mirza, the late, of Dehli Inayat AH Khan, brother of the Nawab of Maler Kotla
Inayatula Khan of Chamhad, Hazara Indar Singh, Sardar, of Barthal, Karnal Indar Singh, Sodhi, of Butar, Firozpur
C.
I.
Mazari, of Rojhan,
De
602 335 375 535 65
Ishar Singh, Sodhi, Anandpur, Hushiarpur Ishri Singh, Mian, Nadaun, Kangra
Isa
Hindur
J.
Jagat Jit Singh, Raja, of Kapurthala Jagan Nath, Diwan, of Dera Ismail Khan Jahandad Khan, Raja, Gakhar, of Khanpur, Hazara Jai Chand, Major, Raja, of Lambagraon Jai Singh, Raja, Siba, Kangra Jai Chand, Rana, of Kothar
Jaimal Singh, Sardar, Thala, Jalandhar Jalab Khan, Sardar, Gurchani, Dera Ghazi Khan Jasmir Singh, Bhai, of Arnauli, Karnal Jasmir Singh, Sardar, of Tangaur, Ambala Jaswan Mian Family (Hushiarpur) Jaswant Singh, Raja, Nurpur, Kangra Jaswant Singh, Rasaldar, Katgarh, Hushiarpur Jawala Singh, Wazir, of Mandi Jawala Singh, Sardar, of Jharauli, Ambala Jind State Jit Singh, Rana, of Mangal Jiwan Singh, Sardar, of Shahzadpur, Ambala Jhamba Bhai Family (Firozpur) Jiwan Singh, Sardar, of Buria, Ambala Jharauli Sardars (Ambala) Jubal State Jubal Ranas (Simla Hill States)
,
34
592
424
362 370
III 321 637 182
218
3-^7
380 346 49
221 22 113
K.
Kahlur State
Kalsia State
57
Kamharsen State Kamharsen Ranas (Simla Hill States) Kamarudin Khan, Mandal, Karnal
196
. .
VI
Page.
Kanaiti Skate Kanaiti Thakars (Simla Hill States) Kang Sardars (Jalandhar) Kapurthala State Kartarpur Guru Family (Jalandhar) Karam Singh, Wazir, of Bir, Kangra
Karal Family (Hazara) Karnal District (Introductory Note) Kasrani Tribe (Dera Ghazi Khan) Kasuria Sardars (Firozpur) Katgarh Family (Hushiarpur) Katikhel Tank Family (Dera Ismail Khan) Keonthal State Kharak Singh, Raja, the late, of Kapurthala Khwaja Mahomed Khan, Nawab, K. C. S. I., of Teri, Kohat
Singh, Sardar, of Tangaur (Ambala) Singh, Sardar, of Jharauli, (Ambala) Singh, Sodhi, of Anandpur, Hushiarpur Kothar State Kothar Ranas (Simla Hill States)
Kotla Badla Family (Ludhiana) Koti State Koti Ranas (Simla Hill States) Kotlahr Family (Kangra) Kunhar State Kunhar Thakars (Simla Hill States) Kunjpura Nawabs (Karnal)
.
.
L.
. . .. .
. . . , . . . .
Vll
M.
.. .. .. Madhan State Madhan Thakars (Simla Hill States) Mahabat Khan of Toru, Mardan, Peshawar Mahbub Khan, Bahadar, Mian, Gurmani, Muzafargarh
.
^(^8^'
. .
..124
,
ib.
..
.
..
.
.
487 669
13
Mahindar Singh, Maharaja, the late, of Patiala Mahmud Khan, Mirani, Dera Ghazi Khan Mahtab Singh, Sardar, Lidhran, Ludhiana Mahomed Abas Khan, Sadozai, Peshawar Mahomed Abas Khan, Arbab, Khalil, Peshawar Mahomed Afzal Khan, C S. /., Nawab, Lieut.-Col., Sadozai, Peshawar, Mahomed Afzal Khan, Sardar, of Gandapur, Dera Ismail Khan Mahomed Akbar Khan of Topi, Utman Bolak, Peshawar Mahomed Akram Khan, Nawab, K. C. S. I., of Amb, Hazara .. Mahomed Akram Khan, Sadozai, Peshawar Mahomed Akram Khan, Rasaldar, Khagwani Dera Ismail Kiian Mahomed All Khan, the late, of Kapurthala. Mahomed Aslam Khan, Kazi, Peshawar Mahomed Azim Khan, Mohmand, Peshawar. Mahomed Hasan Khan, C. I. E., Wazir, of Patiala Mahomed Hasain Khan, Mir Munshi, of Patiala Mahomed Hasain Khan, Arbab, Mohmand, Peshawar Mahomed Ibrahim Ali Khan, Nawab, of Maler Kotla Mahomed Jan, Maulvi, of Kafir Dheri, Peshawar Mahomed Khan, Sayad, Karal, of Hazara ,. Mahomed Khan of Puhar, Hazara Mahomed Khan, Sardar Bahadar, of Peshawar Mahomed Khan, Khwaja, Kamalzai, of Hoti, Peshawar .. Mahomed Khan, Nawab, Aliani, Laghari, Dera Ghazi Khan Mahomed Mumtaz Ali Khan, Nawab, of Pataudi Mahomed Masu Khan, Nutkani (Dera Ghazi Khan) Mahomed Najabat Ali Khan, uncle of the Nawab of Dujana Mahomed Nawaz Khan, Rasaldar, Alizai, Dera Ismail Khan Mahomed Said Khan, Bangash, of Hangu, Kohat Mahomed Saifula Khan, Babar, of Khangarh, Muzafargarh .. Mahomed Sarfaraz Khan, the late, Sadozai, Dera Ismail Khan Mahomed Shwaib, Shahzada Family, Kohat Mahomed Tahir, Sardar, Sadozai, of Ludhiana Mahomed Umar Khan, Sadozai, Peshawar .. Mahomed Umar Khan, Khadarzai, of Shewa, Peshawar .. .. Mahomed Usman Khan, Bangash, of Hangu, Kohat
.
. .
664
251
449 463 446 586 476 420 453 583 44 462 458
15
ib.
454
70 479 437 444 469 470 614 88 658 98 564 523 65S
551
Mailog State Mailog Thakars (Simla Plill States) .. Makandpur Sardars(Jalandhar) .. Makhdum Shah, Sayad, Jilani, Kohat Maler Kotla State .. Malha Singh, Chaudhri, Indaura, Kangra .. Malod Sardar Family (Ludhiana) Mamdot Nawab Family (Firozpur) Mamtaz Alt Khan, Nawab, of Dujana Man Singh, Sodhi, Sardar Bahadar, of Butar, Firozpur
. . . . . .
..
.
..
315
70
-.53^
.
..
..
404
241 267
..
. .
..
. .
95 276
..
..
..
..186
via
Page.
Mandi State Mangal State Mangal Ranas (Simla Hill States) Mani Khan, Spirkai, Wazir, of Garhi Mani Khan, Bannu
Mankotia Family (Kangra) Manauli Sardars (Ambala) Manaswal Family (Hushiarpur) Mansurvval Sardars (Firozpur) Martanja Parohit of Chahri, Kangra Mathra Das, Diwan, of Kapnrthala Mazar Khan, Sardar, Tibi Lund, Dera Ghazi Khan Mazari Tribe (Dera Ghazi Khan) Mianvvali Mian Family (Bannu) Wiran Khan, Sardar, Drishak, Dera Ghazi Khan Miran Family (Dera Ghazi Khan) Mir Alam, Kazi, of Sakandarpur, Hazara Mit Singh, Sardar, Dhandovvalia, Jalandhar Mohmand Family (Peshawar) Mokerian Family (Hushiarpur)
.
45 113
ib.
548 402 231 347 285 414 44 654 602 546 633 664 442 303 454 349
301
Moron Sardars (Jalandhar) Muazudin Khan, Rasaldar, Alizai, Dera Ismail Khan
Muzafar Khan, Bangash., of Hangu, Kohat
.
564 514
Nabha
State
28
Mabi Bakhsh, Sardar, C. I. E., of Kapurthala Nadaun Family (Kangra) Nahal Singh, Shahkotia, Jalandhar Nahal Singh, Sardar, Kang, Jalandhar Nahal Singh, Sodhi, Anandpur, Hushiarpur Najabat Ali Khan, Mandal, Karnal Naina Singh, Sardar, of Mustafabad, Ambala Narindar Singh, Maharaja, the late, of Patiala JNarindar SIngh, Thakar, of Daltiii Narindar Singh, Sodhi, Anandpur, Hushiarpur Narain Singh, Bhai, Bagrian, Ludhiana Narain Singh, Sardar, Kang, Jalandhar Naugaja Sardars (Jalandhar) Nao Nahal Singh, Guru, Kartarpur (Jalandhar) Nazamudin Khan, Nawab, of Mamdot, Firozpur Niamatula Khan, Raja, Rajauri, Kangra Niaz Mahomed Khan, Rasaldar, Dera Ismail Khan Nurpur B'amily (Kangra) Nutkani Rind Tribe (Dera Ghazi Khan)
121
294
267
395 571
380 658
of Jubal Panipat Nawab's family (Karnal) Partab Singh, Sardar, of Patiala Partab Singh, Kanvvar, of Kapurthala Partab Singh, Sardar, Jaiawalia, Alawalpur, Jalandhar
103 202
15
44 308
..
. .
IX
Page.
Pataudi State
Patiala State
. .
88
9
Pirthipur Family (Hushiarpur) .. Pirthi Singh, Mian, Nadaun, Kangra Puran Singh, Sodhi, Anandpur, Hushiarpur.
R.
Rab Nawaz Khan, Nawab,
Alizai,
560
26 107 327
Ragbir Singh, Raja, the late, of Jind Raghnath Chand, Thakar, of Mailog Raghnath Singh, Mian, Jaswan, Hushiarpur
Goleria,
Kangra
.
356
27
of Jind
Raikot Chiefs' Family (Ludhiana) Rajauri Family (Kangra) Rajindar Singh, Maharaja, Patiala Rajindar Singh, Sardar Bahadar, Katgarh, Hushiarpur Ram Jas, Divvan, C. S. I., of Kapurthala Ram Saran Singh, Rana, of Darkoti Ram Singh, Thakar, of Ratesh Ram Singh, Sardar, of Shamgarh, Karnal Ram Narain Singh, of Shahabad, Ambala
.
,
258 395
9
.
344 44
115' 126
200
21 7
Ram
Kangra
376
9
22
.
Rasul Khan, Mohmand, Peshawar Ratan Singh, General, of Jind Ratesh State Ratesh Thakars (Simla Hill States) Rustam Khan, Nawabzada, Baizai Bangash, Kohat
. .
40 85 457
27
126
tb.
506
s.
Sadat All Khan, Mandal, Karnal Sadik Mahomed Khan, Nawab, of Bahawalpur Sadozai Shahzada Family (Ludhiana) Sadozai Family (Dera Ismail Khan) Safdar Jang, Shahzada, of Ludhiana Sahib Singh, Sardar, of Leda, Ambala Saidudin Ahmad Khan, Mirza, Loharu Family Samandar Khan, Swati, of Garhi Habibula, Hazara Sangri State Sangri Rais (Simla Hill States) Sarajudin Haidar Khan, of Farakhnagar, Gurgaon Sardar Khan, Kasuria, Firozpur Sarhali Sardars (Jalandhar) Swati Family of Garhi Habibula, Hazara Sayad Sharil Hasain, Maulvi, Jagraon, Ludhiana Sheo Narain, Sardar, of Shahabad (Ambala) Shahzadpur Sardars (Ambala)
.
195
16
161
..
Page.
Shahzada Nadar, Sadozai, of Ludhiana Shah Nawaz Khan, Sarai, Mian, of Hajipur, Dera Ghazi Khan Sharaf Ali, Mian, of Mianwali, Bannu Sher Singh, Mian, Nadaun, Kangra Sher Eahadar Khan, Mohmand, Peshawar Sher Mahomed Khan, Kiani, Kohat Shamsher Parkash, Raja of Sirmur Shamsher Singh, Raja, of Rampur, Bashahr
233 619
547 375 458 524 52 61
79 193 200
Sham
Singh, Raja, of
Chamba
Shamsher Ali Khan, Mandal, Karnal Shamgarh Sardars (Karnal) Shankar Singh, General, of Rai, Kangra
Siba Family (^Kangra)
406 370
52
Sirmur State
644
411 42 49
Suchet Singh, Kanwar, of Kapurthala Suchet Singh, Mian, brother of the Raja of Nadaun ^uchet Singh, Mian, uncle of the Raja of Chamba Suchet Mahomed, Sardar, Dharamsinghwala, Firozpur Suchet Singh, Mian, Nadaun, Kangra Suket State Sudh Singh, Sardar, Mukerian, Hushiarpur Sujan Singh, Bedi, Una, Hushiarpur Sultan Mahomed Khan of Bir, Hazara Sultan Jan, Sardar, C. I. E., of Kohat Sultan Ali, Mian, of Mianwali, Bannu Sundar Singh, Sardar, Malod, Ludhiana
80
283 375 82 352 337
444
491 545 244
53
Sundar Singh, Sardar, Sarhali (Jalandhar) Surandar Bikrani Singh, Tika, of Sirmur
T.
Tafazal Hasain, Mir, Chief Justice of Patiala
Tank
Katikhel Family (Dera Ismail Khan) Taroch Thakars (Simla Hill States) Taroch State
15 218 572
n6
ib.
Theog State Theog Thakars (Simla Hill States) Tibi Lund Tribe (Dera Ghazi Khan)
Tilok Singh, Sardar, of Sikri (Karnal) Tilok Singh, Sardar, of Mustafabad, Ambala Tilokpur Family (Kangra) Tila Mahomed, Kazi, Peshawar
.
654
206 223 403 462
u.
Udai Chand, Thakar, Beja
Udham
114 342
..
XI
Pas^e &'
.. ..
.
..
..
.
..197
..
.
.
337 241
w.
Waliula, Maulvi, late Sessions Judge, Kapurthala
. .
44
Y.
Yar Mahomed Khan, Malik, of Kala Bagh, Bannu
.
..
543
z.
Zabarjang Singh, Bhai, Jhamba, Firozpur
.. ,.
..
280